ſaeſīIIIIIIIIIIIIIIIIIIIIIIIIIII №!ſae ✉ ſae ! ± № ſilllllllIIIIIIIIIIIIIIIIIIIIIIIIIIIIIIIIIIIIIIIIIae. |||||||||||| | º ≡ ſittaeſſaeuaettaeſſ ĮIIIIIIIIIIIIIIIIIIIIIIIIIIIIIIſae ſ. | $ € { sº2 º: ". | % one of the few who have a native of Pizzinia, Zorn ſº, army at Boston 1775, Mºre. rt Boston 1773, ºre gurated President of the tº 3/, took command Žeen great, nº/out being criminal, was % of the Afrnerican ned his command Z783, was inau- inited States 27.89, and again ZZ93. — and died /729— - - - HISTORY OF THE OF º hy Rev. CHARLEs A g oodrich. ºith £ngravings. **śºwºssºwawunº HARTFORD, PUBLISHED BY D. F. Robinson & Cox * * * * * * * * * * * * * # * * # # * * * * * * * * DISTRICT OF CONNECTICUT, ss. BE IT REMEMBEREp, That on the eighth day of L. s. March, in the forty-seventh year of the Indepen- dence of the United States of America, Rev. CHARLEs A. GoodRICH, of the said district, hath deposited in this office the title of a book, the right whereof he claims as author, in the words following—to wit: “A His- tory of the United States of America. By Rev. CHARLEs A. GoodRICH. With Engravings.” In conformity to the Act of the Congress of the United States, entitled “An Act for the encouragement of learning, by securing the copies of maps, charts, and books, to the authors and proprietors of such copies, during the times therein mentioned.” CHAS. A. INGERSOLL, Clerk of the District of Connecticut. A true copy of Record, examined and sealed by me. CHAS. A. INGERSOLL, Clerk of the District of Connecticut. SoME time since, the author published a His- tory of the United States for schools, the plan of which, though novel, met with general approba- tion. Encouraged by this sanction of a work, originally offered with much diffidence, the au- thor ventures to bring before the public the present volume, founded upon the work above- mentioned, but somewhat expanded, both in respect to leading facts, and minute details. As to the views which led the author to adopt a plan, in treating a historical subject, so widely departing from precedent and authority, he would refer to his preface to the school book for an explanation. Whether these views will satisfy every one of the excellence of the plan, or not, it is hoped, that they may at least rescue the work from being classed with that deluge of publications, which inundate the country, and which seem to have no better origin than conceit, or pecuniary speculation. For the benefit of the reader who may no advert to the work already mentioned, the fol. lowing explanations may be necessary. 4 PREFACE, This History of the United States is divided into eleven periods—each distinguished by some peculiar characteristic. The main purpose of this division is, to aid the memory by presenting certain prominent eras, from which the whole Subject of dates may be distinctly surveyed; and the object of attaching to each period some dis- tinguishing trait is, that the recollection may the more readily assign events to their eras, and thus determine their dates. Thus, a person acquaint- ed with our division of the subject knows that all discoveries, or nearly all, belong to period i, and therefore lie between the years 1492 and 1607. He is, therefore, able to fix the date of any discovery, with sufficient accuracy for all practical purposes. The same will apply to events belonging to the other periods. Two sizes of type are employed. The matter in larger type is designed to give a brief outline of the history of the United States, and may be read in connexion. The matter in smaller type is to be regarded rather in the light of notes, which, without studying exact regularity, are thrown in, as they may subserve the purposes of illustration and completeness in the delineation of events; or as they may contribute to support the interest, and establish the recollections of the reader. *... . . INTRoduction. &xºzzº&ºx& IN entering upon the perusal of a volume with higher objects in view than those of mere amuse- ment, it is well to place those objects distinctly before us. What advantages, then, do we pro- pose to ourselves, in perusing the History of the United States ? In general, it may be said, that the proper end of all reading is to make “good men and good citizens.” But by what particular steps is History to subserve this end ? 1. History sets before us striking instances of virtue, enterprise, courage, generosity, patriot- ism ; and, by a natural principle of emulation, incites us to copy such noble examples. History also presents us with pictures of the vicious ultimately overtaken by misery and shame, and thus solemnly warns us against vice. § 3. 2. History, to use the words of Professor Tytler, is the school of politics. That is, it opens the hidden springs of human affairs; the causes of the rise, grandeur, revolutions, and fall of empires; it points out the influence which the manners of a people exert upon a government, and the influence which that government recip- 6 INTRODUCTION. rocally exerts upon the manners of a people ; it illustrates the blessings of political union, and the miseries of faction ; the dangers of unbridled liberty, and the mischiefs of despotic power. Observation. In a free country, where every man may be called upon to discharge important duties, either by his vote, or by the administration of office, it is the business of all to be more or less acquainted with the science of politics. Nothing can better instruct us in this than the study of history. 3. History displays the dealings of God with mankind. It calls upon us often to regard with awe his darker judgments, and again it awakens the liveliest emotions of gratitude for his kind ind benignant dispensations. It cultivates a sense of dependence on him ; strengthens our onfidence in his benevolence; and impresses as with a conviction of his justice. 4. Besides these advantages, the study of history, if properly conducted, offers others, of inferior importance, indeed, but still they arc not to be disregarded. It chastens the imagina- ion; improves the taste; furnishes matter, for conversation and reflection; enlarges the range GENERAL DIVISION. THE History of the United States of America may be divided into Eleven Periods, each dis- tinguished by some striking characteristic, or remarkable circumstance. The ºffirgt 338ttoºſ will extend from the Discovery of America, by Columbus, 1492, to the first permanent English settlement in Ameri- ca, at Jamestown, Virginia, 1607, and is distin- guished for Discover IE-. . & & z Obs. Previous to the discovery of America in 1492, the in- habitants of Europe, Asia, and Africa, were of course ignorant of its existence. But soon after this event, several expeditions were fitted out, and came to make discoveries, in what was then called the “New World.” Accordingly, between 1492 and 1607, the principal countries lying along the eastern coast of North America, were discovered, and more or less explored. As our history, during this period, embraces little more than accounts of these expeditions, we characterize it as remarka, le for discoveries, . The Sºttom o ºtriotſ will extend from the Settlement of Jamestown, 1607, to the accession of William and Mary to the throne of England, 1689, and is distinguished for SETTLEMENTs. Obs. During this period our history is principally occupied in detailing the various settlements, which were either effected, or attempted, within the boundaries of the United States. It includes, indeed, wars with the natives—disputes between pro- prietors of lands, and colonies—the formation of governments, &c. &c.; but these are circumstances which pertain to, and form a part of, the settlement of new countries. . As this pe- riod embraces the settlement of most of the original States in . Af the Union, viz. Massachusetts, including Maine, Connecticut, Rhode Island, New Hampshire, New-York, New Jersey, Penn: sylvania, Maryland, Delaware, North and South Carolina, and Wºº, it is therefore characterized as remarkable for sett S GENERAL DIVISION. The Jijiru 33eviou will extend from the Accession of William and Mary to the throne of England, 1689, to the declaration of the war by England against France, called “the French and Indian War,” 1756, and is remarkable for the three wars of KING WILLIAM, QUEEN ANNE, and GEORGE II. Obs. So long as the Colonies remained attached to the Eng- glish crown, they became involved, of course, in the wars of the mother country. Three times during this period, was war proclaimed between England and France, and, as the French had possession of Canada, and were leagued with several powerful tribes of Indians, as often did the colonies become the theatre of their hostile operations. This period is therefore most remarkable for these three wars. . The jourth 33.triotſ will extend from the Declaration of war by England against France, 1756, to the commencement of hostilities by Great Britian against the American Colonies, in the battle of Lexington, 1775, and is distinguish- ed for the FRENCH and INDIAN WAR. The ſifth 33triotſ will extend from the Battle of Lexington, 1775, to the disbanding of the American Army at West Point, New-York, 1783, and is distinguished for the WAR of The REvolution. & 9 : The Šiptin 33triotſ will extend from the Disbanding of the Army, 1783, to the inaugu- ration of George Washington, as President of the United States, under the Federal Constitution, 1789, and is distinguished for the ForMATION AND ESTABLISHMENT of the FEDERAL Constitu- TION. . . . The Štínentſ, 3}t riotſ will extend from the Inauguration of President Washington, 1789, to the inauguration of John Adams, as President of the United States, 1797. This period is dis- tinguished for WASHINGTON's ADMINISTRATION. GENERAL DIVISION. 9 The 33ighth 33eriou will extend from the heauguration of President Adams, 1797, to the Inauguration of Thomas Jefferson as president of the United States, 1801. This period is dis. tinguished for ADAMs’ ADMINISTRATION. The Nintin 33triotſ will extend from the In- auguration of President Jefferson, 1801, to the Inauguration of James Madison as president of the United States, 1809. This period is distin- guished for JEFFERson's ADMINISTRATION. The ºſtritin 33¢tiotſ will extend from the In- auguration of President Madison, 1809, to the Inauguration of James Monroe, as president of the United States, 1817. This period is distin- guished for MADison’s ADMINISTRATION, and the late WAR witH GREAT BRITAIN: The gºitututt) 33triotſ will extend from the Inauguration of President Monroe, 1817, to the Inauguration of John Quincy Adams, and is dis- tinguished for Monroe's ADMINISTRATION. UNITED STATES. 3}triotſ 3%. DISTINGUISHED FOR DISCOVERIES, Extending from the Discovery of San Salva- dor by Columbus, 1492, to the first perma. ment English settlement at Jamestown, Vir- ginia, 1607. Section I. The early discoveries on the Con- tinent of America were made by the Spaniards, English, and French. - In these, the Spaniards took the lead; and have the honour of first communicating to Eu- rope the intelligence of a New World. For several years previously to the discovery of America, the atten...on of Europe had been drawn to the enterprises of the Portuguese, who were attempting to discover a passage to the East Indies, by doubling the southern extremity of Africa. % & Christopher Columbus, a native of Genoa, roused by these enterprises, and strongly per- suaded that a western passage to the East Indies was practicable, by steering across the Atlantic, determined to ascertain the point by experiment. Accordingly, after encountering various diffi- culties he sailed from Spain, Friday, Aug. 3, 1492, with a small fleet, under the patronage of Ferdinand and Isabella, then on the united thrones of Castile and Arragon; and on the 12th of Oct. 1492, discovered the Island San Salvador. This Island is three thousand miles west of the PERIOD I.i.1492.1607....DISCOVERIES 1 I Canaries, the most western land known at the time of Columbus' discovery, and is now known as one of the Bahamas. | & Columbus, after maturing his plan, first offered to sail under the patronage of the Senate of Genoa, but they treated his pro- ject as visionary. He next solicited the patronage of the Por- tuguese, but was denied. . Disappointed in these applications, and despairing of assist- ance from Henry VII. of England, to whom he had sent his brother Bartholomew, but, who, being captured, did not reach England for several years: Columbus next laid his plans before Ferdinand and Isabella. % Ferdinand was long deaf to his application; but through the favour of Isabella, who listened to his plans, a treaty was made with him. The queen sold her jewels and defrayed the ex- pense of his outfit and voyage. His fleet consisted of the Santa Maria, Pinta and Nigna, with ninety men, victualled for a year. The whole expense was the small sum of about sixteen thousand dollars. Columbus, when he sailed, expected to land in India;” but Providence was opening his way to an unknown world. He first touched at the Canaries, and thence stretched westward into seas as yet unexplored. x xx After sailing about two months, the crew became anxious, and, discontented. They were appalled at the extent of their voyage, and despaired of accomplishing the purposes for which, it was undertaken. Columbus, however, in the midst of mu-, tiny, and while every heart around him sunk under the most gloomy, apprehensions, remained firm, and inflexible. He comr trived to pacify the spirit of rebellion, by promising to return, if land should not be discovered within three days. The night of the 11th of October, 1492, was memorable to Columbus, and to the world. Convinced from appearances that and was near, he ordered the sails furled, and a watch set. No. eye, however, was shut. All on board was suspense and sleep- less expectation. % . About midnight, the cry of land'ſ land! was heardon board, the Pinta. The morning, camer—October 12th O. S-an realized their anticipations. The island was distinctly in view. The occasion demanded an acknowledgment to HIM, who had so auspiciously w spiciously, gº ided their way. All, therefore, bowed in, imble gratitude, and joined in a hymn of thanks to God, *It has been stated, and perhaps with truth, that Columbus expected adº western continent; but still the best authorities unitein saying, that his object was to discover a western passage to India. 12 PERIOD 1.1492.1607. Discover Es. Columbus, in a rich dress, and with a drawn sword, soon after landed with his men, with whoma having kneeled and kissed the ground with tears of joy, he took formal possession of the Island, in the name of Queen Isabella, his patron. On landing, the Spaniards were surprised to find a race of people, quite unlike any that they had ever seen before. They were of a dusky, copper colour—naked—beardless, with long black hair, floating on their shoulders, or bound in tresses round their heads. The natives were still more surprised at the sight of the Spaniards, whom they considered, as the children of the sun, their idol. The ships they looked upon as animals, with eyes of lightning, and voices of thunder. Having spent some time in examining the country, and in an amicable traffic with the natives, Columbus set sail on his re. turn. He was overtaken by a storm which had nearly proved fatal. During the storm, Columbus hastily enclosed in a cake of wax, a short account of his voyage and discovery, which he put into a tight cask, and threw it into the sea. This he did, hoping that if he perished, it might fall into the hamds of somé navigator, or be cast ashore, and thus the knowledge of his dis- covery be preserved to the world. But the storm abated, and he arrived safe in Spain, March 15th, 1493. For this discovery, it being the first, and having laid the foun- dation for all the subsequent discoveries in America, Columbus was doubtless entitled to the honour of giving a name to the New World. But he was robbed of it by the address of Ame- ricus Vespucius. This adventurer was a Florenine who sailed to the New World in 1499, with one Alonzo Ojeda, a gallant and active officer, who had accompanied Columbus in his first voyage. On his return, he published so flattering an account of his voyage, that his name was given to the continent with mani- fest injustice to Columbus. & 8 After this, Columbus made several other voyages, but did not discover the continent of America until Aug. 1, 1498, during his third voyage, at which time he made the land, now called Terra Firma, South America. N. During this voyage Columbus was destined to experience severe afflictions. After his departure from Spain, having been appointed governor of the New World, his enemies, by false representations, persuaded the king to .." another in his place. At the same time the king was induced to give orders that Columbus should be seized and sent to Spain. This order was executed with rigid severity, and the heroic Columbus returned to Spain in irons! . . On his arrival, he was set at liberty by the king, but he never recovered his authority. Soon after a fourth voyage which he % . 12 of Columbus, p ding Lan }}\\ \\ № ș ſae № § p. 16 iculture, in Agr d dian women engage In PERIOD 1.1492.1607. DiscoverIES. 13 made, finding Isabella his patroness, dead, and himself Ilê. glected, he sunk beneath his misfortunes and infirmities, and died, May 20, 1506, in the fifty-ninth year of his age. Section II. In May, 1497, John Cabot, and his son, Sebastian Cabot, commenced a voyage of discovery, under the patronage of Henry VII. king of England ; and on the 24th of June, dis- covered land, which, being the first they had seen, they called, Prima Vista. This was the Island of Newfoundland. Leaving this, they soon af- ter fell in with a smaller island, which they nam- ed St. Johns; thence, continuing westerly, they made the first discovery” of the Continent of America, and ranged its coast from Labrador to Virginia, or according to others, to Florida. - Section III. The French attempted no dis. coveries on the American coast until 1524. Thiſ year Francis I. commissioned Verrazano, a Flo- rentine, for this purpose. He ranged the coast from Florida to the 50th degree of North. Lati- tude, and named the country New France. Section IV. In 1584, Sir Walter Raleigh, un- der commission of Queen Elizabeth, arrived in America, entered Pamplico Sound, now in North Carolina, and thence proceeded to Roanoke, an island near the mouth of Albemarle Sound. This country he took possession of, and, on re- turning to England, gave so splendid a descrip- tion of its beauty and fertility, that Queen Eliza- beth bestowed upon it the name of Virginia, in celebration of her reign, and in allusion to her being unmarried. - Section V. In 1602, Capt. Bartholomew Gos- mold, from Falmouth, England, discovered and gave name to Cape Cod. * There follow the authority of Dr. Holmes in his “American An- ºlº” who places the first discovery of the Continent by Columbus, in 1493, º: º ; vºn 2 14 PERIOD 1.1492.1607. Discoveries. Gosnold, being bound to Virginia, his discovery was acci- dental. He named Cape Cod, in reference to the abundance of Codfish about it. Coasting south, he discovered Nantucket, Buzzard's Bay, Martha's Vineyard, and one of the Elizabeth Islands. # : 3. x Other expeditions were fitted out and came to America for discovery ; we have however noticed above the leading adven- turers and their discoveries during this period. . TNottº. Section WI. As we are now about to enter upon a period which will exhibit our ancestors as inhabitants of this new world, it will be in- teresting to know what was its aspect when they first set their feet upon its shores. 2 . STATE OF THE COUNTRY.-On the arrival of the first settlers, North America was almost one unbroken wilderness. From the re- cesses of these forests were heard the panther, the catamount, the bear, the wildcat, the wolf, and other beasts of prey. From the thickets rushed the buffalo, the elk, the moose, and the carrabo ; and scattered on the mountains, and plains, were seen the stag and fallow deer. Nu- merous flocks of the feathered tribe enlivened the air, and multitudes of fish filled the rivers, or 3. §. along the shores. The spontaneous pro- łuctions of the soil, also, were found to be variº us and abundant. In all parts of the land grew grapes, which historians have likened to the an- cient grapes of Eshcol. In the south, were found muſberries, plumbs, melons, cucumbers, tobacco, corn, peas, beans, potatoes, squashes, pompi- ons, &c. Acorns, walnuts, chesnuts, wild cher. ries, currants, strawberries, whortleberries, in the season of them, grew wild in every quarter of the country. g reRiod 1.1492.1607...discovenies. 15 VII. ABORIGINES.—The country was in- habited by numerous tribes or clans of Indians Of their number, at the period the English set- tled among them, no certain estimate has been transmitted to us. They did not probably much exceed 150,000 within the compass of the thir- teen original states.” . . In their physical character, the different In- dian tribes, within the boundaries of the United States, were nearly the same. Their persons were tall, straight, and well proportioned. Their skins were red, or of a copper brown; their eyes black, their hair long, black, and coarse. In constitution they were firm and vigorous, capable of sustaining great fatigue and hardship. As to their general character, they were quick of apprehension, and not wanting in genius. At times, they were friendly, and even courteous. In council, they were distinguished for gravity and eloquence: in war, for bravery and address. When provoked to anger, they were sullen and retired; and when determined upon revenge, no danger would deter them ; neither absence nor time could cool them. If captured by an enemy, they never asked life, nor would they betray emotions of fear, even in view of the tomahawk, or of the kindling faggot. - They had no books, or written literature, except rude hiero- glyphics; and education among them was confined to the arts of war, hunting, fishing, and the few manufactures which existed among them, most of which every male was more or less in- structed in. Their language was rude, but sonorous, metaphori cal, and emergetic. It was well suited to the purposes of public speaking, and, when accompanied by the i and uttered with the deep guttural tones of to have had a singularly wild and imp some few war songs, which were little * This is the estimate of Dr Trumbull 16 PERIOD I,...1492....1607....DISCOVERIES. chorus, out, it is believed, they had no other compositions which were preserved. “, Their arts and manufactures were confined to the construc- tion of wigwams, bows and arrows, wanpum, ornaments, stone hatchets, mortars for pounding corn, to the dressing of skins, weaving of coarse mats from the bark of trees, or a coarse sort of hemp, &c. % - - Their agriculture was small in extent, and the articles they cultivated, were few in number. Corn, beans, peas, potatoes, melons, and a few others of a similar kind, were all. Their skill in medicine was confined to a few simple pre- scriptions and operations. Both the cold and warm bath were often applied, and a considerable number of plants were used with success. For some diseases they knew no remedy, in which case, they resorted to their Powow, or priest, who under took the removal of the disease by means of sorcery. It may be remarked, however, that the diseases to which the Indians were liable, were few, compared with those which pre vail in civilized society. ~ - The employments of the men were principally hunting, fish- ing, and war. The women dressed the food ; took charge of the domestic concerns; tilled their narrow and scanty fields; and performed almost all the drudgery connected with their household affairs. * > - The amusements of the men were principally leaping, shoot- ing at marks, dancing, gaming, and hunting, in all of which they made the most violent exertions. Their dances were usually performed round a large fire. In their war dances they sung, or recked the feats which they or their ancestors had achieved; represented the manner in which they were per- formed, and wrought themselves up to an inexpressible degree of martial enthusiasm. The females occasionally joined in some of these sports, but had none peculiar to themselves. Their dress was various. In summer, they wore little be- sides a covering about the waist; but in winter, they clothed themselves in the skins of wild beasts. They were exceedingly fond of ornaments. On days of show and festivity, their sachems wore mantles of deer-skin, embroidered with white beads, or copper, or they were painted with various devices, Hideousness was the object aimed at in painting themselves, A chain of fish-bones about the neck, or the skin of a wildcat, was a sign of royalty. For habitations, the Indians had weekwams, or wigwams as pronounced by the English. These originally consisted of a strong pole, erected in the centre, around which, at the distance of ten or twelve feet, other poles were driven obliquely into the 3. PERIop 1.1492.1607....DISCOVERIES, 17 ground, and fastened to the centre pole at the top. Their coverings were of mats, or barks of trees, so well adjusted as to render them dry and comfortable. - Their domestic utensils extended not beyond a hatchet of stone, a few shells and sharp stones, which they used for knives: stone mortars for pounding corn, and some mats and skins upon which they slept. They sat, and ate, and lodged on the ground. With shells and stones they scalped their enemies, dressed their game, cut their hair, &c. They made nets of thread, twisted from the bark of Indian hemp, or of the sinews of the moose and deer. For fish-hooks they used bones which were bent. . - Their food was of the coarsest and simplest kind—the flesh, and even the entrails of all kinds of wild beasts and birds; and in their proper season, green corn, beans, peas, &c. &c. which they cultivated, and other fruits, which the country sponta- neously produced. Flesh and fish they roasted on a stick, or broiled on the fire. In some instances they boiled their meat and corn by putting hot stones in water. Corn they parched, especially in the winter, and upon this they lived in the absence of other food. - The money of the Indians, called wanpum, consisted of small beads wrought from shells, and strung on belts, and in chains. The wanpum of the New-England Indians was black, blue, and white. That of the Six Nations was of a purple colour. Six of the white beads, and three of black, or blue, became of the value of a penny. A belt of wampum was given as a token of friendship, or as a seal or confirmation of a treaty. 3 There was little among them that could be called society. Except when roused by some strong excitement, the men were generally indolent, taciturn, and unsocial. The women were too degraded and oppressed to think of much besides their toils. Removing too, as the seasons changed, or as the game grew scarce, or as danger from a stronger tribe threatened, there was little opportunity for forming those local attachments, and those social ties, which spring from a long residence in a particular spot. Their langnage, also, though energetic, was too barren to serve the purposes of familiar conversation. In order to be understood and felt, it required the aid of strong and ani- mated gesticulation, which could take place only when great occasions excited them. It seems, therefore, that they drew no considerable part of their enjoyments from intercourse with one another. Female beauty had little power over the men; and all other pleasures gave way to the strong impulses of public festivity, or burning captives, or seeking murderous revenge, et the chase, or war, or glory. . § 2* 18 PERIOD 1...1492.1607....DISCOVER, E5. War was the favourite employment of the savages on North America. It roused them from the lethargy into which they fell, when they ceased from the chase, and furnished them an opportunity to distinguish themselves—to achieve deeds of glory, and taste the sweets of revenge. Their weapons were bows and arrows, headed with flint or other hard stones, which they discharged with great precision and force. The southern Indians used targets made of bark; the Mohawks clothed them- selves with skins, as a defence against the arrows of their ene- mies. When they fought in the open field, they rushed to the attack with incredible fury, and, at the same time, uttered their appalling war whoop. Those whom they had taken captive they often tortured, with every variety of cruelty, and to their dying agonies added every species of insult. If peace was concluded on, the chiefs of the hostile tribes ratified the treaty by smoking in succession the same pipe, called the calumet, or pipe of peace. º The government of the Indians in general, was an absolute monarchy; though it differed in different tribes. The will of the sachem was law. In matters of moment, he consulted, how- ever, his counsellors; but his decisions were final. War and peace, among some tribes, seem to have been determined on in a council formed of old men, distinguished by their exploits. When in council, they spoke at pleasure, and always listened to the speaker, with profound and respectful silence. “When proposi- tions for war or peace were made, or treaties proposed to them, by the colonial governours, they met the ambassadors in council, and at the end of each paragraph, or proposition, the principal sachem delivered a short stick to one of his council, intimating that it was his peculiar duty to remember that paragraph. This was repeated till every proposal was finished; they then retired to deliberate among themselves. . After their deliberations were ended, the sachem, or some counsellors to whom he had delegated this office, replied to every paragraph in its turn, with an exactness scarcely exceeded in the written correspondence of civilized powers. Each man actually remembered what was committed to him, and with his assistance, the person who re- plied remembered the whole.”. : w The religious notions of the natives consisted of traditions, mingled with many superstitions. Like the ancient Greeks, Romans, Persians, Hindoos, &c. they believed in the existence of two gods, the one good, who was the superior, and whom they styled the Great, or Good Spirit; the other evil. They worshipped both; and of both formed images of stone, to which hey paid 1eligious homage. Besides these, they worshipped ious other deities—such as fire, water, thunder—anything PERIOD 1.1492.1607. Discoveries. 19 which they conceived to be superior to themselves, and capable of doing them injury. The manner of worship was to sing and dance round large fires. Besides dancing, they offered prayers and sometimes sweet scented powder. In Virginia, the Indians offered blood, deer’s suet, and tobacco. Of the creation and the deluge they had distinct traditions. Marriage among them was generally a temporary contract, The men chose their wives agreeable to fancy, and put them away at pleasure. Marriage was celebrated, however, with some ceremony, and in many instances was observed with fi- delity, not unfrequently it was as lasting as life. Polygamy was common among them. Their treatment of females was cruel and oppressive. They were considered by the men as slaves, and treated as such. Those forms of decorum between the sexes, which lay the foun. dation for the respectful and gallant courtesy, with which women are treated in civilized society, were unknown among them. Of course, females were not only required to perform severe labour, but often felt the full weight of the passions and caprices of the Iſlen. # The rites of burial among the Indians, varied but little throughout the continent. They generally dug holes in the ground, with sharpened stakes. In the bottom of the grave were laid sticks, upon which the corpse, wrapped in skins and mats, was deposited. The arms, utensils, paints, and ornaments of the deceased were buried with him, and a mound of earth raised over his grave. Among some tribes in New England, and among the Five Nations, the dead were buried in a sitting posture, with their faces towards the east. During the burial they attered the most lamentable cries, and continued their mourning for several days. *::: … The origin of the Indians, inhabiting the country, on the ar- rival of the English colonists, is involved in much obscurity, and several different answers have been given by learned men te the inquiry, whence did they come to America? The opinion best supported is, that they originated in Asia, and that at some form- er period, not now to be ascertained, they emigrated from that country to America, over which, in succeeding years, their de- scendants spread. This opinion is rendered the more probable by the fact, that the figure, complexion, dress, manners, cus- toms, &c. &c. of the nations of both continents are strikingly si- milar. That they might have emigrated from the eastern conti- mentis evident, since the distance between the East Cape of Asia, and Cape Prince of Wales in America, across the streights of Bhering, is only about forty miles, a much shorter distance than 20 PERIOD I....1492.1607....DISCOVERIES. savages frequently sail in their canoes. Besides this, the streight is sometimes frozen over. itfitttions. VIII. We shall find it pleasant and profitable, occasionally ..o pause in our history, and consider what instruction may be drawn from the portion of it that has been perused. In the story of Columbus, we are introduced to a man of ge- nius, energy, and enterprise. We see him forming a new, and in that age, a mighty project; and having matured his plan, we see him set himself vigorously about its execution. For a time, he is either treated as a visionary, or baffled by opposition. But, neither discouraged, nor dejected, he steadily pursues his purpose, surmounts every obstacle, and at length spreads his sails upon the unknown waters of the Atlantic. A kind Pro. vidence auspiciously guides his way, and crowns his enterprise with the unexpected discovery of a new world. . While we admire the lofty qualities of Columbus, and look with wonder at the consequences which have resulted from his discovery, let us emulate his decision, energy and perseverance Many are the occasions in the present world, on which it will be important to summon these to our aid; and by their means, ma- ny useful objects may be accomplished, which, without them, would be unattained. 3. : 3. & r But, while we thus press forward in the career of usefulness —while we aim to accomplish for our fellow men all the amount of good in our power, let us moderate our expectations of re- ward here, by the consideration that Columbus died the victim of ingratitude and disappointment. Another consideration, of still deeper interest, is suggested by the story of Columbus. In his first voyage, he contemplated chiefly the discovery of a passage to India. We who live to mark the wonderful events which have flowed from his discove. ry, within the short space of three centuries, cannot but advert with awe to HIM, who attaches to the actions of a single indi- vidual, a train of consequences so stupendous and unexpected. How lightly soever, then, we may think of our conduct, let as remember that the invisible hand of Providence may be connect. ing with our smallest actions the most momentous results, to our- selves and others. With respect to Americus Vespucius, it may be observed, that although he deprived Columbus, of the merited honour of giving his name to the new world, and gained this distinction for himself—still, his name will ever remain stigmatized as having appropriated that to himself, which fairly belonged to another UNITED STATES. period º. DISTINGUISHEd For sr.TTLEMENTs. Eatending from the first permanent English settlement at Jamestown, Virginia, 1607, to the accession of William and Mary to the throne of England, 1689. Section I. Prior to the year 1607, a period of one hundred and fifteen years from the discovery of San Salvador, by Columbus, attempts had been made to effect settlements in various parts of North America : but no one proved success- ful, until the settlement at Jamestown. In 1606, King James I. of England, granted letters patent, an exclusive right, or privilege, to two companies, called the London and Ply- mouth Companies: by which they were author. ized to possess the lands, in America, lying be- tween the 34th and 45th degrees of north lati- tude; the southern part, called South Virginia, to the London, and the northern, called North Virginia, to the Plymouth Company. Under this patent, the London Company sent Capt. Christopher Newport to Virginia, Dec. 20th, 1606, with a colony of one hundred and five k. to commence a settlement on the island oanoke, now in North Carolina.-After a te- dious voyage of four months, by the circuitous route of the West Indies, he entered Chesapeake, Bay, having been driven north of the place of his destination. : * : ... . . . . . . . . . . . . . 22 FERIoD II.1492.1607.setT in [ENTS, Here it was concluded to land; and, proceed- ing up a river, called by the lndians, Powhatan, but, by the colony, James River, on a beautiful peninsula, in May, 1607, they began the first permanent settlement in North America, and called it Jamestown. . The government of this colony was formed in England, by the London Company. It con- sisted of a council of seven persons, appointed by the Company, with a president chosen by the council, from their number, who had two votes. All matters of moment were examined by this council, and determined by a majority. Capt. Newport brought over the names of this council, carefully sealed in a box, which was opened after their arrival. º, * Among the most enterprising and useful members of this colony and one of its magistrates, was Capt. John Smith. As he acted a distinguished part in the early history of the colony of Virginia, a brief sketch of his life will be interesting. . He was born in Willoughby, in Lincolnshire, England, in 1579. From his earliest youth, he discovered a rowing and ro- mantic genius, and appeared irresistibly bent on extravagant and daring enterprises. At the age of thirteen, becoming tired of study, he disposed of his satchel and books, with the inten. tion of escaping to sea. But the death of his father, just at that time, frustrated his plans for the present, and threw him upon guardians, who, to repress the waywardness of his genius, con- fined him to a counting room. From a confinement so irk- some, however, he contrived to escape not long after, and, with ten shillings in his pocket, entered the train of a young noble. man, travelling to France. § . On their arrival at Orleans, he received a discharge from fur- ther attendance upon lord Bertie, who advanced him money to return to England. Smith had no wish, however, to return. With the money he had received, he visited Paris, from which he proceeded to the low countries, where he enlisted into the service as a soldier. Having continued some time in this capacity, he was induced to accompany a gentleman to Scotland, who promised to recom- mend him to the notice of king James. Being disappointed PERIOD II.iion...isor...settlements. 23 however in this, he returned to England, and visited the place of his birth. Not finding the company there that suited his ro- mantic turn, he erected a booth in some wood, and in the man- ner of a recluse, retired from society, devoting himself to the study of military history and tactics, diverting himself, at inter- vals, with his horse and lance. Recovering about this time a part of his father's estate, which had been in dispute, in 1596, he again commenced his travels, being then only seventeen years of age. His first stage was Flanders, where meeting with a Frenchman, who pretended to be heir to a noble family, he was prevailed upon to accompany him to France. On their arrival at St. Valor, in Picardy, by the connivance of the shipmaster, the Frenchman and attend- ants robbed him of his effects, and succeeded in making their escape. . Eager to pursue his travels, he endeavoured to procure a place on hoard a man of war. In one of his rambles, search- ing for a ship that would receive him, he accidently met one of the villains concerned in robbing him. Without exchanging a word, they both instantly drew their swords. The contest was severe, but Smith succeeded in wounding and disarming his an- tagonist, and obliged him to confess his guilt. After this ren- counter, having received pecuniary assistance from an acquaint- ance, the earl of Ployer, he travelled along the French coast to Bayonne, and thence crossed to Marseilles, visiting and observ- ing every thing in his course, which had reference to naval on military architecture. At Marseilles he embarked for Italy in company with a num- her of pilgrims. But here also new troubles awaited him. During the voyage, a tempest arising, the ship was forced into Toulon, after leaving which, contrary winds so impeded their progress, that in a fit of rage, the pilgrims, imputing their ill fortune to the presence of a heretic, threw him into the sea. Being a good swimmer, he was enabled to reach the island of St. Mary, off Nice, at no great distance, where he was taken on board a ship, in which, altering his course, he sailed tº Alexandria, in Egypt, and thence coasted the Levant. Having spent some time in this region of county, he sailed on his return, and on leaving the ship received about two thousand dollars, as his portion of a rich prize, which they had taken dur- ng the voyage. Smith landed at Antibes. He now travelled through Italy, ºossed the Adriatic, and passed into Stirria, to the seat of Ferdinand archduke of Austria. The emperor being at that **** with the Turks, he entered his army as a volun- 24 PERIOD II.1492.1607....SETTLEMENTS. By means of his valour and ingenuity, aided by his military knowledge and experience, he soon distinguished himself, and was advanced to the command of a company, consisting of two hundred and fifty horsemen, in the regiment of count Meldrick, a nobleman of Transylvania. < The regiment in which he served was engaged in several ha- zardous enterprises, in which Smith exhibited a bravery admired by all the army, and when Meldrick left the imperial service for that of his native prince, Smith followed. § At the siege of Regal he was destined to new adventures, The Ottomans deriding the slow advance of the Transylvania army, the lord Turbisha despatched a messenger with a chal- lenge, that for the diversion of the ladies of the place, he would fight any captain of the christian troops. … The honour of accepting this challenge was determined by ot, and fell on Smith. At the time appointed the two cham pions appeared in the field on horseback, and in the presence of the armies, and of the ladies of the insulting Ottoman, rushed impetuously to the attack. A short, but desperate conflict en- sued, at the end of which Smith was seen bearing the head of the lifeless Turbisha in triumph to his general. . The fall of the chief filled his friend Crualgo with indignation, and roused him to avenge his death. Smith accordingly soon after received a challenge from him, which he did not hesitate to accept, and the two exasperated combatants, upon their chargers, fell with desperate fury upon each other. Victory again followed the faulchion of Smith, who sent the Turk head- long to the ground. . It was now the turn of Smith to make the advance. He de- spatched a message therefore to the Turkish ladies, that if they were desirous of more diversion of a similar kind, they should be welcome to his head, in case their third champion could take it. Bonamalgro tendered his services, and haughtily accepted the Christian's challenge. When the day arrived the spectators as- sembled, and the combatants entered the field. It was an hour of deep anxiety to all; as the horsemen approached, a deathless silence pervaded the multitude. A blow from the sabre of the Turk brought Smith to the ground, and for a moment it seemed as if the deed of death was done. Smith however was only stunned. He rose like a lion, when he shakes the dew from his mane for the fight, and vaulting into his saddle, made his faul- chion “shed fast atonement for its first delay.” It is hardly necessary to add, that the head of Bonamalgro was added to the number. Smith was received with transports of joy by the prince of dian Village, p In . 16. }; Š º: º tº: sº º §§ 3 . 16. & p an Amusements. Indi PERIOD II.1492.1607.setTLEMENTs. 25 Transylvania, who after the capture of the place, presented him with his picture set in gold, granted him a pension of three hun- dred ducats a year, and conferred on him a coat of arms, bear- ing three Turk’s heads in a shield. 3. * * In a subsequent battle between the Transylvanian army, and a body of Turks and Tartars, the former was defeated, with a loss of many killed and wounded. Among the wounded was the gallant Smith. His dress bespoke his consequence, and he was treated kindly. On his recovery from his wounds he was sold to the Basha Bogul, who sent him as a present to his mis- tress at Constantinople, assuring her that he was a Bohemian nobleman, whom he had conquered, and whom he now present, ed to her as her slave. x ~. . The present proved more acceptable to the lady than her lord intended. As she understood Italian, in that language Smith informed her of his country and quality, and by his singular ad- dress, and engaging manners, won the affection of her heart. Designing to secure him to herself, but fearing lest some mis- fortune should befall him, she sent him to her brother, a bashaw, on the borders of the sea of Asoph, with a direction that he should be initiated into the manners and language, as well as the religion of the Tartars. % . From the terms of her letter, her brother suspected her de- sign, and resolved to disappoint her. Immediately after Smith's arrival, therefore, he ordered him to be stripped, his head and beard to be shaven, and with an iron collar about his neck, and a dress of hair cloth, he was driven forth to labour among some christian slaves. ź § ...ſº The circumstances of Smith were now peculiarly afflicting. He could indulge no hope, except from the attachment of his mistress, but as her distance was great, it was improbable that she would soon become acquainted with the story of his misfor- & midst of his distress, an opportunity to escape present- editself, but under circumstances, which, to a person of a less adventurous spirit, would have served only to heighten this dis- * oyment was threshing, at the distance of a league, ice of the bashaw, who daily visited him, but rigorous severity, and in fits of anger even Slows. This last was treatment to which the %. . . . . .3& & f Smith could not submit. Watching a fa- vºurable opportunity, on an occasion of the tyrant's visit, and when his attendants were absent, he levelled his threshing in- strument at him, and laid him in the dust. ... He then hastily filled a bag with grain, and mouilting the bash aw's horse, put himself upon fortune. Tirecting his course 26 PERIOD II.i.1607.1689,...SETTLEMENTS, towards a desert, he entered its recesses, and continuing to con- ceal himselfin its obscurities for several days, at length made his escape. In sixteen days he arrived at Exapolis on the river Don, where meeting with the Russian garrison, the commander treated him kindly, and gave him letters of recommendation to other commanders in that region. - a $ He now travelled through a part of Russia, and Poland, and at length reached his friends in Transylvania. At Leipsic he enjoyed the pleasure of meeting his colonel count Meldrick, and Sigismund, prince of Transylvania, who presented him with fifteen hundred ducats. His fortune being thus in a measure re- º he travelled through Germany, France and Spain, and aving visited the kingdom of Morocco, returned once more to England. 3. - - Such is a rapid view of the life of this interesting adventurer, down to his arrival in his "native land. At this time the settle. ment of America was occupying the attention of many distin- guished men in England. The life of Smith, united to his fond- ness for enterprises of danger and difficulty, bad prepared him to embark with zeal in a project so novel and sublime as that of exploring the wilds of a newly discovered continent. He was soon attached to the expedition, about to sail under Newport, and was appointed one of the magistrates of the colo- ny sent cver at that time. Before the arrival of the colony, his | colleagues in office becoming jealous of his influence, arrested him, on the absurd charge that he designed to murder the coun- |cil, usurp the government, and make himself king of Virginia. He was therefore rigorously confined during the remainder of the voyage. º On their arrival in the country he was liberated, but could not obtain a trial, although in the tone of conscious integrity, he repeatedly demanded it. The infant colony was soon in- volved in perplexity and danger. Notwithstanding Smith had been calumniated, and his honour deeply wounded, his was not the spirit to remain idle when his services were needed. Nobly disdaining revenge, he offered his assistance, and by his talents, experience, and indefatigable zeal, furnished important aid to the infant colony. Continuing to assert his innocence, and to demand a trial, the time at length arrived when his enemies could postpone it no longer. After a fair hearing of the case, he was honourably cquitted of the charges alleged against him, and soon after tool his seat in the council. - The affairs of the colony becoming more settled, the active spirit of Smith prompted him to explore the neighbouring coun- try. In an attempt to ascertain the source of Chickahomi * PERIOD II.....1607.1689....SETTLEMENTS 27 ver, he ascended in a barge as far as the stream was uninterrupt- ed. Designing to proceed still further, he left the barge in the keeping of the crew, with strict injunctions on no account to leave her, and with two Englishmen, and two Indians left the party. But no sooner was he out of view, than the crew, impatient of restraint, repaired on board the barge, and proceeding some dis- tance down the stream, landed at a place where a body of Hn- dians lay in ambush, by whom they were seized. By means of the crew, the rout of Smith was ascertained, and a party of Indians were immediately despatched to take him. On coming up with him, they fired, killed the Englishmen, and wounded himself. With great presence of mind, he now tied his indian guide to his left arm, as a shield from the enemies’ ar- rows, while with his musket he despatched three of the most for- ward of the assailants. w In this manner he continued to retreat towards his canoe, while the Indians, struck with admiration of his bravery follow- ed with espectful caution Unfortunately coming to a sunken spot filled with mire, while engrossed with eyeing his pursuers, he sunk so deep as to be unable to extricate himself, and was forced to surrender. Fruitful in expedients. to avert immediate death, he presented an ivory compass to the chief, whose attention was arrested by the vibrations of the needle Taking advantage of the impres- sion which he had thus made, partly by signs, and partly by language, he excited their wonder still more by telling them of tts singular powers - . . Their wonde, however seemed soon to abate, and their atten- tion returned to their prisoner He was now bound, and tied to a tree, and the savages were preparing to direct their arrows at his breast. At this instant the chief, holding up the compass, they laid down their arms, and led him in triumph to Powhatan their king % . Powhatan and his council doomed him to death, as a man . whose courage and genius were peculiarly dangerous to the In- dians, Preparations were accordingly made, and when the time arrived, Smith was led out to execution. His head was laid up. on a stone, and a club presented to Powhatan, who himself claimed the honour of becoming the executioner. The say in silence were circling round, and the giant arm of P had already raised the club to strike the fatal blow, wh astonishment the young and beautiful Pocahontas, hist with a shriek of terror, rushed from the throng, and threw her self upon the body of Smith. At the same time she cast an im oring look towards her furious but astonished father, and all the eloquence of mute, but impassioned sorrow, besought his life. . : … . The remainder of the scene was honourable to Powhatan. The club of the chief was still uplifted, but a father's pity had touched his heart, and the eye that had at first kindled with wrath was now fast losing its fierceness. He looked round as if to collect his fortitude, or perhaps to find an excuse for his weakness, in the pity of the attendants. A similar sympathy had melted the savage throng, and seemed to join in the petition, which the weeping Pocahontas felt, but durst not utter, “My father let the prisoner live.” Powhatan raised his daughter, and the captive, scarcely yet assured of safety, from the earth. Shortly after Powhatan dismissed Capt. Smith with assur- ances of friendship, and the next morning, accompanied with a guard of twelve men, he arrived safely at Jamestown, after a captivity of seven weeks.” In 1609, circumstances having arisen to interrupt the friendly dispositions of Powhatan towards the colony, he plotted their entire destruction. His design was to attack them unapprised, and to cut them off at a blow. In a dark and stormy night, the heroic Pocahontas hastened alone to Jamestown, and disclosed the inhuman plot of her fa- ther. The colony were thus put on their guard, and their ruin averted. ~ * * 3: . It may be interesting to add concerning Pocahontas, that some time after this she was married to an English gentleman, by the name of Rolfe, with whom she visited England. She embraced, the Christian religion, and was baptized by the name of Rebecca. She left one son, who had several daughters, the descendants of whom inherited her lands in Virginia, and are among the most respectable families in that State. Section II. In the early part of this year, 1609, the London Company surrendered their rights to the king, and obtained a new charter. Under this charter Thomas West. Lord Dela- ware, was appointed governour for life. Towards the close of the year, the colony at Jamestown, amounting to five hundred inhabitants, was reduced in six months, bypestilence, to sixty. Disheartened by this fearful ca- Hamity, they resolved to leave the country, and return to England. They therefore embarked on board some vessels, just arri from Bermuda; but meeting lord Delaware, the new govern * Burk's Virginia. PERIOD II.1607.1689. SETTLEMENTs. 29 with one hundred and eighty men and provisions, they returned with them to their settlement, and the affairs of the colony again began to prosper. ; * Section III. In 1614, some Dutch adventur- ers built a fort at Albany, on Hudson's river. This commenced the settlement, and laid the foundation of that city. The next year, a fort was built, and a settlement begun, by the Dutch, on the Island of Manhattan, now New-York. Hudson's river derived its name from Henry Hudson, who entered, and gave name to it, 1608. At this time, or according to others, in 1609, he ascended the river to the place were Al- bany now stands. Hudson was in the service of the Dutch East India Company, or sold his claims to them. The Dutch, accordingly, took possession of the country, naming it New Ne- therlands. New-York, they called New-Amsterdam. These names they retained, till the conquest of the country, by the English, in 1664. ~ : ... • Section IV. In 1614, Capt. John Smith sailed from England, with two ships, to America. He ranged the coast from Penobscot to Cape Cod. On his return to England, he presented a Map of the country to Prince Charles, who named it NEw-ENGLAND. - ... ::3% Six years from this, Dec. 22, 1620, a colony, commonly known by the name of Puritans, land- ed at Plymouth, in Massachusetts, and soon after began the first permanent settlement in New- England. These colonists were originally from England; but were driven thence by the arm of persecution, for urging a more thorough reform- ation in the Church of England. . . They fled from England, first to Amsterdam, • 3.3% - # - g - # > -- º III glland, in 1607, with their pastor, the Rev. Mr. Robinson. From Amsterdam, they soon af- terremoved to Leyden, where they continued, Among the motives which influenced them to 30 PERIOD II.1607.1689. SETTLEMENTs. purer worship and a greater liberty ofconscience,” was the principal. To secure these objects, they were willing to become exiles from a civilized country, and encounter the dangers and priva- tions which might meet them in a wilderness. Having resolved on a removal to America, they concluded to settle on Hudson's river, and to live in a distinct body, under the protection of the London, or South Virginia Company. Having with some difficulty obtained a grant from the Virgi. nia Company, they speedily prepared for the voyage, departed from Leyden in July, touched at South-Hampton, England, whence they sailed in August; but on account of a leak in one of their ships, they were twice compelled to put back. ź On the sixth of September following, they finally bid adieu to their country, and on the ninth of November, discovered Cape Cod. It is said, that the master of the vessel was a Dutchman, and was bribed in Holland, to carry them to the north of the Hudson, that they might not disturb the Dutch there; who, though compelled in 1614, by Capt. Argal from Jamestown, to acknowledge the Sovereignty of King James, and the governour of Virginia, had not long after thrown off the British yoke. They soon perceived themselves to be beyond the limits of the company’s patent, from which they had derived their title. But, winter being at hand, and fearing to encounter the dangers of the sea, on an unknown coast, they determined to seek a place of settlement where they were. & Before landing, “having devoutly given thanks to God for their safe arrival, they formed themselves into a body politick,” forty-one signing a solemn contract, according to the provisions of which they were to be governed. Mr. John Carver was * elected governour for one year. # * : 3 Parties were now despatched to fix upon a spot for their settle- ment. Several days were employed for this purpose, during which, a number of Indians were seen, who fled on being ap- proached. They also discovered baskets of corn hid in the sand, which served for seed the ensuing spring. At length, a suitable spot was selected for a settlement, and a house immediately erected. The colony was divided into nine- teen families, each of which built its own cottage. On Lord's day, Dec. 31, they attended public worship, for the first time on shore, and named the place Plymouth. x Section W. The same month, (No PERIOD II.1607.1689....SETTLEMENTs. 31 Ferdinando Gorges, and others, styling them, “The Council of Plymouth, in the county of De- von, for planting and governing New-England . *** * * sº º: in America.” This Patent granted to them the territory between the 40t i t he 40th and 48th degrees of north latitude, and was the foundation of all the subsequent patents which divided the country. Section VI. In March, 1621, the colony of Ply- mouth, through Governour Carver, entered into a league of friendship, commerce, and mutual de- fence with Masassoit, the great sachem of the neighbouring Indians. This treaty which was strictly observed until the breaking out of Phillip's war, (a period of more than fifty years,) gave general peace to the colony, and laid the founda- tion for their intimate and amicable correspond- ence with the neighbouring Indian tribes. The person, chiefly instrumental in bringing this event to pass was Samoset, a sagamore of the country, laying at the distance of about five days journey. He was the first visitant of the co- lony at Plymouth, and greatly surprised the inhabitants, by call- ing out as he entered their village, “Welcome Englishmen? Welcome Englishmen ſ” He had conversed with the English fishermen who had come to the eastern coast, and had learned some of the language. He informed the colony that the place where they were settled, was called by the Indians Patuxet; that five years before a plague had swept off all the natives from the place, so that there was neither man, woman, or child re- maining. Providence had thus singularly prepared the way for the colonies to take possession of the land, without molesting a single owner. N. Samoset, having been treated with hospitality by these stran- gers, was disposed to cultivate a further acquaintance with them; and on his third visit was accompanied by Squanto, a native of the country, who had been carried away in 1614, by one Hunt, and sold into Spain, but had been taken to London, whence he had returned to America. . They informed the English that Masasso chem of the neighbouring Indians was near with a tual distrust prevented for some time, § fº º 2 who was º at . .** gth at the sachem wished # i. ; soit, the greate ºth a guard ... 32 PERIOD II....1607..., 1689....SETTLEMENTS. send some one to confer with him. Mr. Edward Winslow wa accordingly sent, bearing suitable presents to the chief. These proving acceptable, Masassoit left Mr. Winslow in the custody of his men as a hostage, and ventured to the English, by whom he was hospitably entertained, and with whom he concluded the treaty already noticed. 3. Section VII. In 1619, a governour general of the Virginia Colony arrived from England, with instructions to convoke a colonial legisla- ture. To this assembly, eleven corporations, or towns, sent representatives, who sat with the governour and council, appointed by the Com- pany. This was the first legislature to which the people of America sent representatives. In 1621 the London Company established a constitution and form of government for the co- lony. The powers of this government were vested in a governour and two councils. One of these was called the council of state, to ad- vise and assist the governour. This council was to be appointed and removed by the com- pany. The other was called the general assem- bly, consisting of the council of state, and two burgesses, or representatives, deputed from each town, hundred, or plantation. This assem- bly met annually, and were entrusted with the business of framing laws for the colony, the go- vernour having a negative upon their proceedings. No laws were valid until ratified by a court of the company in England. In 1622, the Virginia Colony, which for some time had enjoyed great prosperity, and had re- ceived frequent accessions, experienced a stroke which nearly proved fatal. The successor of Powhatan, who was of a proud, revengeful spirit, and extremely hostile to the colony, con . plan to cut them off at a blow. On the 22d of t was so far put in execution, that three PERIOD II.1607.1689. SETTLEMENTs. ss hundred and forty-seven of the colony, men, women and children, were butchered almost in the same instant. 3. . A war of extermination soon succeeded, which not long after was followed by a famine. The losses of the colony, however, which these calamities had brought upon them, were soon in a measure repaired, by the arrival of new adven- turers. - & gº Section VIII. While the Virginians were mourning their losses, the Plymouth colony be- gan to experience the distresses of famine. By the time their planting was finished in 1623, their provisions were so far exhausted, that they had neither bread, nor corn for three or four months. A drought continued from May, until some time in July. Under these afflictions, however, they appointed a day of fasting and prayer, to humble themselves, and to seek unto God. Notwithstanding their many fears, a plentiful harvest followed, which was suitably noticed by a day of thanksgiving and praise. Section IX. This year, 1623, a number of persons from England arrived in the river Pis- Cataqua, and began two settlements; one at the mouth, at a place called Little Harbour, the other at a place now called Dover.—These were the first settlements in New-HAMPSHIRE. Section X. In 1624, the London Company, which had settled Virginia, was dissolved by an act of king James I. under pretext of the calami- ties which had befallen the colony, and the dis- sensions which had agitated the company. pe ºrira self appointed the govern 34 PERIOD II....1607..., 1689....S.ETTLEMENT whom, with twelve counsellors, the powers of government were vested. & The London Company, thus dissolved, consisted of gentlemen of noble and disinterested views, who had expended more than one hundred thousand pounds of their fortunes, in this first at tempt to plant an English colony in America; and more than nine thousand persons had been sent from the mother country to people this new settlement. At the time of the dissolution of the company scarcely two thousand persons survived. Charles I. succeeding James I. in 1625, brought the Virginia Colony more immediately under the direction of the crown. Under this administra- tion, the colony suffered much for many years, from the severe and arbitrary restraints imposed upon it by the king, through the governour and council. 3. Section XI. It has been stated, that the lands, upon which the Plymouth colony settled, were granted by the crown to “the Council of Plymouth,” in England, in November, 1620. This was the same month that the Puritans had arrived in the country. Being apprized of this grant, the colony, in 1626, began to take mea- sures to purchase these lands. The negotiations for this purpose ended the next year in a patent, which the company granted them for one thou- sand eight hundred pounds sterling, with ample powers of government. . * * The government of the colony was at first formed and con ducted according to a voluntary compact, entered into before landing. Till the year 1624, it consisted of a governour and one assistant only. From this period five were annually chosen, the governour having a double vote. The number of assistants was afterwards increased to seven.—The laws of the colony were enacted, and the affairs of government conducted, by these offi- cers for near twenty years. In 1639, the towns in this colon for the first time, sent deputies. The colony continued distinct near seventy years, until 1691, when, by charter of William and Mary, it was united to the colony of Massachusetts, and the Province of Maine. 3: "...'... ...::::::::: *%. ::: ; :...:*::...' ..., & 3% PERIOD II.1607.1689. SETTLEMENTS. ss Section XII. In 1628, the foundation was laid for another colony, in New-England, by the name of the colony of MASSACHUSETTs BAY. . The patent of this colony was granted by the Council of Ply- mouth, or New-England, to Sir Henry Roswell and others; and conveyed to them the territory lying between three miles north of the Merrimack, and three miles south of Charles Ri- Vēr. > * - Sir Henry Roswell and his associates, however, soon sold the patent to Sir Richard Saltonstall, John Endicott, and others in England, who were projecting a settlement in New-England, for the purposes of greater religious freedom. The same year, John Endicott was sent over, and began the settlement of the colony of Mas- sachusetts Bay, at Salem, then called by the Indians, Naumkeak. As the patent granted to this colony conveyed no powers of government, King Charles, in 1629, granted these powers by charter. Six ships, furnished by the company, brought over four hundred persons, men, women find children, three hundred of whom settled at Salem, the remainder at Charlestown. During the succeeding summer, 1630, John Winthrop, who had been appointed governour, and Thomas Dudley, deputy governour, with one thousand five hundred people, arrived at Charlestown; but owing to a mortal sickness, which soon after prevailed in that settlement, the governour and several of the planters remov- ed to Shawmut, which they named Boston. Governour Winthrop, and his associates, came over under ºn arrangement to transfer the government of this colony, from London to New-England, and to place it in the hands of officers tº be elected by the freemen. This was carried into effect, and the free men continued annually to elect their officers of govern- oon experienced the distresses of mortal sick ine. There was scarcely a family, in which thers before spring, and many of the people were *** * een a death b - ged to subsist on clams, muscles, acorns, and nuts, Friday, 36 PERIod 11...1007.1689. SETTLEMENTs. February 6, was appointed as a day of fasting; but the day be- fore, a ship arriving laden with provisions, the governour, on the joyful occasion, appointed a day of thanksgiving throughout the plantations. Section XIII. In 1632, Charles I. granted a patent to Lord Baltimore, conveying to him a tract of country on the Chesapeake Bay, which, in honour of Henrietta Maria, daughter of Henry the great of France, he named MARYLAND. The next year, 1633, Lord Baltimore appoint- ed his brother, Leonard Calvert, governour of the province, who, with about two hundred planters, chiefly Roman Catholics, began a set- tlement in 1634, near the mouth of the Potomac, on the northern side. . Emigrants soon flocked to this province from England and the other colonies, on account of the greater religious freedom enjoyed in it. 3. By the patent, the proprietor, with the consent of the freemen, or their delegates, was authorized to make all necessarylaws, not opposed to the laws of England; the king did not reserve a right to interfere in the government of the province. This was the original government of the colony of Maryland, which, however, afterwards underwent various modifications. Section XIV. In 1633, the first house was erected in CoNNECTICUT. This was a trading house at Windsor, the materials of which some *On their arrival in the river, they found some Dutch, from New Amsterdam, who had previ- ously heard of the intended settlement at Wind- sor, occupying a fort, which they had erected, where Hartford now stands. On the approach of the Plymouth adventurers, the Dutch garrison ordered them to stop ; but the commander gal- lantly disregarded the order, and proceeded to wo years from this, 1635, about sixty men, PERIOD II.1607.1689....SETTLEMENTS. 37 women, and children, from Newtown and Wa- tertown, in Massachusetts, commenced their journey through the wilderness to Connecticut river. They settled at Windsor, Wethersfield, and Hartford. The same year, John Winthrop, son of the governour of Massachusetts, arrived from Eng- land, with a commission, as governour of Con- necticut, under lord Say and Seal, and lord Brook, to whom the council of Plymouth had given, in March, 1631, a patent of the territory. Soon after Winthrop's arrival at Boston, he despatched a park of thirty tons with twenty men, to take possession of Con- necticut river, and to build a fort at its mouth. This was ac: cordingly erected, and called Saybrook fort. A few days after their arrival, a Dutch vessel, from New Netherlands, appeared, to take possession of the river; but, as the English had already mounted two cannon, their landing was prevented. . . . The next June, 1636, the Rev. Messrs. Hooker and Stone, with a number of settlers, from Dorchester and Watertown, re- moved to Connecticut. With no guide but a compass, they made their way, one hundred miles over mountains, through swamps and rivers. Their journey, which was on foot, lasted a fortnight, during which they lived upon the milk of their cows. They drove one hundred and sixty cattle. Section XV. This year, 1636, Roger Wil- liams, having been banished from the colony of Massachusetts in 1634, removed with his family to Mooshawsic and began a plantation, which he called Providence. From this we date the settlement of Rhode Island. , “ . . . . . . . . ; Williams was a minister of Salem; on account of promul- £ating opinions, civil as well as religious, which were contrary tº those prevalent at that day in the colonies, though some of these are now universally admitted to be just, he was summon- ed; in 1686, to appear before the General Court, and ministers of the colony. Mr. Hooker was appointed to With him; but being unable to induce him to renouſ °pinions, he was sentenced to depart out of the juris ºn 1638, William Coddington, . sometimes be 38 ERIOD II....1607.1689,...SETTLEMENTS. Massachusetts, and having purchased of the Indians, the Island Aqutneck, began a settlement on the northern part of it. Others followed the next summer, and commenced another settlement on the south western side—dividing the Island into two town- ships, Portsmouth and Newport. They formed themselves into a body politick, and elected Mr. Coddington chief magis- trate. | In 1640, the inhabitants of Providence agreed upon a form of government. Rhode Island, so called from a fancied resem- blance to the ancientisland of Rhodes, soon began to be extensive- ly settled, both on account of its natural fertility. and also on ac- count of the religious freedom allowed to all denominations. In 1644, Roger Williams visited England, as agent of the settlers, and obtained of the earl of Warwick, one of the Ply- mouth company, a free charter of incorporation for Providence and Rhode Island Plantations. § In 1663, a royal charter was granted to them, by Charles II. This charter constituted an assembly, consisting of a governour, deputy governour, and ten assistants, with the representatives from the several towns, all to be chosen by the freemen. Section XVI. The year 1637 is remarkable, in the history of Connecticut, for the war with the Pequots—a tribe of Indians, whose principal set- tlement was on a hill in the present town of Gro- Prior to this time, the Pequots had frequently annoyed thein- ant colony, and in several instances had killed some of its in- habitants. In March of this year, the commander of Saybrook ſort, with twelve men, was attacked by them, and three of his Killed. In April, another portion of this tribe assaulted the people of Wethersfield, as they were going to their fields to labour, and killed six men and three women. Two girls were taken captive by them, and twenty cows were killed. ... In this perilous state of the colony, a court was summoned at Hartford, May 1. After mature deliberation, it was determined hat war should be commenced against the Pequots. .” º men, nearly half the fencible men of the colony, were to be raised—forty-two from Hartford—thirty from —and eighteen from Wethersfield. ing of this force at Hartford, the Re neir marching, addressed them in th PERIOD II.1607.1689,...setTLEMENTs 39 not collected by wild fancy, nor ferocious passions. It is not a tumultuous assembly, whose actions are abortive, or if successful produce only theft, rapine, rape, and murder; crimes inconsist- ent with nature's light, inconsistent with a soldier's valour. You, my dear hearts, were selected from your neighbours, by the godly fathers of the land, for your known courage, to execute such a work. * “Your cause is the cause of heaven; the enemy have blas- phemed your God, and slain his servants; you are only the ministers of his justice. I do not pretend that your enemies are careless or indifferent: no, their hatred is inflamed, their lips thirst for blood; they would devour you, and all the people of God; but, my brave soldiers, their guilt has reached the clouds; they are ripe for destruction; their cruelty is notorious; and cruelty and cowardice are always united. ź “There is nothing, therefore, to prevent your certain victory, but their nimble feet, their impenetrable swamps, and woods; from these your small numbers will entice them, or your courage drive them. I now put the question—Who would not fight in such a cause? fight with undaunted boldness? Do you wish for more encouragement? more I give you. Riches waken the soldier's sword; and though you will not obtain silver and gold, on the field of victory, you will secure what is infinitely more precious; you will secure the liberties, the privileges, and the lives of Christ's Church, in this new world. “You will procure safety for your affectionate wives, safety for your prattling, harmless, smiling babes; you will secure all the blessings enjoyed by the people of God in the ordinances of the gospel. Distinguished was the honour conferred upon Da- vid, for fighting the battles of the Lord ; this honour, Oye cou- rageous soldiers of God, is now prepared for you. You will now execute his vengeance on the heathen; you will bind their kings in chains, and their nobles in ſetters of iron. But perhaps Some one may fear that a fatal arrow may deprive him of this Onour. -: º “Let every faithful soldier of Jesus Christ be assured, that if ºny servant be taken away, it is merely because the honours of this world are too narrow for his reward; an everlasting crown * set upon his head; because the rewards of this life are in ‘’ient. March then with Christian courage, in the strengt the Lord; march with faith in his divine promises, an h seventy river and M n the command of th Here a plan of operations was formed. On the twenty-sixth of May, about the dawn of day, capt. Mason surprised Mystic. one of the principal forts of the enemy, in the present town of Stonington. On their near approach to the fort, a dog barked, and an Indian who now discovered them, cried out, “O wanux O wanux ſ”. Englishmen, Englishmen. The troops instantly pressed forward and fired. The de- struction of the enemy soon became terrible, but they rallied at length, and made a manly resistance. After a severe and pro- tracted conflict, capt. Mason and his troops being nearly ex- hausted, and victory still doubtful, he cried out to his men, we must burn them / - . At the same instant, seizing a firebrand, he applied it to a wigwam. The flames spread rapidly, on every side; and as the sun rose upon the scene, it showed the work of destruction to be complete. Seventy wigwams were in ruins, and between five and six hundred Indians lay bleeding on the ground, or smouldering in the ashes. 23 . . . . . . But though the victory was complete, the troops were now in great distress. Besides two killed, sixteen of their number were wounded. Their surgeon, medicines, and provisions, were on board some vessels, on their way to Pequot harbour, now TNew-London. While consulting what should be done in this emergency, how great was their joy to descry their vessels stand- ing directly towards the harbour, under a prosperous wind Soon after, a detachment of nearly two hundred men, from Massachusetts and Plymouth, arrived to assist Connecticut, in prosecuting the war. . Sassacus, the great Sachem of the Pequots, and his warriours, were so appalled at the destruction of Mystic, that they fled to- wards Hudson's river. The troops pursued them as far as a great swamp in Fairfield, where another action took place, in which the Indians were entirely vanquished. This was followed by a treaty with the remaining Pequois about two hundred in number, agreeably to which they were a wided among the Narragansetts and Moheagans. Thus terminated a conflict which for a time was eminently colonies. This event of peace was celebrat- ſew-England, by a day of thanksgiving and distressing to ed thi 0.ugh PERIOD II.1607.1689, 41 the adjoining towns, soon after settled, went by the name of the colony of NEw-HAven. Among the founders of this colony was Mr. John Davenport, a celebrated minister of London. Theophilus Eaton, who had been governour of the East India Company, and Edward Hop- kins, a merchant of London. The unmolested, enjoyment of civil and religious liberty was the object of their emigration, as it was of most of the emigrants to this country. Having purchased the land of Monauguin, sachem of the country, whom they paid to his full satisfaction, on the 18th of April, they kept their first Sabbath in the place, under a large oak tree, where Mr. Davenport preached to them. Section XVIII. The following year, January 14, 1639, the three towns on Connecticut river, Windsor, Hartford, and Wethersfield, finding themselves without the limits of the Massachu- setts patent, met, and formed themselves into a distinct commonwealth, and adopted a constitu- tion. * ... 3. This constitution, which has been much admired, and which for more than a century and a half underwent little alteration, ordained that there should annually be two general assemblies, one in April, the other in September. In April the officers of government were to be elected by the freemen, and to consist of governour, deputy governour, and five or six assistants. The towns were to send deputies to the general assemblies. Under this constitution, the first governour was John Haynes, and Roger Ludlow, the first deputy governour. ‘. . . º. . Section XIX. The example of the colony o Connecticut, in forming a constitution, was fol lowed, the next June, by the colony o Ha- Ven. Both constitutions were ike. Theophilus Eaton was the firs the colony. Section XX. This same year, § § ym Piscataqua to S % 42 reRiod n.1607.1689,...setTLEMENTs. taken under the jurisdiction of Massachusetts, by º: of the people of Maine. . The Plymouth colonists had obtained a patent for land lying on the Kennebeck river in 1628, and had erected a house there for trade. Scattered settlements were made in the territory some years afterward; but the history of their progress is ob- SCure. .* ... Section XXI. The next event of importance in our history is the union of the colonies of ſassachusetts, Plymouth, Connecticut, and New- Haven, by the name of THE UNITED ColoniEs of New-ENGLAND. The articles of this confede- ration, which had been agitated for three years, were signed May 19th, 1643. . To this union the colonies were strongly urged by a sense of common danger from the Indians, (afº combination of whom was expected,) and by the claims and encroachments of the Dutch, at Manhattan, New-York. By these articles of union, each colony retained its distinct and separate government.—No two colonies might be united into one, nor any colony be received into the confederacy, without the consent of the whole. Each colony was to elect two Com- missioners, who should meet annually, and at other times if ne- cessary, and should determine “all affairs of war and peace, of leagues, aids, charges, and numbers of men for war,” &c. Upon notice that any colony was invaded, the rest were imme- diately to despatch assistance. This union subsisted more than forty years, until the charters fthe cºlonies were either taken away, or suspended by James isioners. ' . le-Island petitioned to be admitted to this con- s denied, unless she would be incorporated with ose her separate existence.—This she refused, ently excluded. . . . . . . . this union on the New-England colonies were salutary. On the completion of it, several In: In 1648, H PERIOD II.1607.1689.SETTLEMENTs. 43 Prior to this period, Mr. Mayhew and the devoted Elliot had made considerable progress towards civilizing the Indians, and converting º to Christianity. They had learned the Indian language, and had preached to the Indians in their own tongue. Upon a report in England of what these men had done, a so- ciety was formed for propagating the Gospel among the Indians, which sent over books, money, &c. to be distributed by the Commissioners of the United Colonies. -. The Indians at first made a great opposition to Christianity; and such was their aversion to it, that had they not been over- awed by the United Colonies, it is probable they would have put to death those among them who embraced it.—Such, however, were the ardour, energy, and ability of Messrs. Mayhew and Elliot, aided by the countenance and support of government, and blessed by Providence, that in 1660, there were ten towns of con- verted Indians in Massachusetts. In 1695, there were not less than three thousand adult Indian converts, in the islands of Martha's Vineyard, and Nantucket. Section XXII. 1662. The colony of Connec- ticut, having petitioned king Charles II. through governour Winthrop, for a charter of incorpora- tion, his majesty granted their request, and issued his letters patent, April 2d, constituting them a body corporate and politick, by the name of The Governour and Company of the English Colo- my of Connecticut in New-England in America. . The territory granted to lord Say and Seal, and lord Brook, in 1631, and confirmed by this charter to Connecticut, was bounded east by Narraganset river; south by Long-Island sound; north by Massachusetts; and extended west to the Pa- The charter of Connecticut ordained that there should be a governour, deputy governour, and twelve assistants to be chosen annually. The charter instituted two general assemblies for each year, to consist of the above officers and deputies from the towns; the former to compose the upper, and the deputies the lower house. The government under the charter was essentially the same with that which the people had themselves 44 PERIOD II.1607.1689. SETTLEMENTs. was followed the next year, 1663, by a similar grant to Rhode- Island and Providence Plantations, as already noticed. § Section XXIII. The settlement of the Dutch at Manhattan, in 1615, and their submission to the government of Virginia, which sent an expe- dition against them the same year, has already been mentioned. But the succeeding governour threw off the English yoke, and from that time they had remained independent of the English. —Belonging to a different nation, and having different interests, they availed themselves of every occasion to perplex and annoy the New- England colonies. They even laid claim to a considerable part of Connecticut. At length, king Charles II. sensible of the evil consequences of having a Dutch colony in the heart of his American dominions, determined to dispossess them. Accordingly in the year 1664, he made a grant of the whole country, in- cluding in it the several colonies of New-York, New-Jersey, and Delaware, to his brother, the duke of York and Albany. An expedition was soon fitted out against the Dutch, under command of Col. Richard Nichols, who shortly after appeared at Manhattan, and demanded a surrender. To this demand, the Dutch governour, Stuyvesant, yielded Aug. 27, being unprepared for defence.—Thus the whole country passed into the hands of the English. In honour of the duke, the two principal Dutch settlements were now named New-York and &ection XXIV. A short time previous surrender of the Dutch, the duke of Yo yed to lord Berkley, and Sir George Ca PERIOD II.1607.1689. SETTLEMENTs. 45 given it, in compliment to Carteret, who had been governour of the lsle of Jersey, in the English Channel. Soon after the grant, but before it was known, three persons from Long-Island pur- chased of the natives a tract which was called Elizabethtown grant, and a settlement was be- gun at Elizabethtown. In a few years, emigrants from various parts of Europe settled Newark, Middletown, and other places. The first settlement in New-Jersey was made three or four years after the settlement of Plymouth in New-England, by some Dutchmen and Danes. The inhabitants were considerably mu- merous at the time of the surrender of the province to the Eng- lish government. . ... The next year, 1665, Philip Carteret, who had been appointed governour by the proprietors, ar- rived at Elizabethtown, which he made the seat of government. He administered the government according to a constitution, which the proprie- tors had formed. 3 This constitution ordained a free assembly, consisting of a governour, council, and representatives, the latter to be chosen by each town. The legislative power resided in the assembly —the executive in the governour and council. Section XXV. DELAw ARE was also includ- ed in the grant to the duke of York. At this time it was in the hands of the Dutch, but an expedition was sent against it under Sir Robert Carr, to whom it surrended Oct. 1, 1664, soon after which, it was put under the authority of the * English governour of New-York. Pelaware was first settled in 1627, by a number of Swedes and Fins, who at the instance of Gustavus Adolphus, king of Sweden, emigrated to America. They landed at Cape Henlo. Pen, which, on account of its beauty, they called Paradise Point; the D. awar §: lamed Swedeland Stream. * 3: . º §3%.3% &;3%:::::::::::::::::::: w Netherlands laid claim, however, to the tests subsisted for a long time .. After several times changin 46 PERIOD II.1607.1683. SETTLEMENTs sion of it, at the time of the English expedition against it under Carr, in 1664. & : Section XXVI. After the reduction of New- York, Col. Richard Nichols, Sir Robert Carr, George Cartwright, and Samuel Maverick, Esqrs. entered upon the duties of a commission from king Charles, “to hear and determine com- plaints and appeals, in all causes, as well mili- tary as criminal and civil,” within New-England, and to proceed in all things for settling the peace and security of the country. The conduct of these commissioners was ex- ceedingly arbitrary and offensive to the colonies. Under pretext of executing their commission, they received complaints against the colonies from the Indians ; required persons, against the consent of the people, to be admitted to the pri- vileges of freemen; to church membership, and full communion; heard and decided in causes which had already been determined by the esta- blished courts; and gave protection to criminals. After involving the colonies in great embarrass- ment and expense, they were at length recalled, and the country saved from impending ruin. Section XXVII. In the year 1663, the tract of country, extending from the 36th degree of north latitude to the river St. Matheo, was erected into a province by the name of CARo- LINA, so called in honour of Charles IX. king of France, under whose patronage the coast had been discovered in 1563. . This tract was conveyed, by charter of Charles II. King of England, at this time, to Lord Cla- rendon, and seven others, who were made abso- lute proprietors of the territory, and invested with ample powers to settle and governit. Two years PERIOD II.i.1607.1689,...SETTLEMENTS. 47 as to embrace the whole territory, now divided into the two Carolinas, Georgia, and the Flori- As early as 1650, a settlement was begun in Albemarle county, by planters from Virginia, and emigrants from other places. This settlement was placed by the proprietors, under the super- intendence of Sir William Berkley, governour of Virginia, who was instructed to visit it, and to appoint a governour and council of six for it: - 2 The attention of the proprietors was next turned to the coun- try south of Cape Fear, which they erected into a county by the name of Clarendon. This county was settled in 1665, by emigrants from the Island of Barbadoes. Sir John Yeamans, who was from that island, was appointed governour, and a separate government granted, similar to that of Albemarle. In 1669, another settlement was made still further south, at Port Royal, under the direction of William Sayle, who was ap- pointed the first governour. The name of this county was Car- º Thus three distinct governments were formed in Caro- !Ild. ' - - - In 1671, Gov. Sayle, dissatisfied with the situation of Port Royal, removed to the northward, and took possession of a neck of land between Ashley and Cooper's river. Here was laid the foundation of a town called Charlestown. Nine years after, however, the inhabitants removed to “the Oyster Point,” where Charleston, the present capital of South Carolina, was begun #. place which they left went by the name of “the Old own.” - - 3. . . . ; - In consequence of the unhealthiness of the clima 2, Covernour. Sayle died shortly after his removal to Old Charleston, upon which this colony was annexed to the government of that of Clarendon, under governour Yeamans, and the three govern- ments were reduced to two. Duri 'd, at the request of the proprietors, by the ce º *5 Was attemp ted to be put In force. ng the administration of governour Sayle, a cons itution, By this constitution, a president of a palatine court, to consist of the proprietors was to be chosen for life. An hereditary nºbility was to be established, consisting of landgraves and ca. Şıques. A parliament, chosen once in two years, was to be ºld, consisting of the proprietors, of the mobility, and of rep PERIOD II.1607.1689. SETTLEMENTs. council, to consist of the governour, nobility, and deputies of proprietors. . . . . :- This constitution it was found impossible to reduce to prac- tice. Great opposition was made to it; and in Albemarle an insurrection was occasioned by an attempt to enforce it. It was therefore at length abandoned, and the former proprietary go- vernment restored. This latter sort of government continued from 1669 to 1729, when the proprietors surrendered their title and interest to the King of England. The province was now divided into North and South Carolina, and their governours and councils were appointed by the crown. . - Section XXVIII. This year, 1675, began the memorable war in New-England, with the In- dians, called King Philip's war; by which the peace of the colonies was greatly disturbed, and their existence for a time seriously endangered. For several years previous to the opening of the war, the In- diams had regarded the English with increasing jealousy. They saw them growing in numbers, and rapidly extending their set- tlements. At the same time their own hunting grounds were visibly narrowing, and their power and privileges sensibly de- creasing. The prospect before them was humbling to the haughty descendants of the original lords of the soil. º, ºr The principal exciter of the Indians at this time against the English, was Philip, sachem of the Wampanoags, grandson and successor of Masassoit, who, fifty years before, had made a treaty with the colony of Plymouth. Philip's residence was at Mount Hope, Bristol, Rhode-Island. The immediate cause of the war was the execution of three Indians by the English, whom Philip had excited to murder one Sausaman, an Indian missionary. Sausaman, being friendl to the English, had informed them that Philip, with several tribes, was plotting their destruction. §. . .3. : : * The execution of these Indians roused the anger of Philip, who immediately armed his men, and commenced hostilities, Their first attack, was made June 24th, upon the people of Swanzey, in Plymouth colony, as they were returning home from public worship, on a day of humiliation and prayer, under the apprehension of the approaching war. Eight or nine per. The country was immediately alarmed, and the troops of th colony flew to the defence of Swanzey. On the 28t pany of horse and a company of foot, w --sº PERIOD II.1607.1689. SETTLEMENTs, 49 * The next morning an attack was made upon some of Philip's men, who were pursued, and five or six of them killed. This resolute conduct of the English made a deep impression on the enemy. Philip, with his forces left Mount Hope the same night —marking his route, however, with the burning of houses, and the scalping of the defenceless inhabitants. - It being known that the Narragansets favoured the cause of Philip, he having sent his women and children to them for pro- tection, the Massachusetts forces under Capt. Hutchinson, pro- ceeded forthwith into their country, either to renew a treaty with them, or to give them battle. Fortunately, a treaty was concluded, and the troops returned. § On the 17th of July, news arrived that Philip, with his warri- ours, was in a swamp at Pocasset, now Tiverton. The Massa- chusetts and Plymouth forces immediately marched to that place, and the next day resolutely charged the enemy in their recesses. As the troops entered the swamp, the Indians continued to re- tire. The English in vain pursued, till the approach of night, when the commander ordered a retreat. Many of the English were killed, and the enemy seemed to take courage. It being impossible to encounter the Indians with advantage in the swamps, it was determ ined to starve them out; but Philip, apprehending their design, ..ontrived to escape with his forces. He now fled to the Nipmucks, a tribe in Worcester county, Massachusetts, whom he induced to assist him. This tribe had already commenced hostilities against the English; but, in the hope of reclaiming them, the governour and council sent Cap- tains Wheeler and Hutchinson to treat with them. But the In- dians, having intimation of their coming, lurked in ambush for them, fired upon them as they approached, killed eight men, and mortally wounded eight more, of whom Capt. Hutchinson was one. º º, . w . ... : :". . . .: The remainder of the English fled to Quaboag, Brookfield. The Indians, however, closely pursued them into the town, and burnt every house excepting one, in which the inhabitants had taken refuge. This house at length they surrounded. “For two days they continued to pour a storm of musket balls upon ºt, and although countless numbers pierced through the walls, t it brands, and rags dipped in brimstone; they shot fire; they loaded a cart with flax and tow, and with \ t 50 PERIOD II 1607.1689,...SETTLEMENTS August 4th, Major Willard came to their relief, raised the siege, and destroyed a considerable number of the assailants. During the month of September, Hadley, Deerfield, and North field, on Connecticut river, were attacked; several of the inha bitants were killed, and many buildings consumed. On the 18th, Captain Lathrop, with several teams and eighty young men, the flower of the county of Essex, were sent to Deerfield to trans- port a quantity of grain to Hadley. On their return, stopping to gather grapes at Muddy Brook, they were suddenly attacked by near eight hundred Indians. Resistance was in vain, and seventy of these young men fell before the merciless enemy, and were buried in one grave. Captain Mosely who was at Deer- field, hearing the report of the guns, hastened to the spot, and with a few men, attacked the Indians, killed ninety-six, and wounded forty, losing himself but two men. 3. Early in October, the Springfield Indians, who had hitherto been friendly to the English, concerted a plan, with the hostile tribes, to burn that town. Having, under cover of night, re- ceived two or three hundred of Philip's men into their fort, with the assistance of these, they set fire to the town. The plot, how- ever, was discovered so seasonably, that troops arrived from Westfield, in time to save the town, excepting thirty-two houses, already consumed. Soon after hostilities were commenced by Philip, the Tarren- teens began their depredations in New-Hampshire, and the Pro- vince of Maine. They robbed the boats and plundered the houses of the English. In September they fell on Saco, Scar- borough, and Kittery, killed between twenty and thirty of the Inhabitants, and consigned their houses, barns, and mills, to the Elated with these successes, they next advanced towards Pis- cataqua, committing the same outrages at Oyster river, Salmon Falls, Dover and Exeter. Before winter, sixty of the English, in that quarter, were killed, and nearly as many buildings con- The Indians in those parts, however, had real ground of com plaint. Some seamen, hearing it reported that Indian children could swim by instinct, overset the canoe of Squando, sachem of the Saco Indians, in which were his squaw and infant child, This act Squando could not overlook, especially as some * after the child died, and, as the sachem believed, on account of some injury that it then received. Besides this, several Indians lavery. To redress these wrongs, the Notwithstanding the Na PERIOD IL-1607.1689. SETTLEMENTs. 51 their treaty, not to engage in the war against the English, it was discovered that they were taking part with the enemy. It was deemed necessary, therefore, for the safety of the colonies, early to check that powerful tribe. ź sº Accordingly, governour Winslow of Plymouth, with about one thousand eight hundred troops from Massachusetts and Con- necticut, and one hundred and sixty friendly Indians, commence ed their march from Pettyquam.scot, on the 19th of December, 1675, through a deep snow, towards the enemy, who were in a swamp about fifteen miles distant. The army arrived at the swamp at one in the afternoon." Some Indians at the edge of the swamp were fired upon, but fled. The whole army now entered and pursued the Indians to their fortress. . N. This stood on a rising ground, in the middle of the swamp. It was a work of great strength and labour, being composed of palisades, and surrounded by a hedge about sixteen feet in thick- 116SS. º, % . . . . .3 .” One entrance only led to the fort, through the surrounding thicket. Upon this the English providentially fell; and without waiting to form, rushed impetuously towards the fort. The English captains entered first. The resistance of the Indians was gallant and warlike. Captains Johnson and Davenport, with many of their men, fell at the entrance. At length the English gave back, and were obliged to retreat out of the fort. At this crisis, the army being on the point of a fatal repulse, some Connecticut men, on the opposite side of the fort, disco- ºvered a place destitute of palisades; they instantly sprang into he fort, fell upon the rear of the Indians, and, aided by the rest of the army, after a desperate conflict, achieved a complete vic- tory. Six hundred wigwams were now set on fire. The scene was awful. Deep volumes of smoke rolled up to heaven, min- gling with the dying shrieks of mothers and infants, while the aged and infirm were consuming in the flames. jº º . . . . .º Even at this distant period, we cannot recali this scene without pain, and can justify this severity of our ancestors, ºnly by ad- mitting its necessity for self-preservation. . The Indians in the ort were estimated at four th 2Se S . ousand; of ven hundred warriours were killed, and three hundred 52 PERIOD II.i.1607.1689,...SETTLEMENTS, From this defeat, the Indians never recovered. They were not yet, however, effectually subdued. During the winter they still continued to murder and burn. The towns of Lancaster, Medfield, Weymouth, Groton, Springfield, Northampton, Sud- bury, and Marlborough, in Massachusetts, and of Warwick and Providence, in Rhode-Island, were assaulted, and some of them partly, and others wholly destroyed. In March, Captain Pierce, with fifty English, and twenty friendly Indians, were at- tacked, and every Englishman, and most of the Indians, were slain. In April, Captain Wadsworth, marching with fifty men to the relief of Sudbury, was surrounded, and all either killed on the spot, or reserved for long and distressing tortures. x The success of the Indians, during the winter, had been great; but on the return of spring the tide turned against them. The Narraganset country was scoured, and many of the natives were killed, among whom was Canonchet, their chief sachem. On the 12th of August, 1676, the finishing stroke was given to the war in the United colonies, by the death of Philip. After his flight from Mount Hope, he had attempted to rouse the Mo- hawks against the English. To effect his purpose, he killed, at several times, some of that tribe, and laid it to the English. But his iniquity was discovered, and he was obliged hastily to flee. He returned at length to Mount Hope. º Tidings of his return were brought to Captain Church, a man who had been of eminent service in this war, and who was bet- ter able than any other person to provide against the wiles of Jhe enemy. Capt. Church immediately proceeded to the place of Philip's concealment, near Mount Hope, accompanied by a small body of men. On his arrival, which was in the night, he placed his men in ambushes round the swamp, charging them not to move till daylight, that they might distinguish Philip, should he attempt to escape. Such was his confidence of suc- cess, that taking Major Sandford by the hand, he said, “It is scarcely possible that Philip should escape.” At that instant, a bullet whistled over their heads, and a volley followed. The firing proceeded from Philip, and his men, who were in view. Perceiving his peril, the savage chief, desperately snatch- ed his powder horn and gun, and ran fiercely towards the spot where an Englishman and Indian lay concealed.—The English soldier levelled his gun, but it missed fire: the Indian fired, and “shot Philip through the heart. º ºs º ºs º º - Captain Church ordered him to be beheaded, anº The Indian who executed this order, pronoun h, “You have been one very great man. chop you to pieces.” rou. But so big as you be PERIOD II.1607.1689. SETTLEMENTs. 53 Thus fell a savage hero and patriot—of whose transcendant abilities our history furnishes melancholy evidence.—The ad vantage of civilized education, and a wider theatre of action, might have made the name of Philip of Mount Hope, as memo- rable as that of Alexander, or Caesar. . After the death of Philip, the war continued in the province of Maine, till the spring of 1678. But westward, the Indians having lost their chiefs, wigwams, and provisions, and perceiv- ing further contest vain, came in singly, by tens, and hundreds, and submitted to the English. . § . : Thus closed a melancholy period in the annals of New-Eng- land history; during which, six hundred men, the flower of her strength, had fallen; twelve or thirteen towns had been destroy- ed, and six hundred dwelling houses consumed. Every eleventh family was houseless, and every eleventh soldier had sunk to his grave. So costly was the inheritance which our fathers have transmitted to us. . Section XXIX. The grant of the territory of New-York, by Charles II, to his brother the duke of York, in 1664, has already been noticed, as also its capture from the Dutch, the same year. In 1673, a war commencing between England and Holland, the latter sent a small fleet to New- York, and the town immediately surrendered. The following year, 1674, the war terminated, and a treaty was concluded between England and Holland, By this treaty New-York was re- stored to the English. To prevent controversy about his title to the territory, the Duke of York took out a new patent, and appointed Sir Ed- mund Andross governour, who entered upon the duties of his appointment, in October of the same year. # * :- : : The administration of Andross, however, arbitrary and severe. He admitted the pe to no share in legislation, but ruled them by heir asse . 34 3. P2RIOD II.1607..., 1689. SETTL Bº | N % was included in the grant to the duke of York. By virtue of this grant, Andross now claimed jurisdiction over the territory, and in July 1675, made an attempt with an armed force, to take possession of Saybrook Fort. The governour and council of Connecticut, having notice of his coming, sent Capt. Bull to defend the fort. On the arrival of Andross at the mouth of the river, after making a show of force, he invited Capt. Bull to a conference. This was granted; but no sooner had he landed, than he attempted to read his com- mission, and the duke's patent. This Capt. Bull firmly and positively forbid, and Sir Edmund, finding the colony determin- ed, at all events, not to submit to his government, relinquished his design and sailed for Long-Island. & 3, § Section XXX. But the colonies had other trou- bles to experience, and other enemies to combat In 1676, while the Indian war was still going on, complaints were made in England against the colonies, for violating the acts of trade. These acts imposed oppressive customs upon certain commodities, if imported from any country besides England, or if transported from one colony to another. The acts were considered by the co- lonies as unjust, impolitick, and cruel. For se- veral years they paid little attention to them, and his majesty at length required, that agents should be sent to England to answer in behalf of the co- lonies for these violations. 3. By the acts of trade none of the colonies suf. fered more than Virginia and Maryland, their operation being greatly to lessen the profits on their tobacco trade, from which a great portion of their wealth was derived. In addition to these sufferings, the colony of Virginia, in violation of chartered rights, was divided, and conveyed away ids were t yed, but also plai re thus conve - h had long been possessed, a PEF IOD II.....160 ...1689....SETTLEMENTS. 55 strated—but without effect. Agents were sent to England, to lay their grievances at the foot of the throne, but agents were unsuccessful. At length their oppression became insupportable, and the discontent of the people broke out into open insurrection. . At the head of this insurrection was placed one Nathaniel Bacon, an Englishman, who soon after his arrival, had been ap- pointed a member of the council. He was a young man of commanding person, and great energy and enterprise. The colony at this time was engaged in war with the Susque- hannah Indians. Bacon despatched a messenger to governour Berkley, requesting a commission to go against the Indians. This commission the govermour refused, and, at the same time, ordered Bacon to dismiss his men, and on penalty of being de- clared a rebel, to appear before himself and the council. Exas- perated by such treatment, Bacon, without disbanding the rest of his men, proceeded in a sloop with forty of them, to Jamestown. Here a quarrel ensued, and Berkley illegally suspended him from the council. Bacon departed in a rage, with his sloop and men, but the governour pursued him, and adopted such measures that he was taken, and brought to Jamestown. . Finding that he had dismissed Bacon from the council ille- gally, he now admitted him again, and treated him kindly. Soon after, Bacon renewed his importunity for a commission against the Indians. Being unable to effect his purpose he left Jamestown privately, but soon appeared again with six hundred volunteers, and demanded of the assembly, then sitting, the re- quired commission. Being overawed, the assembly advised the governour to grant it. But soon after Bacon had departed, the governour, by the same advice, issued a proclamation, denounc- ing him as a rebel. & §. . . . . * * º º Hearing what the governour had done, Bacon, instead of marching against the Indians, returned to Jamestown, wreaking his vengeance upon all who opposed him. Governour Berkley fied across the bay to Accomack, but the spirit of rebellion had §. * º him. He therefore found himself unable to resist to now ranged the country at pleasure. the governour, with a small force, under command obert Beverly, crossed the bay to oppose the male- & 56 PERIOD II. 1607, ...1689. SETTLEMENTs. w In the midst of these commotions, it pleased the Supreme Ruler to withdraw Bacon by a natural death, The maleconº tents, thus left to recover their reason, now began to disperse, Two of Bacon’s generals surrendered, and were pardoned, and the people quietly returned to their homes. - Upon this Berkley resumed the government, and peace was restored. This rebellion formed an era of some note in the his tory of Virginia, and its unhappy effects were felt for thirty years During its continuance, husbandry was almost entirely neglected and such havock was made among all kinds of cattle, that the people were threatened with distressing famine. Sir William Berkley, after having been forty years governour of Virginia returned to England, where he soon after died. T Three years after, 1679, lord Culpepper was sent over as go vernour, with certain laws prepared in conformity to the wishes of the ministry of England, and designed to be enacted by the assembly in Virginia. One of those laws provided for raising a revenue for the support of government. It made the duties perpetual, and placed them under the direction of his majesty Out of the duties, Culpepper dishonestly took as his salary, two thousand pounds, and one hundred and sixty more for house rent. , º & 8 % On presenting these laws to the assembly, Culpepper inform- ed them that in case they were passed, he had instructions to offer pardon to all who had been concerned in Bacon's rebellion; but if not he had commissions to try and hang them as rebels, and a regiment of soldiers on the spot to support him. The as: sembly, thus threatened, passed the laws. Section XXXI. In the year 1676, the province of New-Jersey was divided into East and West Jersey, and continued thus divided until 1702, when the proprietors surrendered the govern- ment to the crown under Queen Anne, upon which the two provinces were united into one. The two proprietors of New-Jersey were Lord Berkley, and Sir George Cartaret. In 1674, lord Berkley made a conveyance of his half to John Fenwick, in trust for Edward Billinge, and his assigns. Billinge, being in debt, presented his interest in the province to his creditors, William Jones and others, being appointed trustees to dispose of the lands. . . . . . "in the division which thus took place, Cartaret took Ea Jersey, the government of which he retained, and the trustees Billinge, West Jersey. The duke of York, though he had con- veyed away his powers of government, when he s pló the pro- PEE vince to Berkley and Cartaret, in 1664, unjustly claimed West Jersey, as a dependency of New-York. Until 1680, this dependency was maintained, when the duke of York, after much solicitation, relinquished his claim, and re- stored to the proprietors, the right granted by his patent of 1664. In 1682, Cartaret, disgusted with the people, soid his right to East Jersey, to WiMiam Penn, and others, who immediately sold one half of it to the earl of Perth, and his associates. Ro- bert Barclay, the celebrated author of “the Apology for the Qua- kers,” was the next year made governour of East Jersey. In 1686, both the Jerseys and New-York, were annexed to New-England, and continued so till the accession of William and Mary to the throne of England, in 1689. “A government under the proprietors of both the Jerseys, had become extremely disagreeable to the inhabitants: who from various causes, be- come so uneasy, that the proprietors surrendered the government of East and West Jersey to the crown in 1702, which Queen Anne very readily accepted.” & . “The two provinces were now united into one, and lord Cornbury was appointed governour over the united colony, and received his commission and instructions from the queen. ~- “The freemen chose the house of representatives, consisting of twenty-four members, but the governour and council, consist- ing of twelve members, were appointed by the crown. New- York and New-Jersey had, till the year 1738, a common govern- ºur; but at this time a separate governour was appointed over the latter province.” Section XXXII. In 1677, a controversy which had subsisted for some time between the colony of Massachusetts and the heirs of Sir Ferdinando Gorges, relative to the province of Maine, was was settled in England, and the colony adjudged to Gorges’ heirs. Upon this, Massachusetts pur- chased the title for one thousand two hundred pounds sterling, and the territory from that time still 1820, was a part of Massachusetts. , Both the colony of Massachusetts, and the heirs of Gorges, claimed the province of Maine: the former by virtue of her tent of 1628, which was construed as including that territory claim ºº: was founded upon a charter granted to by order of Charles II. for the separation of New- Hampshire from the jurisdiction of Massachu- setts, and its erection into a royal province. The form of government sent over by the king, or- dained a president and council to govern the province, with an assembly, &c. The assembly to be chosen by the people; the president and council to be appointed by the crown. In 1629, the Plymouth company granted to John Mason the territory called New Hampshire. About the year 1640, the settlements now being considerable, the patent holders agreed to assign their right of jurisdiction to Massachusetts. The colo. ny of New-Hampshire, therefore, remained under the govern ment of Massachusetts, until it was separated by the king's coun mission, in 1679. - The first legislative assembly, under the above commission was convened March 16, 1680, when the colony of New-Hamp shire was declared to be independent of Massachusetts. This separation, however, was disagreeable to most of the people; for near forty years they had enjoyed under Massachusetts the pri vilege of choosing their own rulers, and had derived great peace and harmony from an impartial government. Nor did this pro- vince long enjoy tranquillity. Mason, grandson of the Mason to whom New-Hampshire had been originally granted, came over the next year, and demanded, by virtue of his claims to the soil, a seat in the council. This being granted, he soon after returned to England, and surrendered a part of his claims to the king, and mortgaged the remainder to Edward Cranfield, who was appointed lieutenant governour, and shortly after repaired tº New-Hampshire. ... • . It is necessary to add, that the Rev. Mr. Wheelright ant others, in 1629, the same year that the grant was made to Ma son by the Plymouth company, bought of the Indians a large tract of land in New-Hampshire. The same land was, there fore, claimed under both these grants, and the foundation thus laid of serious disputes in the colony. * ...; . Cranfield, finding it for his interest to favour the claim of Ma son to the province, soon called upon the inhabitants to take their ases under him. Suits were instituted against all the land- holders who neglected this call, and the jurors being select Cranfield, and interested in the result, uniformly gave judgme § 3. 3.} ese oppressions, the people despatched an agent th with complaints to his majesty, against the governour. PERIOD II.1607.1689 SETTLEMENTs. 59 a hearing by the lords of trade, the iniquitous conduct of Cran. field was represented to the king, who recalled him. It may be proper to add, that the above controversy about tne claims of Mason continued long to disturb the peace of the province, and was not finally terminated until the death, of Samuel Allen, in 1715, to whom the heirs of Mason had sold their claim for seven hundred and fifty pounds; upon his de mise, no one appeared to renew the claims, and the question dropped. Section XXXIV. In 1681, King Charles II. granted to William Penn, son of Admiral Penn, in consideration of debts due the latter, for ser- vices done to the crown, the territory of PENNsyl- v.ANIA, so called after Penn himself. This patent encroached on the territory of Lord Baltimore in Maryland, one whole degree, or sixty-nine miles and a half; and on the north, nearly three hundred miles, across the whole territory conveyed to Connecticut in 1631,” and confirmed by the royal charter of 1662. Hence arose contentions between the colonies of Pennsylvania and Connecticut, about boundaries, that were not settled till a century after. Within a short time from the date of the grant by king Charles to Penn, two other conveyances were made to him by the duke of York. One was a bill of sale of New-Castle, and a territory of twelve miles. around it. The other was a bill granting a tract south of the former, as far as Cape Henlopen. These two deeds embraced the whole state of Delaware. At this time, Delaware was di- vided into three counties, which, in 1662, were annexed to Pennsylvania, although they had a separate assembly, in which the governour of Pennsylvania presided. The patent of king Charles to Penn provided for the king's eignty, and for obedience to British acts, regarding com- merce. It gave power to the proprietor to assemble the freemen, 9r their delegates, as he should judge most convenient; for levying moneys and enacting laws, not contrary to the laws of ay, 1681, Penn sent one Markham, with a few others, ision, and prepare for a settlement. The next year, published a form of government, by which the s as lodged in a general assembly, to consist of 60 PERIOD II.... 1607....1689,...SETTLEMENTS. our, council, and house of delegates. The council and house to be chosen by the freemen. The proprietor and governour to preside, and to have a treble voice in the council, which was to consist of seventy-two members. It was also agreed, that every person of good moral character, professing his faith in Christ, should be a freeman, and capable of holding any office; and that none who believed in one God, should be molested in his religion, or be compelled to attend, or maintain religious worship. º a In October, Penn, with two thousand planters, mostly Quakers, arrived at New-Castle. In December, he convoked an assem- bly; but so few delegates appearing, he ordered, that instead of seventy-two, three members only should constitute the council, and nine the house of assembly. . Penn now entered into a treaty with the Indians, of whom he purchased large tracts of territory; at the same time, he com- menced the city of Philadelphia, which, in one year, increased to a hundred houses and cottages. Pennsylvania had a more rapid and prosperous settlement than any of the other colonies. This was doubtless owing part- ly to its healthful climate and fruitful soil, partly to the fact, that the great obstacles of settlement had been overcome by the other colonies, and partly to the religious tolerance, mildness, and equity, which dº its laws, and their administra. tion. º In 1683, Penn, at the request of the freemen, granted them a new charter, by which eighteen persons were to form the coun- cil, and thirty-six the assembly. The next year, Penn himself returned to England. . Thelasting prosperity of Pennsylvania,the foundation of which must be traced to his wisdom and benevolence, is an eloquent eulogium upon his character. Section XXXV. In the year 1684, June 1 8, an event highly interesting to the colony of Mas- sachusetts took place in É. This decision in the high court of chancery had forfeited her charter, and that henceforth of the colonies, and who, for several years, had ºn the 㺠%. . $’ ‘’’ ... ::::::: '… º.º.º.º. ºft: 3 ad filled of the king with complaints against them for violating of trade. . . . . .º.º. º.º.º. gº tº sºme the ears the acts % ~ º - . º - º * ºs Building of Jamestown. p. 22. º - º º: FERIod II.1607.1689. SETTLEMENTs. - c. To answer to these complaints, Massachusetts repeatedly incurred the expense of sending agents to England, and of main- taining them there; but his majesty would accept of no con- ditions, short of a surrender of her charter. As she would not * this surrender voluntarily, it was violently wrested from her. 3 : º Before king Charles had time to adjust the af. fairs of the colony he died, and was succeeded by James II. Soon after his accession, similar #.; took place against the other colonies hode-Island submitted, and gave up her char. ter. Plymouth sent a copy of her charter to the king, with a humble petition that he would re- store it. Connecticut voted an address to his majesty, in which she prayed him to recall the writ that had been filed against her, and request- ed the continuance of her charter. The petitions and remonstrances of the colo- nies were, however, of no avail. Both the heart and hand of the king were manifestly against them. After all their hardships and dangers in settling a wilderness, they had no other prospect before them than the destruction of their dearest rights, and no better security of life, liberty, and property, than the capricious will of a tyrant. In pursuance of this cruel policy towards the colonies, two years after the charter of Massachu- setts was vacated, king James commissioned and sent out Sir Edmund Andross as governour of all New-England, Plymouth excepted. He arrived at Boston, Dec. 20, 1686. The commencement of his administration was comparatively auspicious. In a few months, however, the fair prospect was changed. Among other arbitrary acts, restraints were laid the freedom of the press, and marriage contracts. The liberty to worship in the congregational 62 period II.1607.1689. SETTLEMENTs. way was threatened, and the fees of all officers of government were exorbitantly and oppressive- ly enhanced. . . - ... In October, Sir Edmund, and suite, with a guard of about sixty regular troops, went to Hartford, where the assembly of Connecticut was in session. He entered the house of the as- sembly, demanded the charter of Connecticut, and declared the colonial government to be dissolved. . Extremely reluctant to surrender the charter, the assembly intentionally protracted its debates till evening, when the char ter was brought in, and laid on the table.—Upon a preconcerted signal, the lights were at once extinguished, and a Capt. Wads- worth, seizing the charter, hastened away under cover of night, and secreted it in the hollow of an oak. The candles, which nad been extinguished, were soon relighted without disorder; out the charter had disappeared. Sir Edmund, however, as- sumed the government, and the records of the colony were closed. . x The condition of the New-England colonies was now distressing, and as the administration of Andross was becoming still more severe and oppressive, the future seemed not to promise al- leviation. But Providence was invisibly prepar- ing the way for their relief. , Nov. 5th, 1688, William, Prince of Orange, who married Mary, daughter of James II. landed at Torbay, in Eng- land, and, compelling James II. to leave the kingdom, assumed the crown, being proclaim- ed Feb. 16th, 1689, to the general joy of the nation 2: 3 . . . . ; Section XXXVI. Rºanners of the 6to: lonists. In the colonies of North America, at the close of this period, three varieties of cha- racter might be distinguished. In New-England, the strict puritanical notions of the people wrought a correspondent austerity upon the manners of society. Placing implicit faith in the Scriptures, they moulded their government, and shaped pri- vate character and morals upon a severe and li- teral construction of them. They were devout —patriotic—industrious—and public spirited; and though of a grave, reflecting exterior, they often showed that shrewd inquisitiveness and keen relish of a jest, which are still character- istic of the New-Englanders. . : ... & The laws of the colonies throw some light on the views and manners of the people. As examples, in 1639, the drinking o healths was prohibited by law in Massachusetts. In 1651, the legislature of that colony prohibited all persons whose “estate did not exceed two hundred pounds, from wearing any gold or silver lace, or any bone lace above two shillings per yard.” The law authorized the selectmen to take notice of the costliness and fashion of the “apparel of the people, especially in the wearing of ribands and great boots.” The New-Haven colony, in 1639, resolved that they would be governed by the rules of Scripture; and that church members only should act in the civil affairs of the Plantation. ; ::3% In 1647, the colony of Connecticut expressed their disappro- bation of the use of tobacco, by an act of assembly, in which it was ordered, “that no person under the age of twenty years, nor any other that hath already accustomed himself to the use thereof, shall take any tobacco, until he shall have brought a certificate from under the hand of some who are approved for knowledge and skill in physic, that it is useful for him; and also that he hath received a license from the court for the same. All oth who had addict ed themselves to the use of tobacco, were, b same court, prohibited taking it in any company, or at hours, or on their travels, unless they were ten mile from any house, or more than once a day, though not 64 pany, on pain of a fine of sixpence for each time; to be proved by one substantial witness. The constable in each town to make presentment of such transgressions to the particular court, and upon conviction, the fine to be paid without gainsaying.” . In the Colony of New-York, during this period, the manners, of the colonists were strictly Dutch—with no other modifications than the privations of a new country, and the few English among them, necessarily effected. The same steadfast pursuit of wealth; the same plodding industry; the same dress, air, and physiognomy, which are given as characteristic of Holland, were equally characteristic of the inhabitants of New-Amster- In Virginia, the manners of the colonists were those of the less rigid English, rendered still more free and voluptuous by the influence of a softer climate and a more prolific soil. . Stith says of the first settlers of this colony, that some emi- grated “to escape a worse fate at home;” others, it is said, sought to repair fortunes by emigration, which had been ruined by excess. Many persons, however, of high character, were among the emigrants, and amidst the licentiousness of the Vir- ginian colony were found, at the close of this period, the seeds of that frankness, hospitality, taste, and refinement, which dis- tinguish the people of the South at this day. Other national peculiarities might be noticed, as these of the Fins in Delaware, those of the Quakers in Pennsylvania, &c.; . but at this period they were too limited to require a distinct no- tice in our work. . * Section XXXVII. ºtligiºn: The colony of Virginia, from its earliest existence, was exclu- sively devoted to the Church of England. . For several years, its unsettled state prevented that attention to a religious establishment, which afterwards the subject receiv- ed. At the expiration of thirteen years from the founding of the colony, there were but eleven parishes, and five ministers; the inhabitants of the colony did not at this time, however, much exceed two thousand persons. ... . . . . . . . . In 1621, the colony received a large accession to its numne rS and the governour and council were instructed “to take intº special regard the service of Almighty God, and the observance of his divine laws; and that the people should be trained up any ordered a hundred acres of land, in each of t ºil off for a glºbe, and two hundred P. ERIoD II.1607.1689. SETTLEMENTs. 65 iing to be raised, as a standing and certain revenue out of the profits of each parish, to make a living: this stipend was thus settled—that the minister shall receive yearly five hundred pounds of tobacco, and sixteen barrels of corn; which were col lectively estimated at two hundred pounds sterling. In 1642, the assembly passed a law prohibiting all, but those who had been ordained by English bishops, from preaching. In 1650, during the time of governour Berklev, the parishes of the colony were further regulated, the religion of the church of England was confirmed and established, and provision made for the support of the ministers. The maintenance of a minister, was put at sixteen thousand pounds of tobacco, which as valued, at that time, at ten shillings per hundred, was about eighty pounds sterling. But in addition to this, he had a dwelling house and glebe; also four hundred pounds of tobacco, or forty shil- lings for a funeral sermon, and two hundred pounds of tobacco, or twenty shillings for performing marriage by license, or five shillings when the banns were proclaimed. The tobacco des- timed for the minister was brought to him, well packed in hogs- heads, prepared for shipping. To raise this crop, twelve ne- groes were necessary. # & -- The special object of the New-England planters, in settling the country, was the enjoyment of their religious opinions, and the free exercise of religious worship, without molestation. Early attention was, therefore, paid to the gathering of churches, and the regulation of religion. They were Calvinists in doc- trine, and Congregational in discipline. Each church maintained its right to govern itself. They held to the validity of Presbyterian ordination, and the expediency of synods on great occasions. From the commencement, they used ecclesiastical councils, convoked by particular churches for advice, but not for the judicial determination of controver- SICS. : - - In each of the churches there was a pastor, teacher, ruling elder, and deacons. The pastor’s office consisted principally in exhortation; upon the teacher devolved the business of ex- plaining and defending the doctrines of christianity. The busi- ness of the ruling elder was to assist the pastor in the govern- ment of the church. - - - - - Early provision was made for the support of the ministry. On the arrival of the colonists of Massachusetts Bay, at Charles- town, before landing, a court of assistants was held, and the first guestion proposed was, How shall the ministers be maintain > :ourt ordered that houses be built, and salaries be ra m at the public charge. Their two mini 'e ts, M º r. Wilsen, **-m-tº- former thirty * 66 PERIOD II....1607.1689 ...SETTLEMENTS, pounds per annum, and the latter twenty pounds, until the ar- rival of his wife. §: After the settlement of the several colonies, all persons were obliged by law to contribute to the support of the church. Spe- cial care was taken that all persons should attend public wor- ship. In Connecticut the law obliged them to be present on the Lord's day—on all days of public fasting, and thanksgiving, appointed by civil authority, on penalty of five shillings, for every instance of neglect. By the year 1642, twenty-two years from the landing of the pilgrims at Plymouth, there had been settled in New-England, seventy-seven ministers, who were driven from the parent coun- try, fifty towns and villages had been planted, and thirty or forty churches gathered. & º In 1637, the first synod convenedin America, sat at Newtown, Massachusetts, and was composed of all the teaching elders in the country, and messengers of the several churches. Ma- gistrates also were present, and spoke as they thought fit. The object of calling this synod was to inquire into the opinions of one Ann Hutchinson, a very extraordinary woman, who held public lectures in Boston, and taught doctrines considered here- tical. The whole colony was agitated and divided into parties. The synod, after a session of three weeks, condemned eighty-two erroneous opinions which had become disseminated in New The Dutch Reformed Church was introduced into New-York with the first settlers, and was generally embraced, by the Dutch population of that colony. - - The Roman Catholics first came to America in 1632; they settled in Maryland, and now con- stitute a respectable and numerous portion of the inhabitants of that state. % The first Baptist church in America was form- ed at Providence in 1639. Their sentiments spreading into Massachusetts, in 1651, the ge- neral court passed a law against them, inflicting banishment for persisting in the promulgation of their doctrines. . . . . . . . . In 1656, the Quakers making their appearance P. º Riod II.1607.1689,...setTLEMENTs. in Massachusetts, the legislature of that colony passed severe laws against them. . No master of a vessel was allowed to bring any one of thi sect into its jurisdiction, on penalty of one hundred pounds. Other still severer penalties were inflicted upon them in 1657, such as cutting their ears, and boring their tongues with a hot iron, &c. They were at length banished on pain of death, and four, refusing to go, were executed in 1659. Without intending to justify these severities toward the Bap- tists, Quakers, and other sectaries, it is still proper to state, as some apology for them, that the conduct of the leaders of these sects was often calculated, and no doubt designed, to provoke persecution. They sought improper occasions to inculcate their peculiar tenets—departed unnecessarily from the decencies of social intercourse, and rudely inveighed against established and cherished opinions. In this way the peace of the colonies was disturbed, and that unanimity of religious sentiment which had hitherto existed, was broken. Our forefathers sought to avert these evils by the arm of civil power; not yet having learnt that persecution is a ready way to propagate the sentiments of the persecuted. - . In the year 1646, a synod met at Cambridge, which, by ad- journment, protracted its session to 1648, when it dissolved. This synod composed and adopted the “Cambridge Platform,” and recommended it, together with the Westminster Confession of Faith, to the General Court and to the churches. In this sy- nod were present the ministers and churches of Connecticut, and New-Haven, who united in the form of discipline which it recommended. This, in connexion with the ecclesiastical laws, was the religious constitution of Connecticut, until the compila- tion of the Saybrook Platform, a period of about sixty years. * Section XXXVIII. Traut, and Conte ittºrtt. The colonies, during this period, had little other trade than with England, though the West-India trade had begun, and there was some commerce with Canada, and a few ports on the European continent. The colonies imported from England all their merchandise; and ported thither tobacco, peltry, and at length some beef, pork, grain, and fish. The importations fro m England, however, much exceeded the ex- ports thither £3. ''. . . . . . . . . .%. . . ." § . . . . . . . . . .';...& 68 PERIOD II,...,1607.1689....SETTLEMENTS. . During the first thirty years of the colony of Virginia, their ex- ports were confined to tobacco. But the price of it fell at length from three shillings and sixpence per pound, to twenty shillings per hundred, in consequence of which, a trade was opened with the frontier Indians, and the five Nations. The skins of the deer, elk, and buffalo, and the furs of the otter, hare, fox, muskrat, and beaver, were procured for rum, hatchets, blankets, &c. These skins and furs were exported to England. English grain and Indian corn were also exported to a considerable extent. Although the Virginians owned a few vessels, the greater part of the trade was carried on by English vessels, during this pe- riod. They brought to the colony English manufactures, and took tobacco, furs, skins, grain, tar, pitch, &c. in return. The Virginians also carried on some trade with Canada. The principal article of export from New-England during this period was peltry, which was procured of the Indians for goods of small value. In 1639, a fishing trade was begun at Cape Anne, and in 1641, three hundred thousand codfish were sent to market. . % w The first vessel directly from the West Indies was a Dutch ship of 160 tons, which arrived at Marblehead, 1635. The first American vessel that went to the West Indies was a pin- nace of thirty tons, in 1636. The ship Desire of Salem made a voyage in 1638 to New-Providence and Tortuga, and returned laden with cotton, tobacco, salt, and negroes. This was the first introduction of African slaves into New-England. The first importation of indigo, and sugar, from the West Indies, mentioned in our accounts, was made in 1639. In 1642, a Dutch ship exchanged a cargo of salt for plank and pipe staves, the exports of lumber from New-England. The next year, eleven ships sailed for the West Indies with lumber. In 1678, the annual exports of the New-York colony, besides beef, pork, tobacco, and peltry, were about sixty thousand bushels of wheat. About ten or fifteen vessels on an average of one hundred tons, English and Colonial, traded to this colony in a Wear. * , , , , , … Section XXXIX. 3 grituititre. Early at- tention was paid to agriculture. The first busi- ness of the settlers, was to clear the forests and supply themselves with food from the soil. But the fertility of the earth taught them soon to look to agriculture as a source of wealth, as well as of §3. subsistence. It therefore became the lead object of industry in the colonies. PERIOD II....1607.1689,...SETTLEMENTS. The method adopted by the first settlers to clear the lan very slow and laborious, compared with the present mode They used generally to cut down the trees and dig stumps, before tillage. Tobacco was early cultivated in Virginia, and soon began tob exported. The year after the colony landed, the people gather- ed corn of their own planting, the seed of which they received of the Indians. Vineyards were attempted, and experienced vine- dressers were sent over for the purpose of taking care of them. Flax, hemp, barley, &c. were, cultivated to a considerable ex- tent. Rye was first raised in Massachusetts, in 1633. Ploughs were early introduced into the country. The first neat cattle, ever brought into New-England, were introduced by Mr. Winslow, in 1624. In 1629, one hundred and forty head of cattle, some horses, sheep, and goats, were brought to Massachusetts Bay. In a few years they became so numerous as to supply all the wants of the inhabitants. In h 623, the cattle in Virginia had increased to above one thousand ead. : ź . New-York raised considerable beef and pork for exportation, and in 1678, they exported sixty thousand bushels of wheat. Section XL. 3rts attºſ ſúatuttfattuttg. The colonists, during this period, being chiefly occupied in gaining a subsistence, and in protect- ing themselves against their enemies, had occa- sion for few articles beyond the necessaries and comforts of life. Arts and manufactures could, therefore, receive but little encouragement, be- yond the construction of such articles, and even those were principally imported. In 1620, one hundred and fifty persons came from England to Virginia to carry on the manufacture of silks, iron, potash, tar, pitch, glass, salt, &c. but they did not succeed. In ::::::: & ; which mer says of New-England, “There be five iron works which cast no guns—no house in New-England has above twenty rooms—not twenty in Boston have ten rooms each—a dancing tool was set up here, but put down—a fencing school is al- There be no musicians by trade. All cordage, and mats, col m England—no cloth made . millings per yard—no alum, no copperas, no salt, first buildingsofthesettlers were madeofog, ed, or werebuilt of stone. Brick and framed houses were soon ro builtin the larger towns, and afterwards in the villages. Thefra and brick were, however, in some instances, imported. The first mill in New-England was a wind-mill, near Watertown, but it was taken down in 1632, and placed in the vicinity of Boston. Water-mills began to be erected the next year. The first at- tempt to build water-craft, in New-England, was at Plymouth, in 1626. A house carpenter sawed their largest boat into two parts, and lengthened it five or six feet, built a deck, and rigged it into a convenient vessel, which did service for seven years, The first vessel, built in Massachusetts, was a bark in 1631, called The Blessing of the Bay. In 1633, a ship of sixty tons was built at Medford. In 1636, one of one hundred and twenty tons was built at Marblehead. In 1641, a ship of three hun- dred tons was launched at Salem, and one of one hundred and sixty tons at Boston. From this time ship building rapidly ex- tended in the northern colonies. The first printing in New-England, was done in 1639, by one Day. The proprietor of the press, was a clergyman, by the name of Glover, who died on his passage to America. The first thing printed was the Freeman’s Oath, the second an Almanack, and the third an edition of the Psalms. No other printing press was established in America, during this period. John Elliot, the celebrated missionary, having translated the bible into the Indian language, had it printed at Cambridge in 1664. The mode of travelling considerable distances was on foot or on horseback, there being no carriages for that purpose, and the roads from one village to another being only narrow foot-paths, through forests. º Section XLI. 330pulatiott. We may esti- mate the population of the English American co- lonies at the close of this period at about 200,000. 3. : ---- It is impossible to ascertain very exactly the p opulation of the American colonies at the close of this period. The estimates made by writers are vague, and often contradictory. The esti mate of Dr. Humphries in 1701, which seems as wellentitled to credit as any other, is as follows: - PERIOD II.....1607.1 º 9....SETTLE gº º M º S. 71. New-England, 120,000 | Norta Carolina, 5,000 Mid. and S. Colonies, 142,000 | South Carolina, 7,000 Total, 262,000 142,000 * º . Making a deduction from this account, so as to bring the esti- mate to the close of our period, we state the whole white popu lation of the English American colonies in 1689, at about two hundred thousand. N. – Section XLII. 330itration. In New-Eng- land schools were founded at the outset of the colonies for the education of all classes; in the southern colonies, provisions for the education of the higher classes only were attempted during this period. §. . . . . . * * • Scarcely had the American colonists opened the forests, and constructed habitations, before they directed their attention to the object of education. : " . . Previously to 1619, the king of England authorized the col- lection of monies throughout the kingdom to erect a col- lege in Virginia, for the education of Indian children; one thousand five hundred pounds were collected for this purpose, and Henrico was selected as a suitable place for the seminary. The same year, the Virginia company granted ten thousand acres of land for the projected university.—This donation, while it embraced the original object, was intended also for the foun- dation of a seminary of learning for English scholars. - ln addition to a college, the colonists, in 1621, instituted a school at Charles’ city for the benefit of all the colony, which they called the East India School. For the maintenance of the master and usher, one thousand acres of land were appropriated, with five servants and an overseer—From this school, pupils were to be transferred to the college at Henrico, when the latter should be sufficiently endowed. These establishments in Vir- ºnia, however, failed of success, and in 1692, their funds were ſº william and Mary, college, which we ºn re attentive to education, were the northern colonies. º a general court of Massachusetts Bay appropriated: jur hundred pounds towards the commencemer 72 PERIOD II.1607.1689....SETTLEMENT athed nearly eight hundre Charlestown about this time, bequ ºx pounds to the college, in consideration of which legac. -, called after him. In 1642 was held the first commencement, at which nine were graduated. . To this institution, the plantations of Connecticut and New- Haven, so long as they remained unable to support a similar one at home, contributed funds from the publick purse; and sent to it such of their youth as they wished to be educated. Pri vate subscriptions were also made from the united colonies to aid the institution. ź. " Great attention was also paid by all the colonies to the sub- ject of cor a schools. As a specimen of the arrangements common to the New-England colonies, we may notice those of Connecticut. By her first code, in 1639, only six years from the time the first house was erected within the colony, it was ordered that every town, consisting of fifty families, should main- tain a good school, in which reading and writing should be well taught, and that in every county town a good grammar school should be instituted. Large tracts of land were appropri- ated by the legislature as a permanent support of these schools, and the selectmen of every town were required to see that all heads of families instructed their children and servants to read the English tongue well. x XLIII. At the commencement of this period, our history pre- sented us with a continent, over whose surface an interminable wilderness had for ages cast its deep and solemn shade. If we approach the shore, and look through the gloom that gathers over it, the scenes which strike the eye are Indians at their war dancé, or perhaps flames curling round some expiring captive, or wild beasts mangling their prey. 3. * , º, . . . . • Passing from this point of time to the close of our period, a space of eighty-two years, the prospect is greatly changed. We now see smiling fields and cheerful villages in the place of dis- mal forests; instead of beasts of prey, we see grazing herds; of instead of the kindling faggot, we witness the worship of Jesus Christ; and instead of the ". whoop, we li grateful songs of David. In the beautiful words of scripture, :----------------> ess has begun to blossom as the rose, and the desert is becoming vocal with the praises of God. . . . Pocahontas saving Captain Smith. p. 27. g # 32. & # § trgºnza. p. V. .S. ¿ „Sº *<> S � :S PERIOD II.1607.1689. SETTLEMENTs. America. But we have alsº seen our for º difficulties, and often trembling on t <-- - - -ºº:::: *. N. e very brink of ruin. We have seen them amidst Indian war, desolating famine, and pes- tilence; and we have wondered after the storm has passed see them rise with renovated strength, and seem to gather power iting then, the extraordinary energy, wisdom, enterprise, and hardihood of the first settlers of America, still we are driven to the admission of a benign providence working in their fa- vour, and mysteriously establishing their strength and security, Nor are these the only considera hen, the extraordinary energ ', W1 . considerations which excite c ration, in regard to the first settlers of North Am though, in the eloquent words of Mr. Walsh, “It w culiar lot, at one and the same time, to clear derness; to erect habitations and procure sustenance; to struggle with a new and rigorous climate; to bear up against all the bit- ter recollections inseparable from distant and lonely exile; to defend their liberties from the jealous tyranny and bigotry of the mother country; to be perpetually assailed by a savage foe, the most subtle and the most formidable of any people on the face of the earth:”—still, they looked forward to the welfare of future generations—laid broad and deep foundations for religious institutions—made the most careful provisions for learning, and enacted wholesome laws, the benefit of which is distinctly felt In our introduction, we have remarked that history shows the influence of the manners of a people upon their government, the reciprocal influence of government upon the r is a eople. The history of this period furnishes st Of this. In Virginia, the free and licentious mann produce a government unsteady and capricious. mentre-acts upon their manners, and aids rathert their licentiousness. On the contrary, in New -: * ~ * 3... . . . . . . º. 3:?:... : : y, in New- yere puritanical manners of the people prod as: ick § . . % º º % % º & é 2. § . & % § . 3. . N. 2 º ; intrion ºf distinguished for THE wars of King williasi, . QUEEN ANNE, AND GEORGE II. Extending from the accession of William and Mary to the throne of England, 1689, to the Declaration of the War by England against f ; 1756, called “the French and Indian Section I. The news of William’s accession to the throne of England, filled the colonies with ecstacy. Under the sudden impulse of their feelings, the inhabitants of Boston seized Sir Edmund Andross, with about fifty of his associ- ates, and put them in close confinement, where they lay, until ordered to England, to answer for male-administration. Connecticut and Rhode- Island immediately resumed their charters, and were permitted by his majesty to re-establish their former governments. Massachusetts soon after obtained a new charter, in some respects less favourable to the colony, but in others, more so, than its former one. Andross had formerly been governour of New- York, under the duke of York, in which p his administration had been distinguish Ol' measures both arbitrary and severe. Subsequent governours, under the duke, and after he came to the throne, had generally pursued a similar course. The discontents of the people had been PERIOD III.1689.1756. , , 75 gradually increasing, and they were - revolution, when the above intelligence of the proceedings at Boston arrived. A revolution soon commenced, and, although attended by un- happy events, issued in the restoration of the rights of the people, and the formation of a con- stitution, which laid the foundation of their pro- vincial code. * . . . From the reduction of New-York, in 1664, to 1683, the peo- ple had no share in the government. In 1681, the council court of assizes, and corporation, had solicited the duke of York to permit the people to choose their own rulers. Accordingly. the next year, Thomas' Dongan, a papist, was appointed govern- our, with instructions to call an assembly, to consist of a coull- cil of ten, and of eighteen representatives, elected by the free- holders. --- ...-- " - º º On the accession of the duke of York to the throne, under the title of James II. he refused to confirm to the people the privi- leges granted them when he was duke. No assembly was per- mitted to be convened; printing presses were prohibited, and the more important provincial offices were conferred on papists. Such was the state of things, when intelligence of the seizure of Andross arrived. This gave a spring to the general dissatis- faction, which burst forth into open resistance to the existing ad- ministration. . . . . . . . . One Jacob Leisler, with several others, immediately took pos- session of the fort. Governour Dongan had just embarked for England, leaving the administration of the government, during his absence, to Charles Nicholson, at that time his deputy. Nicholson and his officers made what opposition to Leisler th were able, but he having been joined by six militia captains and four hundred and seventy men, Nicholson absconded. Upon this, Leisler assumed the supreme command. ... This assumption of Leisler was far from being pleasant to and magistrates, at the head of whom were Col. Bay- e mayor. Finding it impossible, however, to suc- eisler in New- Llbanv. and were ready for (ork, they retired to Alba § fluence to foment opposition. Both Lei 76 THREE wars of wu, III. ANNE...Geo. ii. as, for the time being, take care for preserv- his absence, to such . ing the peace and administering the laws,” &c. Accompany. ing this letter, was another of a subsequent date, vesting Nichol. son with the chief command. § As Nicholson had absconded, Leisler construed the letter as directed to himself, and from that time assumed the title and au- thority of lieutenant govermour. The southern part of New- enerally submitted to him; but Albany refusing subjec- York tion, §. his son-in-law, was sent to reduce them. In his first attempt he failed; but during the ensuing spring, 1690, he took possession of the fort, and the inhabitants submitted. ... On the 19th of March, 1691, Col. Slaughter arrived at New. York, in the capacity of the king’s governour. Nicholson and Bayard, who had been imprisoned by Leisler, were released. The latter was obliged to abandon the fort, and with Milborn. his son-in-law, was apprehended, tried for high treason, and condemned. Their immediate execution was urged by the peo- ple; but the governour, fearful of consequences, chose to defer it. To effect their purpose, an invitation was given him by the titizens to a sumptuous feast, and while his reason was drowned in intoxication, a warrant for their execution was presented to him and signed. Before he recovered his senses, the prisoners were no more. 3. - - Measures so violent greatly agitated the existing parties, but fn the end, the revolution which had taken place, restored the rights of Englishmen to the colony. Governour Slaughter con- voked an assembly, who formed a constitution. This consti- tution, among other provisions, secured trials by jury, freedom from taxation, except by the consent of the assembly, and tole 3. to all denominations of Christians, excepting Romanca. tholicks. … . . . . ...: 3: . . . . .3 Section II. While these troubles were distress- in the south, was far from being in a state of tranquillity. Dissensions early arose in that co- lony respecting the proprietary government, un der which they still continued. On the one hand a part of the people insisted upon implicit obe- dience to all the laws and regulations of the pro- prietors in England: while another part contend- parties PERIOD III.1689.1756. 77 mined, the conflict between them was violent, and greatly prolonged, to the serious injury of the colony. - - In addition to these dissensions, others arose between the English settlers, and a colony of French Protestants who had planted themselves in the county of Craven; to whom the English denied nearly every civil privilege, and especially the right of representation in the assembly. In view of these accumulating troubles, John Archdale, one of the proprietors, was sent to America in 1695, with full powers to redress grievances, and, if possible, to adjust existing differences. Archdale was received with cordiality, and by his singular wisdom and address, was so happy as to accomplish the purposes of his mission, ex- cept that he was unable fully to secure the rights and liberties of the French refugees. Not long after, however, the prejudices of the English against them abated, and they became incorpo- rated with the freemen of the colony. Section III. About this period, 1692, commenc- ed in Danvers, then a part of Salem, Massachu- setts, a singular infatuation on the supposed pre- valence of witchcraft. In a short time, this infa- tuation pervaded several parts of New-England, producing, in its progress, the greatest distress in private families and disorder and tumult throughout the country. & º º The first suspicion of witchcraft in New-England, and in the es, began at Springfield, Massachusetts, as early as ral persons, about that time, were accused, tried, d in Massachusetts; one at Charlestown, one 78 PERIOD III.1689.1756. woman was tried and executed. Near the close of February, 1692, the subject was again re- vived, in consequence of several children in Danvers, Salem, be-, ginning to act in a peculiar and unaccountable manner. Their strange conduct” continuing for several days, their friends be- took themselves to fasting and prayer. During religious exer- cises it was found that the children were generally decent and still; but after service was ended, they renewed their former inexplicable conduct. This was deemed sufficient evidence that they were labouring under the influence of witchcraft. At the expiration of some days, the children began to accuse several persons in the neighbourhood of bewitching them. Un fortunately they were credited, and the suspected authors of the spell, were seized and imprisoned. From this date, the awful mania rapidly spread into the neigh bouring country, and soon appeared in various parts of Essex Middlesex, and Suffolk. Persons at Andover, Ipswich, Glou- cester, Boston, and several other places, were accused by their neighbours and others. - - : For some time, the victims were selected only from the lower classes. But at length the accusations fell upon persons of the most respectable rank. In August, Mr. George Boroughs, some time minister in Salem, was accused, brought to trial, and con: demned. Accusations were also brought against Mr. English, a respectable merchant in Salem, and his wife; against Messrs. Dudley and John Bradstreet, sons of the then late governour Bradstreet; against the wife of Mr. Hale, and the lady of Sir William Phipps. The evil had now become awfully alarming. Oneman, named Giles Corey, had been pressed to death for refusing to put him- Unhappily the accusation was regarded with attention, and the *... . * The manner in which those who were supposed to be afflicted with this malady were exercised, is thus described by Cotton Mather in his Magnalia. “Sometimes they were deaf, sometimes dumb, sometimes blind, and often all this at once. Their tongues would be drawn down their throats, and then pulled out upon their chins to a prodigious length, Their mouths were forced open to such a wideness that their jaws went out of joint; and anon would clap together again with a force like that of a spring lock; and the like would happen to their shoulder-blades, and their elbows, and their hand-wrists, and several of their joints. Some they would be benumbed, and be drawn violently together, and pre: stretched out and drawn back. They complained that they were ves and struck with blows, and the prints of the wounds were | r * Wº a I eli - - > ºw º t r took place: cut with kni t ſ on th P º OD ill ...1689,...1755, 79 self on trial by jury ; and nineteen persons had been executed more than one third of whom were members of the church. One hundred and fifty were in prison, and two hundred were accused. & º . At length the inquiry was anxiously suggested, where will this accumulating mischief and misery end ? A conviction be- gan to spread that the proceedings had been rash and indefen- sible. A special court was held on the subject, and fifty who were brought to trial, were acquitted, excepting three, who were afterwards reprieved by the governour. These events were fol- lowed by a general release of those who had been imprisoned. “Thus the cloud,” says the late President Dwight, “which had so long hung over the colony, slowly and sullenly retired; and like the darkness of Egypt, was, to the great joy of the distress- ed inhabitants, succeeded by serenity and sunshine.” We, who live to look back upon this scene, are wont to con- template, with wonder, the seeming madness and infatuation, not of the weak, illiterate, and unprincipled; but of men of sense, education, and fervent piety. Let us consider, however, that at this period, the actual existence of witchcraft was taken for granted, and that doubts respecting it were deemed little less than heresy. The learned Baxter, who lived at this time in England, where the same notions on this subject prevailed, pro- nounced the disbeliever in witchcraft, an “obdurate Sadducee;” and Sir Matthew Hale, one of the brightest ornaments of the English bench, repeatedly tried and condemned those as crimi- mals, who were accused of witchcraft. *The human mind is prone to superstition, and more or less of it prevails in every country, even in those which are civilized and refined, and upon which divine revelation sheds its light. In the case of the people of Essex, where this delusion chiefly prevailed, there were circumstances existing which did not exist in England. They had lived for some years among the savages, had heard their narratives of Hobbamocko, or the devil, of his frequent appearance to them, of their conversations with him, and of his sometimes carrying them off. Every village was the theatre of some such scenes, and stories of mystery and won- der, heightened by imagination, went the rounds during their wint inings, confirmed their opinions, roused their admira- and furnished materials for approaching terrours. . he circumstances attending the first strange appearances ifortunate, and powerfully tended to give them cur- family of a minister, who was himself credulous, 30 THREE WARS OF WM, III. l . NE....GEO. I I. and with whom an Indian and his wife lived, were first affected. The opinions of the Indians were deemed important, as they were supposed to be adepts in the science of witchcraft. Added to this, the physician of the village concurred in the opinion, and the fact was therefore no longer to be doubted. The attention of the publick mind was immediately roused, and as others seem ed to be exercised in a similar manner, the way was prepared for the delusion to spread. Children of not more than twelve years of age were permitted to give their testimony; Indians were called to tell their stories of wonder, and women their noc turnal frights. For a time the counsels of age were unheard; wisdom was confounded, and religion silenced. If, however, the uniform protestations of those who were exe cuted, or the confessions of numbers who had been accusers, or the conviction of errour on the part of those who were leaders in these awful scenes, be credited, we shall be satisfied that the whole originated in folly and delusion. All who were executed, excepting the first, protested their innocence with their dying breath, when a confession would have saved their lives. Years afterwards, those who had been accusers, when admitted to the church, acknowledged their delusion, and asked “pardon for having brought the guilt of innocent blood on the land.” Even juries, who had been concerned in the trial and condem- nation of some of these unfortunate sufferers, recanted their er- rours. “We do signify,” to use the language of a jury subse- quently conscious of their wrong, “our deep sense of, and sor- row for, our errours in acting on such evidence; we pray that we may be considered candidly and aright, by the living suffer- ers, as being then, under the power of a general and strong de- lusion.” In one instance at least, a church, that of Danvers, which had excommunicated a person on suspicion of witchcraft, and who was hung, four years afterwards, recalled the sentence, “that it might not stand against her to all generations.” In conclusion it may be remarked, that no people on earth are now more enlightened on this subject than are the people of America. Nothing of a similar kind has since existed, and pro- bably never will exist. Stories of wonder, founded upon an- cient tradition, or upon a midnight adventure, sometimes awe the village circle on a winter’s night, but the succeeding day chases away every ghost, and lulls every fear. It becomes the present generation to advert with gratitude to their freedom those delusions which distressed and agitated their ancest ther than to bestow invectives upon them, since they coul in palliation of their errour-the spirit of the age in wh PERIOD III.1680 ...1726. 81 Section IV. Scarcely were the colonies reliev- cd from the oppression of king James, before they were visited with troubles of a nature still more distressing. The revolution, which follow- ed the accession of William and Mary, had in- deed restored their liberties, but it involved them in a war both with the French and Indians, which continued from 1690, to the peace of Ryswick, In 1697, commonly called “King William's War.” - King James, on leaving England, fled to France. Louis XIV, king of France, attempting to support him, kindled the flame of war between his own country and England. The subjects of Louis, in Canada, of course directed their arms against the colonies of New-England and New-York, and instigated the Indians to join them in their hostilities. : . Count Frontenac, a brave and enterprising of- icer, was now the governour of Canada. In- flamed with the resentment which had kindled in the bosom of his master, Louis XIV. of France, against William, for his treatment of James, he fitted out three expeditions, in the dead of winter, against the American colonies—one against New- York, a second against New-Hampshire, and a third against the province of Maine. Each of these parties, in the execution of their orders, marked their progress with plunder, fire, and death. . , The party destined against New-York, consisting of about three hundred men, in February fell upon Schenectady, a vil- lage on the Mohawk. The season was cold, and the snow so sep, that it was deemed impossible for an enemy to approach. e attack was made in the dead of the night, while the inhabit- re in a profound sleep. Not a sentinel was awake to :e the approaching danger. Care had been taken, by a in the preparations were ready, on a pr ire—men and women were drag 82 their beds, and with their sleeping infants were inhumanly muſ. dered. Sixty persons perished in the massacre, thirty were n prisoners, while the rest of the inhabitants, mostly naked, through a deep snow, either suffering extrem shing º the cold. . ºr . -º The second party, directing their course to New-Hamp- shire, burned Salmon Falls, killing thirty of the bravest men, and carrying fifty-four of the inhabitants into a miserable cap- The third party, proceeding from Quebec, destroyed the set- tlement of Casco, in Maine, and killed and captured one hun- dred people. § % Section W. Roused by these proceedings of the French, the colony of Massachusetts resolv- ed to attack the enemy in turn. Accordingly an expedition consisting of seven vessels, and eight hundred men, under command of Sir William Phipps, sailed for the reduction of Port Royal, in Nova Scotia, which was easily and speedily effected. - ". A second expedition, under the same comman- der, was soon after resolved upon by the colonies of New-York, Connecticut, and Massachusetts, united, for the reduction of Montreal and Que- bec. A combination of unfortunate circumstan- ces, however, defeated the design, and the ex- pedition after encountering numerous hardships and disasters, returned. The plan was for the troops of New-York and Connecticut, consisting of about two thousand, to penetrate into Canada, by Lake Champlain, and to attack Montreal, at the same time that the naval armament, consisting of between thirty and forty ves. sels, with a similar number of men, should invest Quebec. The troops destined for Montreal not being supplied, either with boats or provisions, sufficient for crossing the lake, were obliged to return. The naval expedition did not reach Quebec, until z snº 'sin consultation, the land. º ely, or peri i October. After spending several day ºw troops were soon after re-embarked, and th ing tem inated the expedi. pestuous, scattered the fleet, and ter The success of the expedition had been so confidently calcu- ated upon, that provision had not been made for the payment of the troops; there was danger, therefore, of a mutiny. In this extremity, Massachusetts issued bills of credit, as a substi- tute for money; the first emission of the kind in the American colonies. . Sir William Phipps, to whom the above expeditions were en- trusted, was a native of New-England. The extraordinary in- cidents of his life will serve to exhibit the powerful spirit of per- sonal enterprise which the peculiar circumstances of the colo- nies called forth. . The place of his birth, which happened in 1650, was a small plantation, on the river Kennebeck, at that time nearly the limit of the English settlements on the east. His father was a gun- Smith, who had a family of twenty-six children by one wife, twenty-one of whom were sons, of which William was nearly the youngest. His father dying while he was quite a lad, he lived with his mother until his eighteenth year, during, which time he was chiefly concerned in the care of sheep. Contrary te the wishes of his friends, he now indented himself as an ap- prentice to a ship-carpenter, for four years, in which time he be- came master of his art. Upon the expiration of his service, he vent to Boston, where he followed his trade about a year, during. which he learned to read and write, and in which time he was respectably married. . Failing of that success in his trade, which his enterprising ge- nius coveted, he turned his attention to the sea, and during his first Voyage, hearing of a Spanish wreck near the Bahamas, he di- rected his course thither, but obtained from it only sufficient to furnish himself for a voyage to England. On his arrival in that country, he heard of another Spanish wreck, in which was lost ºn immensetreasure; but the precise spot of which was as yet un- discovered. Being sanguine in the belief that he should be more successful than those who had preceded him, in their attempts ver it, he solicited the patronage of several persons in through whose influence he was appointed to the Algier an English frigate of eighteen guns and ninety-five men, me time after, he sailed in quest of the wreck. appens that Divine Providence, previously to crown- exertions with success, involves him for a season in 84 ioin o of life, that he shoul nly conditi × 3.3:… . .33-3-3-3-32:3:… . . … 3-3-3-3:- - - --> outh Seas, to engage in piracy. . stood firm and collected until he had fixed his plan, and then with swords, dealing his blows so judiciously that he felled numbers to the deck, and so awed the rest, that they consented to yield. At another time finding it necessary to careen his vessel, he put into a desolate Spanish island, near to a rock from which a temporary bridge was extended to the ship. Mutiny was se. cretly working among his crew. While preparations were mak- ing by the carpenter for repairing the vessel, ninety of his men left her, and retired into the adjoining wood, under pretence of diversion, but in reality for mutinous purposes. Here a plan was formed, which was to seize Capt. Phipps, and the nine or ten men who were known to be friendly to him, and to abandon them to their fate on the island. . . . * Apprehensive that the carpenter might be necessary on their voyage, they sent to him, them at work on the vessel, and re. Tuested that he would come to them. On his arrival he was apprized of their design, and threatened with death should he not second their views. The carpenter, being an honest man, requested an half hour to think upon the proposal, and return. ing to the ship, accompanied by a spy from the mutineers, -sumed his work. On a sudden, feigning himself severely dis. tressed with pain, he excused himself, while he should hasten to the captain, who was below, for a dram. In few words, while the dram was getting, he discovered the plot to Capt. Phipps, and sought his advice. The captain bid him go back to the rogues, sign their articles, and leave the rest to him. Nº sooner had the carpenter gone, than Capt. Phipps su ; ioned . having briefly stated the plan in agitation, demanded of them, whether they would share his fortune; to which they unanimously agreed All their provisions were on shore in a tent, round which seve: ral guns had been planted, to defend them from the Spaniards, shoul tºº. to pass that way. 1. Capt. Phip the men on board, of whom the gunner was one, and PERIOD III.1689.1756, 85. .ike preparations visible, they paused; upon which Capt. Phipps informed them that their plot was discovered, and that he was determined to leave them to that ſate, which they had designed for him, and those of the crew who were too virtuous to second their villanous purposes. At the same time he directed the bridge to be let down, and the provisions to be brought on board —while some of the men should stand with matches at the guns, with orders to fire should a single mutineer advance. This un- expected reverse, and especially the prospect of a certain, but a lingering death on a desolate shore, had the effect to subdue the mutineers, who now on their knees besought his pardon, and promised obedience to his orders. Unwilling, however, to trust them, Capt. Phipps tied their arms one after another; and when all were on board, immediately weighed anchor, and sailed for Jamaica, where he dismissed them. From this place, hav- ing shipped another crew, he sailed for Hispaniola, intending to proceed in search of the Spanish wreck; but his crew proving unfit, he returned to England. - # , Through the assistance of the duke of Albemarle, and other per- sons of quality, he was furnished with another ship and a tender, with which he sailed for Port de la Plata, where after completing his preparations, he proceeded in search of the wreck. Having for a long time fruitlessly sought the object of his voyage, in the neighbourhood of a reef of rocks called the Boilers, further search was about being abandoned, when, as one of the boats was returning to the ship across the reef, one of the men looking over the side, spied as he thought a sea feather, growing out of a rock; whereupon an Indian diver was directed to descend and letch it up. But what were their surprise and joy, on his return, to learn that he had discovered several guns, lying on the bottom of the deep. A second descent of the Indian increased their joy still more, for on his rising, he was bearing in his hand a sow, as they called it, or a mass of silver, of the value of several hun- dred pounds sterling. Tidings of the discovery were immedi- ately conveyed to Capt. Phipps, who, with his men, repaired to the spot, and upon leaving the place, carried with him thirty- two toºls of silver bullion, besides a large quantity of gold, pearls, and jewels, over which the billows had been rolling for more than hal, a century. On his arrival in London, the property hus rescued was valued at nearly three hundred thousand pounds ing; yet of this sum such was his exemplary honesty and ity, that partly by fulfilling his assurances to his seamen, tly by conscientiously paying over to his employers all i, he had left to himself less than sixteen thousand ds. As a reward to his fidelity, however, he received a present from the duke * and upon a repre- 36 THREE WARs of ww. iii....ANNE...Geo. II. sentation of his enterprise to the king, his majesty conferred up- on him the honour of knighthood. Liberal offers were made to him by the commissioners of the navy to continue in England, but he had too great an attachment for his native country to think of a permanent residence in any other land than that of New-England. . -- James II. was at this time on the throne of England, by whom the colonies in America had been deprived of their charters, and under whose governours they were severely suffering from ar- bitrary laws, and excessive exactions.—Pleased with Phipps, the king gave him an opportunity to ask of his majesty what he pleased ; upon which, forgetting personal aggrandizement, he besought for New-England, that her lost privileges might be re- stored to her. This was too great a boon to be granted, and the king replied, “any thing but that.” His next request was, that he might be appointed high sheriff of the country, hoping that by means of his deputies in that office, he might supply the country with conscientious juries “which was the only method,” says Mather, “that the New-Englanders had left them to secure any thing that was dear unto them.” Having at some expense obtained his request, after an absence of five years, he arrived in his native country; but the king's government found means not only to set aside his commission as high sheriff, but also to raise against him such a tide of oppo- sition, that he had nearly been assassinated before his own door. Finding affairs in so unsettled a state, and his own situation un- coinfortable, he, not long after, took another voyage to England. Soon after his arrival in that country, James abdicated the , throne, and the Prince of Orange ascended it. This event was the harbinger of better things to New-England. Having ten- dered his services to William, and rejected with disdain the go- vernment of New-England, proffered to him about this time by the abdicated king, he hastened his return to America, hoping now to be of some service to his country. In the unsettled state of the colonies, his wisdom and influence were of great import. ance, and contributed not a little to forward the revolution, which issued in freeing the colonies from the tyranny of James and his ministers. The latter part of the life of Sir William Phipps is rendered oubly interesting, by his openly espousing the cause of religion. At the age of forty he was publickly baptized in one of the churches of Boston, and received into her communion. In an address on that occasion, in conclusion he observed, “I have ad proffers of baptism elsewhere made to me, but fresolved rather to defer it until I could enjoy it in the communion of these lurches. I have had awful impressions from the words of the PERIOD III.1680.1726. 87 Lord Jesus, ‘Whosoever shall be ashamed of me, and of my word, of him shall the Son of Man be ashamed.” When God had blessed me with something of the world, I had no trouble so great as this, lest it should not be in mercy; and I trembled at nothing more than being put off with a portion here. That I may be sure of better things, I now offer myself unto the com- munion of the faithful.” King William’s war breaking out at this time, he sailed upon the expedition against Port Royal and Quebec, related above. In the following year he received a commission as captain gene- ral and governour in chief over the province of Massachusetts Bay. No appointment could have been more acceptable to the people. He came to the government however in unsettled times, and though his administration was marked by disinterestedness and liberality, it was his fortune, as it is the fortune of all in high stations, to have enemies. Too restless to remain at ease, they at length preferred charges against him to the king, who, though satisfied of his fidelity, considering it expedient to in- quire into the case, directed Sir William to appear in England. In obedience to the royal command, he took leave of Boston, in Nov. 1694, attended with every demonstration of respect from the people, and with addresses to their Majesties, that he might be continued in his present respectable and useful station. On his arrival in England, the cloud, which had hung over him, was fast dispelling, and the prospect flattering of his speedy return to his government uninjured by the accusation of preju- dice and calumny. But Providence had now accomplished its designs in respect to him. He was suddenly attacked by ama- lignant disease, which terminated his life, in February, to the great grief of all who were acquainted with the generosity and patriotism, integrity, and piety, that distinguished him. The life of such a man is always replete with instruction. It reveals to those in the humbler walks of life, the means by which they may not only arrive at distinction, but to that which is of far higher importance—an extended sphere of usefulness in church and state. Enterprise, exertion, integrity, will accom- plish every thing.” - º . . . . Section VI. The failure of the expedition to Quebec was humbling to New-England, and pro- §uctive of other unhappy consequences. The Indian tribes, Mohawks, Oneidas, Senecas, On- w # - x < *ś3 - - º - § 88 THREE wans of wyſ. HLANNE...GEO. II. ondagos, and Delawares, called the Five Nations, settled along the banks of the Susquehannah, and in the adjacent country, who were in alliance with Great Britain, and had long been a safe- guard to the colonies against the French, be- came dissatisfied. They blamed the English for their inactivity, and manifested a disposition to make peace with the French. To restore the conſidence of the Indian allies, Major P. Schuy- ler, the next year, 1691, with three thousand men, nearly half Mohawks and Schakook Indians, made an attack on the French settlements, north of Lake Champlain. De Callieres, govern- our of Montreal, was waiting to oppose him. After a severe encounter, Schuyler made good his retreat, having killed thirteen officers and three hundred men. ...” New-York found great security against the encroachments of the French, in the Five Nations, who now carried on a vigorous war, along the river St. Lawrence, from Montreal to Quebec. But the eastern portion of the country, particularly New- Hampshire, suffered exceedingly; the storm falling with the greatest severity upon them. Both Connecticut and Massachu- setts raised troops for their defence; but such was the danger and distress of the colony of New-Hampshire, that the inhabit- ants were upon the point of abandoning the Province. … The winter of 1696 was unusually severe. Never had the country sustained such losses in commerce, nor had provisions, in any period of the war, been more scarce or borne a higher price. - Section VII. In the midst of these distresses, the country was threatened with a blow, which it seemed impossible that it should sustain. The marquis Nesmond, an officer of high reputation, was despatched from France, with ten ships of the line, a galliot, and two frigates. Count Fron- tenac, from Canada, was expected to join him at Penobscot, with one thousand five hundred men. With this force, they were to make a de' scent on Boston; to range the coast of New foundland, and burn the shipping which should fall in their way. To finish their work of de PERIOD III.1689.1756. 89 struction, they were to take New-York, whence the troops, under Frontenac, were to return to Canada, through the country, wasting and de- stroying the regions through which they should pass. But De Nesmond sailed too late for the accomplishment of his purpose. On his arrival on the coast, not being able to join Frontenac in season, the expedition failed, and the colonies were saved. At length, Dec. 10, 1697, a treaty was concluded between France and England, at Ryswick, in Germany, by which it was agreed, in general terms, that a mutual restitution should be made of all the countries, forts, and colonies, taken by each party during the war. . King William's war, which was thus terminated, had been marked by atrocities on the part of the French and Indians, un- til then, unknown in the history of the colonies. Women, soon expecting to become mothers, were generally ripped up, and their unborn offspring inhumanly dashed against a stone or tree. Infants, when they became troublesome, were despatched in the same manner. Or, to add to the anguish of a mother, her babe was sometimes lacerated with a scourge, or nearly strangled under water, and then presented to her to quiet. If unable soon to succeed in this, it was too effectually quieted by the hatchet, or left behind to become the prey of prowling beasts. Some of the captives were roasted alive; others received deep wounds in the fleshy parts of their bodies, into which sticks on ire were thrust, until tormented out of life, they expired. In one instance, an infant was tied to the corpse of its mother, and eft to perish, vainly endeavouring to draw nourishment from her bosom. . :3. & Great were the sufferings of those whose condition was the pest. They were subjected to the hardships of travelling with- out shoes, without clothes, and often without food, amidst frost, and rain, and snow, by night and by day, through pathless de- serts, and through gloomy swamps. No kindness was shown them, and no pity felt for them. If they fainted under theirburden, or only remitted for a moment their toil, they received from theirin- human conductors the severest chastisement, or expired by means of a blow from the tomahawk. Such were some of the calami- ties which our ancestors endured in the defence of the country, which they have transmitted "; with so much honour. " The details of individual sufferings, which occurred during this war, were they faithfully recorded, would excite the sym- pathies of the most unfeeling bosom. One instance only can we relate. • . º In an attack by a body of Indians on Haverhill, New-Hamp- shire, in the winter of 1697, the concluding year of the war, a party of the assailants, burning with savage animosity, approach- ed the house of a Mr. Dustan. Upon the first alarm, he flew from a neighbouring field to his family, with the hope of hurry- ing them to a place of safety. Seven of his children he directed to flee, while he himself went to assist his wife, who was confin- ed to the bed with an infant, a week old. But before she could leave her bed, the savages arrived. § In despair of rendering her assistance, Mr. Dustan flew to the door, mounted his horse, and determined in his own mind, to snatch up and save the child which he loved the best. He fol lowed in pursuit of his little flock, but, upon coming up to them, he found it impossible to make a selection. The eye of the pareu could see no one of the number that he could abandon to the knife of the savage. He determined, therefore, to meet his fate with them; to defend and save them from their pursu- ers, or die by their side. w . A body of Indains soon came up with him, and, from short distances, fired upon him and his little company. For more than a mile he continued to retreat, placing himself between his children and the fire of the savages; and returning their shots with great spirit and success. At length he saw them all safely lodged from their bloody pursuers, in a distant house. . It is not easy to find a nobler instance of fortitude and courage, inspired by affection, than is exhibited in this instance. Let us ever cultivate the influence of those ties of kindred, which are capable of giving so generous and elevated a direction to our ac- tions. x . . . . . As Mr. Dustan quitted his house, a party of Indians entered it. Mrs. Dustan was in bed; but they ordered her to rise, and, before she could completely dress herself, obliged her and the nurse, who had vainly endeavoured to escape with the infant, to quit the house, which they plundered and set on fire. In these distressing circumstances Mrs. Dustan began her march, with other captives, into the wilderness. The air was keen, and their path led alternately through snow and deep mud; and her savage conductors delighted rather in the infliction of torment, than the alleviation of distress. º he company had proceeded but a short dist t nce, when an n, thinking the infant an incumbrance, took it from the nurse's arms, and violently terminated its life. Such of t § PERIOD III.1689.1756. 9. other captives as began to be weary, and incapable of proceed. %. ing, the Indians killed with their tomahawks, Feeble as Mrs. Dustan was, both she and her nurse sustained with wonderful energy, the fatigue and misery attending a journey of one hun- dred and fifty miles. § . On their arrival at the place of their destination, they found the wigwam of the savage, who claimed them as his personal property, to be inhabited by twelve Indians. In the ensuing April, this family set out with their captives, for an Indian set. tlement still more remote. The captives were informed that, on their arrival at the settlement, they must submit to be strip- ped, scourged, and run the gauntlet, between two files of Indians. This information carried distress to the minds of the captive wo- men, and led them promptly to devise some means of escape. Early in the morning of the 31st, Mrs. Dustan awaking her nurse and another fellow-prisoner, they despatched ten of the twelve Indians while asleep. The other two escaped. The women then pursued their difficult and toilsome journey through the wilderness, and at length arrived in safety at Haverhill. Subsequently, they visited Boston, and received, at the hand of the General Court, a handsome consideration for their extra- ordinary sufferings and heroick conduct. . “Whether all their sufferings,” says Dr. Dwight, to whom we are indebted for this interesting story, “and all the danger of suffering anew, justified this slaughter, may probably be ques- tioned by the exact moralist. Precedents innumerable, and of high authority, may indeed be urged in behalf of these captives; but the moralist will equally question the rectitude of these. Few persons, however, agonizing as Mrs. Dustan did, under the evils which she had already suffered, and in the full apprehen- sion of those which she was destined to suffer, would have been able to act the part of nice casuists; and fewer still, perhaps, would have exercised her intrepidity. That she herself approv. ed of the conduct, which was applauded by the magistrates and divines of the day, in the cool hours of deliberation, cannot be doubted. The truth is, the season of Indian invasion, burning, butchering, captivity, threatening, and torture, is an unfortunate time for nice investigation, and critical moralizing. A wife, who had just seen her house burnt, her infant dashed against a tree, and her companions coldly murdered one by one; who supposed her husband and her remaining children to have shar- ed the same fate; who was threatened with torture and inde- ... than torture; and who did not entertain a º oubt that the threatening would be fulfilled; would probabl feel no necessity, when she found it in her power to despatchth 92 THREE wans or wm ill...ANNE...Geo. Il authors of her sufferings, of asking questions concerning an thing, but the suecess of the enterprise. --- “But whatever may be thought of the rectitude of her con duct, that of her husband is in every view honourable. A finer succession of scenes for the pencil was hardly ever presented to the eye, than is furnished by the efforts of this gallant man, with their interesting appendages. The artist must be destitute in deed of talents, who could not engross every heart, as well as every eye, by exhibitions of this husband and father, flying to rescue his wife, her infant, and her nurse, from the approaching horde of savages; attempting on his horse to select from his flying family the child which he was the least able to spare, and unable to make the selection; facing in their rear the borde of hell-hounds; alternately and sternly retreating behind his ines- timable charge, and fronting the enemy again; receiving and re- turning their fire; and presenting himself, equally, as a barrier against murderers, and a shelter to the flight of innocence and anguish. In the background of some or other of these pictures, might be exhibited, with powerful impression, the kindled dwell- ing; the sickly mother; the terrified nurse, with the new-born infant in her arms; and the furious natives surrounding them, driving them forward, and displaying the trophies of savage vic- tory, and the insolence of savage triumph.” < . Section VIII. Scarcely had the colonies re- covered from the wounds and impoverishment of King William’s war, which ended in 1697, before they were again involved in the horrours of another war with the French, Indians, and Spaniards, commonly called “Queen Anne's War,” which continued from 1702, to the peace of Utrecht, March 31st, 1713. a $ By the treaty of Ryswick, it was in general terms agreed, that France and England should mutually restore to each other all conquests made during the war. But the rights and pretensions of either monarch to certain places in Hudson's Bay, &c. were left to be ascertained and determined at some future day, by commissioners. . . The evil consequences of leaving boundaries thus unsettled were soon perceived. Disputes arose, which, mingling with other differences of still greater importance, led England to de- clare war against France and Spain, May 4th, 1702. America, unexpectedly fell on New-England. PERIOD III.1689....1756, Q3 sº The geographical position of New-York particu- larly exposed that colony to a combined attack from the lakes and sea; but just before the com- mencement of hostilities, a treaty of neutrality was concluded between the five Nations and the French governour in Canada. The local situa- tion of the Five Nations, bordering on the fron- tiers of New-York, prevented the French from molesting that colony; Massachusetts and New- Hampshire were thus left to bear the chief ca- lamities of the war. . - ---. The declaration of war was immediately fol- lowed by incursions of French and Indians from Canada into these colonies, who seized every opportunity for annoying the inhabitants by de- predation and outrage. : On Tuesday, Feb. 29th, 1704, at day break, a party of French and Indians, three hundred in number, under command of the infamous Hextel De Rouville, fell upon Deerfield, Mass. Un- happily, not only the inhabitants, but even the watch were asleep. They soon made themselves masters of the house in which the garrison was kept. Proceeding thence to the house of Mr. Williams the clergyman, they forced the doors, and en- tered the room where he was sleeping. Awaked by the noise, Mr. Williams seized his pistol, and snapped it at the Indian who first approached, but it missed fire. Mr. Williams was now seized, disarmed, bound, and kept standing, without his clothes, in the intense cold, nearly an hour. * , His house was next plundered, and two of his children, toge- ther with a black female servant, were butchered before his eyes. The savages at length suffered his wife and five children to put on their clothes, after which, he was himself allowed to dress, and prepare for a long and melancholy march. . . . , The whole town around them was now on fire. Every house, § but the one next to Mr. Williams’ was consumed. This house is still standing; a hole cut by the savages in the door, and the marks of the bullets in the walls, are visible to this day. . . . Having completed their work of destruction, in burning the town, and killing forty-seven persons, the enemy hastily retreat e with them one hundred of the inhabitan 94 THREE wars of WM. III. ANNE.GEO. ii. The first night after their departure from Deerfield, the sava- ges murdered Mr. Williams' servant, and on the day succeeding, finding Mrs. Williams unable to keep pace with the rest, plung- ed a hatchet into her head. She had recently borne an infant, and was not yet recovered. But her husband was not permitted to assist her. . He himself was lame, bound, insulted, threatened, and nearly famished—but what were personal sufferings like these, and even greater than these, to the sight of a wife under cir cumstances so tender, inhumanly butchered before his eyes! Be- fore the journey was ended, seventeen others shared the melanc- holy fate of Mrs. Williams. On their arrival in Canada, it may be added, Mr. Williams was treated with civility by the French. At the end of two years, he was redeemed with fifty-seven others, and returned to Deerfield, where, after twelve years labour in the gospel, he en- tered into his rest. . . : . Section X. In the spring of 1707, Massachu: setts, Rhode-Island, and New-Hampshire, fitted out an expedition against Port Royal, in Nova Scotia. The expedition, consisting of one thou sand men, sailed from Nantucket in twenty-three transports, under convoy of the Deptford man of war, and the Province galley. After a short voyage, they arrived at Port Royal ; but March, the commander of the expedition, though a brave man, being unfit to lead in an enterprise so diffi- cult, little was done, beyond burning a few houses, and killing a few cattle. While this unfortunate expedition was on foot, the frontiers were kept in constant alarm. Oyster River, Exeter, Kingston, and Dover, in New-Hampshire, Berwick, York, Wells, and Casco, in Maine, were attacked, and considerably damaged by the enemy. * * Section XI. The colonies were now resolved on another attempt upon Canada. In 1708, Mas- sachusetts petitioned Queen Anne for assistance, and she promised to send five regiments of re- gular troops. These, with twelve hundred m raised in Massachusetts and Rhode-Island, were to sail from Boston to Quebec. A second division of one thousand eight hun- dred men, from colonies south of Rhode-Island, were to march against Montreal, by way of Champlain ; but this project also failed, the land troops returning, after penetrating to Wood Creek, in consequence of learning that the naval armament, promised from England, had been directed to Portugal. : 3. Section XII. The patience of the colonies was not yet exhausted. Another application was made to the Queen, and in July, 1710, Col. Ni- cholson came over with five frigates and a bomb ketch, for the purpose of reducing Port Royal. In this expedition, he was joined by five regi- ments of troops from New-England. The armament, consisting of the abovefrigates, and between twenty and thirty transports, belong ing to the colonies, sailed from Boston, Septem ber 18th. On the 24th, it reached Port Royal, which surrendered October 5th, and in honour of Queen Anne, was called Annapolis. Animated with his success, Nicholson soon after sailed for England, to solicit another expedition against Canada. Con- trary to the expectations of the colonies, the ministry acceded to the proposal, and orders were issued to the northern colonies to get ready their quotas of men. Sixteen days after these orders arrived, a fleet of men of war and transports, under command of Sir Hovenden Walker, with seven regiments of the duke of Marlborough's troops, and a bat- talion of marines, under Brigadier Gen. Hill, sailed into Boston. But the fleet had neither provisions nor pilots. Aided, how- ever, by the prompt and active exertions of the colonies, on the 30th of July, the fleet, consisting of fifteen men of war, forty transports, and six store ships, with nearly seven thousand men, sailed from Boston for Canada. ſter the departure of the fleet, general Nicholson pro- Albany towards Canada, at the head off rom the colonies of Connecticut, New-Yo 96 THREE wars of wºm. III. ANNE.GEO. II. ing up the river, through the unskilfulness of the pilots, and by contrary winds, it was in imminent danger of entire destruction. On the 22d, about midnight, the seamen discovered that they were driven on the north shore, among islands and rocks. Eight or nine of the British transports, on board of which were about one thousand seven hundred officers and soldiers, were cast away, and nearly one thousand men were lost. Upon this disaster, no further attempts were made to prosecute the expe- dition. The fleet sailed directly for England, and the provin- cial troops returned home. Gen. Nicholson, who had advanced to Lake George, hearing of the miscarriage of the expedition on the St. Lawrence, returned with the land forces, and abandoned the enterprise. - * , . The failure of this expedition was unjustly imputed, by the mother country, wholly to New-England; nor did the colonies receive any credit for their vigorous exertions in raising men, and fitting out the fleet. The expedition was not, however, without a beneficial effect, as it probably prevented Annapolis from falling into the hands of the enemy. . . . . Section XIII. The spring of 1712 opened with new depredations of the enemy upon the frontier settlements. Oyster River, Exeter, York, Wells, &c. were again attacked and plun- dered. Many inhabitants in different parts of the country were murdered, although, in some portions of the colonies, one half of the militia were constantly on duty. : Section XIV. The northern colonies were not alone in the distresses of Queen Anne's war. Carolina, then the southern frontier of the Ame- rican colonies, had her full share in its expenses Before official intelligence had been received of the declaration of war by England against France and Spain, in 1702, although war had actually been declared, Gov. Moore, of the south- ern settlements in Carolina, proposed to the as: sembly of the colony an expedition against the Spanish settlement of St. Augustine, Florida, PERIOD III.1689.1756. 97 being amply rewarded by its treasures of gold and silver, numbers of the more considerate in the assembly were opposed to the expedition. A majority, however, being in favour of it, two thousand pounds were voted, and one thousand two hundred men were raised, of whom one half were Indians—but the expedition entirely failed. With the forces above named, and some merchant vessels, impressed as transports, Gov. Moore sailed for St. Augustine. The design was for Col. Daniel, an enterprising officer, to pro- ceed by the inland passage, and to attack the town by land, with a party of militia and Indians; while Moore was to proceed by sea, and take possession of the harbour. Daniel advanced against the town, entered and plundered it, before the governour's arrival. The Spaniards, however, retired to the castle, with their principal riches, and with provisions for four months. . The governour, on his arrival, could effect nothing for want of artillery. In this emergency, Daniel was despatched to Ja-, maica for cannon, mortars, &c. During his absence, two large Spanish ships appearing off the harbour, Gov. Moore hastily raised the siege, abandoned his shipping, and made a precipitate retreat into Carolina. Col. Daniel, having no intelligence that the siege had been raised, on his return, stood in for the harbour, and narrowly escaped the ships of the enemy. In consequence of this rash and unfortunate enterprise, the colony was loaded with a debt of six thousand pounds, which gave rise to the first paper currency in Carolina, and was the means of filling the colony with dissension and tumult. . Section XV. The failure of this expedition was soon after, in a measure, compensated by a successfulwar with the Apalachian Indians, who, in consequence of their connexion with the Span- inrds, becameinsolentand hostile. Gov. Moore, with abody of whitemen and Indianallies, march- ed into the heart of their country, and compelled All the towns of the tribes between the rivers Altamaha a. ſh were burnt, and between six hundred and eight ians were made prisoners. 98 THREE wans of ww.m....ANNE.GEO. II. successful, new dangers soon threatened the co- lony. . Its invasion was attempted, 1707, by the French and Spaniards, in order to annex Caro- lina to Florida. The expedition, headed by Le Feboure, consisted of a French frigate, and four armed sloops, having about eight hundred men on board. Owing to the prompt and vigorous measures of Johnson, who had superseded Moore as governour, the enemy were repulsed, and the threatened calamity averted. § No sooner was the intended invasion rumoured abroad, than preparations were commenced to repel the enemy. The militia were mustered and trained, and the fortifications of Charleston and other places repaired. These preparations were scarcely completed, before the fleet of the enemy appeared. Some time elapsed, however, before they crossed the bar, which enabled the governour to alarm the surrounding country, and to call in great numbers of the militia. . - - - At length, with a fair wind, the enemy passed the bar, and sent a summons to the governour to surrender. Four hours were allowed him to return his answer. But the governour in- formed the messenger that he did not wish one minute. On the reception of this answer, the enemy seemed to hesitate, and at- - The day succeeding, a party of the enemy, landing on James 'sland, burnt a village by the river's side. Another party of one hundred and sixty landed at Wando Neck. The next day, both these parties were dislodged—the latter party being sur- prised, and nearly all killed or taken prisoners. { This success so animated the Carolinians, that it was deter- mined to attack the enemy by sea. This was attempted with a force of six vessels under command of William Rhet, but on the appearance of Rhet, the enemy weighed anchor, and pre- Some days succeeding this, Monsieur Arbuset appeared on the coast with a ship of force, and landed a number of men at Sewee Bay. Rhet sailed out against him, and at the same time, Capt. Fenwick crossed the river, and marched to attack the enemy by land. After a brisk engagement, Fenwick took the "section XVII. In 1710, alargem fpa. 3rri- latines, inhabitants of a Palatinate, a smallt PERIOD III.1689.1756. 99 tory in Germany, whose governour or prince is called a Palatine, arrived and settled on the Ro- anoke, in Albemarle and Bath counties, within the boundaries of North Carolina. These were a great accession to the strength and numbers of the colony, which, although of sixty years stand- ing, was exceedingly small. The same year, near three thousand of the same people came to New-York. Some settled in that city and built the old Lu- theran church; others settled on Livingston's manor. Some wert into Pennsylvania, and at subsequent periods, were follow- ed by many thousands of their countrymen. Two years after the above settlers arrived in Carolina, and during Queen Anne's war, a plot was aid by the Corees and Tuscaroras, with other Indian tribes, to massacre the whole number. This plot was soon so far put in execution, that one hundred and seven settlers were butchered in their houses, in a single night. Information of their distress was speedily sent to Charleston; soon after which, Col. Barnwell, with six hun- dred militia and three hundred and fifty friendly Indians, explored their way through the inter- vening wilderness, and came to their relief. On his arrival, Col. B. surprised the Tuscaroras, killed three hundred of them, and made one hun- “dred prisoners. . , , , , The surviving Indians fled to a town which had been fortifi- ed by the tribe; but here they were again attacked by Barnwell, who killed great numbers of them, and compelled the remainder to sue for peace. It is estimated that the Tuscaroras, in thi war, lost one thousand of their number. The remainder of the rt º , early after the war, abandoned the country, and became united ith the F ive Nations, which since that time, hav . , a treaty of peace was concluded at Ut een England and France. This prehensions of the northern part of the 100 THREE wars of ww. iii....ANNE.GEO. II. country, and put a welcome period to an expen- sive and distressing war. After the peace was known in America, the eastern Indians sent in a flag and desired peace. The governour of Massachusetts, with his council, and with that of New-Hampshire, met them at Portsmouth, re- ceived their submission, and entered into terms of pacification. By the above treaty between England and France, New- foundland and Nova Scotia were ceded to Great Britain. It was also stipulated that “the subjects of France, inhabiting Ca- nada, and other places, shall hereafter give no hindrance or mo- lestation to the Five Nations, nor to the other nations of Indians who are friends to Great Britain.” By the treaty also, the French relinquished all claim to the Five Nations, and to all parts of their territories, and as far as respected themsel is, en- titled the British crown to the sovereignty of the country. Section XIX. The termination of Queen Anne's war gave peace to the northern colonies, but the contest with the Indians for some time continued to distress the Carolinians. •. Scarcely had the people recovered from the above war with the Corees and Tuscaroras, before they were threatened with a calamity still greater and more general. The Yamosees, a powerful tribe of Indians, with all the Indian tribes from Florida to Cape Fear river, formed a conspiracy for the total extirpa- tion of the Carolinians. The 15th of April, 1715, was fixed upon as the day of general destruction.—Owing, however, to the wisdom, despatch, and firmness of Governour Craven, and the blessing of Providence, the calamity was in a measure avert- ed, and the colonies saved, though at the expense, during the war, of near four hundred of the inhabitants. The Yamosees were expelled the province, and took refuge among the Span- iards in Florida. - - Section XX. In 1719, the government of C a- rolina, which till now had been proprietary, was changed, the charter was declared by the king's privy council to have been forfeited, and the co: inv m this time, was taken under the royal lony, from this time, was ta le tion, under which it continued till the Ame: ution. PERIOD III.1689-1756. 101 ... The people had long been disgusted with the management of the proprietors, and were resolved, at all hazards, to execute their own laws, and defend the rights of the province. A sub- scription to this effect was drawn up, and generally signed. On the meeting of the assembly, a committee was sent with this subscription to the governour, Robert Johnson, requesting him to accept the government of the province, under the king, instead of the proprietors. .” gº Upon his refusal, the assembly chose Col. James Moore go- vernour, under the crown, and on the 21st of December, 1719, the convention and militia marched to Charleston fort, and pro- claimed Moore governour in his Majesty's name. & The Carolinians, having assumed the government, in behalf of the king, referred their complaints to the royal ear. On a full hearing of the case, the privy council adjudged that the pro- prietors had forfeited their charter. From this time, therefore, the colony, as stated above, was taken under the royal protec- tion, under which it continued till the American revolution. This change was followed, in 1729, by another, nearly as important. This was an agreement between the proprietors and the crown, that the former should surrender to the crown their right and interest both to the government and soil, for the sum of seventeen thousand five hundred pounds sterling. This agreement being carried into effect, the province was divided into North and South Carolina, each province having a distinct governour under the crown of England. Section XXI. It has been stated that peace was concluded by Massachusetts and New-Hamp- shire, with the eastern Indians, soon after th pacification at Utrecht, in 1713. This peace however was of short duration, dissatisfaction arising on the part of the Indians, because of the encroachments of the English on their lands, and because trading houses were not erected for the purchase of their commodities. . . The governour of Massachusetts promise hi ulations into execution, the 102 THREE wans of wu in...ANNE. GEO. II. tinued to distress the eastern settlements until The tribes engaged in the war, were the Norridgewocks, Pe- nobscots, St. Francois, Cape Sable, and St. John Indians. In June, 1725, hostilities ceased, soon after which a treaty was signed by the Indians, and was afterwards ratified by commis- sioners from Massachusetts, New-Hampshire, and Nova Scotia. This treaty was greatly applauded, and under it, owing to the more pacifick feelings of the Indians, and the more faithful ob. servance of its stipulations by the English, the colonies expe- rienced unusual tranquillity for a long time. * * . . . ." Section XXII. The settlement of Georgia . was begun in 1733, and was named after King George II. of England, who was then on the throne. In the settlement of Georgia, two ob- jects were principally in view—the relief of indi- gent inhabitants of Great Britain and Ireland, and the greater security of the Carolinas. The charter was granted to twenty-one persons under the title of trustees, and passed the seals June 9th, 1732. The first settlers, one hundred and sixteen in number, embarked from England, in November of the same year, under General Ogle- thorpe. They landed at Charleston, whence they repaired to Savannah river, and commenced the town of that name. The colony did not flourish for many years. In their regu- lations for its management, the trustees enacted that all lands ranted by them to settlers i. revert back, in case of the lure of male succession; although certain privileges were to be allowed to widows and daughters. At the same time, all trade with the Indians was prohibited, unless by virtue of spe- cial license. The use of negroes and the importation of rum were absolutely forbidden. º z . Although the trustees were actuated by the pures: motives— by principles of humanity, and a regard to the health and morals of i. inhabitants, this system of regulations was unfitted to the º x- ldition of the poor settlers, and was highly injurious to their however, continued to arrive. The first adven- or and unenterprising, a more active and efficient ..:iº $ 3.3 : *... . . .3& ch to settle in the colony, able. To induce su PERIOD III.1689.1756. 103 y. Within three years from the first settlement, onethon. four hundred planters had arrived. To aid the colony, parliament made several grants of money; # * individuals also gave considerable sums for the same purpose; owing, however, to the impolitick regulations of the trustees, the colo y maintained only a feeble existence. * . . . . - Section XXIII. Upon the declaration of war by England against Spain, Oglethorpe was ap- pointed, 1740, to the chief command in South Carolina and Georgia. Soon after his appoint- ment, he projected an expedition against St. Augustine. Aided by Virginia and Carolina, he marched at the head of more than two thousand men, for Florida, and after taking two small Spanish forts, Diego and Moosa, he sat down before St. Augustine. Capt. Price, with seve- ral twenty gun ships, assisted by sea; but after all their exertions, the general was forced to raise the siege, and return with considerable loss. Section XXIV. Two years after, 1742, the Spaniards invaded Georgia in turn. A Spanish armament, consisting of thirty-two sail, with three thousand men, under command of Don Manuel de Monteano, sailed from St. Augustine, and arrived in the river Altamaha. The expedition, although fitted out at great expense, failed of ac- complishing its object. General Oglethorpe was at this time at fort Simons. Finding himself unable to retain possession of it, having but about seven hundred men, he spiked his cannon, and, destroying his militar stores, retreated to his head-quarters at Frederica. On the first prospect of an invasion, general Oglethorpe had ºpplied to the governour of South Carolina for assistance, but the Carolinians, fearing for the safety of their own territory, and º oving of general Oglethorpe's management in e against St. Augustine, declined furnishingt § 104 THREE wans of WM. IILANNE.....GEO. II. ing his weakness, he devised a plan by which to destroy the credit of any information that the deserter might give. . . . With this view, he wrote a letter to the French deserter in the Spanish camp, addressing him as if he were a spy of the English. This letter he bribed a Spanish captive to deliver, in which he directed the deserter to state to the Spaniards, that he was in a weak and defenceless condition, and to urge them on to an attack. Should he not be able, however, to persuade them to this, he wished him to induce them to continue three days longer at their quarters, in which time, he expected two thousand men, and six British men of war, from Carolina. The above letter, as was intended, was delivered to the Spanish general, instead of the deserter, who immediately put the latter in irons. A council of war was called, and while deliberating upon the measures which should be taken, three supply ships, which had been voted by Carolina, appeared in sight, Imagining these to be the men of war alluded to in the letter, the Spaniards, in great haste, fired the fort, and embarked, leaving behind them seve- ral cannon, and a quantity of provisions. By this artful, but unjustifiable expedient, the country was relieved of its invaders, and Georgia, and probably a great part of South Carolina, saved from ruin, ... * Section XXV. In 1752, the colony, continu- ing in a languishing condition, although parlia- ment had at different times given them nearly one hundred thousand pounds, and many com- plaints having been made against the system of regulations adopted by the trustees, they surren- dered their charter to the crown, upon which the government became regal. In 1755, a general court was established. sº Section xxvi. March 29th, 1744, Great Bri. tain, under George II. declared war against France and Spain. The most important event of this war, in America, was the capture of Lou, isburg, from the French, by the New-England colonies, under command of sir William Pep- perell. After the peace of Utrecht, in 1713, the French h * rg, on the island of Cape Breton, as a securi navigation and fishery, and had fortified it at an expen ad built ğ o their secſ five PERIOD III.1689.1756 105 º millions and a half of dollars. The fortifications consisted of a rampart of stone, nearly thirty-six feet in height, and a ditch eighty feet wide. There were six bastions, and three batteries, with embrasures for one hundred and forty-eight cannon, and six mortars. On an island at the entrance of the harbour, was another battery of thirty cannon, carrying twenty-eight pounds shot, and at the bottom of the harbour, opposite the entrance, was situated the royal battery of twenty-eight forty-two pound- ers, and two eighteen pounders. The entrance of the town, on the land side, was at the west, over a draw-bridge, near which was a circular battery, mounting sixteen guns of twenty-four pounds shot. These works had been twenty-five years in build- ing, and though not entirely completed, were of such strength that the place was sometimes called the “Gibraltar of America.” The acquisition of this place was deemed emi- nently important to New-England, since, while in possession of the French, it had furnished a safe and convenient retreat to such privateers as dis- turbed and captured the inhabitants of the colo- nies employed in the fisheries. . . Impressed with the necessity of measures to secure this fortress, Governour Shirley of Massachusetts had solicited the assistance' of the British ministry, for the acquisition of Cape Breton. Early in January, 1745, before receiving an answer to his let- ters to England, he communicated to the general court, under an oath of secrecy, a plan which he had formed, for an attack on Louisburg. #. this plan strong objections were urged, and the proposal of the governour was at first rejected; but upon reconsideration it was carried, by a majority of a single voice. Circulars were immediately addressed to the colonies, as far south as Pennsylvania, requesting their assistance, and that an embargo might be laid on all their ports. The New-England cºlonies only, however, were concerned in the exp 3. & the f rces raised, Massachusetts furnishe hundred and fifty; Connecticut five Rhode-Island and New-Hampshire, eac naval force consisted of twelve ships and *** * * * . nths the army was enlisted, victualled, and equipped for ser, n the twenty-third of March, an express boat, which 2nt to commodore Warren, in the West Indies, to in ation, returned to Boston, with advices from mplated expedition was a colonial aff 106 THREE wars of ww. iii....ANNE...Geo. II. cern in the enterprise. This intelligence was peculiarly unwel- come, but the governour and general concealing the tenour of the advice, the army was embarked, and the next morning the fleet sailed. On the fourth of April, the fleet and army arrived in safety at Canso, where they were joined by the troops from New-Hampshire, and soon after, by those from Connecticut. Most unexpectedly to the general, Commodore Warren, with his fleet, arrived at Canso, having, soon after his advices by the express boat to Governour Shirley, received orders to repair to North America, and to concert measures with the Governour for his majesty's service. Hearing that the fleet had sailed for Canso, he proceeded directly for that port. Great was the joy which pervaded the whole fleet and camp, on the arrival of this important auxiliary force. After a short consultation with Ge. neral Pepperell, Commodore Warren sailed to cruise before Louisburg, and, not long after, was followed by the fleet and army, which, on the thirtieth of April, arrived in Chapearouge bay. The enemy were, until this moment, in profound igno. rance that any attack was meditated against them. The sight of the transports gave the alarm to the French, and a detachment was sent to oppose the landing of the troops, But while the general diverted the attention of the enemy by a feint at one place, he was landing his men at another, The next morning, four hundred of the English marched round behind the hills to the northeast harbour, setting fire to all the houses and stores, till they came within a mile of the royal battery. The conflagration of the stores, in which was a considerable quantity of tar, concealed the English troops, at the same tille that it increased the alarm of the French so great. ly that they precipitately abandoned the royal battery. Upon their flight the English took possession of it, and by means of a well directed fire from it, seriously damaged the town. … The main body of the army now commenced the siege. For fourteen nights they were occupied in drawing cannon towards the town, over a morass, in which oxen and horses could not be used. Incredi the toil; but what could not men accom. plish, who had b ustomed to draw the pines of the forest for masts P. By t ntieth of May several fascine batteries had been erected, one of which mounted five forty-two pounders. On opening these batteries, they did great execution. . . . In the mean time Commodore Warren captured the Vigilan', French ship of seventy-four guns, and with her five hundred and sixty men, together with great quantities of military stor This capture was of great consequence, as it not only increase. . orce and added to their military supplies, but asſi ened the strength of the enemv. Shortly after thº PERIon III.16s2.itsa. 107 capture, the number of the English fleet was considerably aug. mented by the arrival of several men of war. A combined at- tack by sea and land was now determined on, and fixed for the eighteenth of June. . . . . . Previously to the arrival of this additional naval force, much had been accomplished towards the reduction of the place. The inland battery had been silenced; the western gate of the town was beaten down, and a breach effected in the wall; the circu- lar battery of sixteen guns was nearly ruined, and the western flank c* the king's bastion was nearly demolished. 2: .. 3 Such being the injured state of the works, and perceiving pre- parations making for a joint assault, to sustain which little pros- i. remained, on the fifteenth the enemy desired a cessation of hostilities, and on the seventeenth of June, after a siege of forty- nine days, the city of Louisburg, and the island of Cape Breton, were surrendered to his Britannick majesty. . . . . Thus successfully terminated a daring expedition, which had been undertaken without the knowledge of the mother country. The acquisition of the fortress of Louisburg was as useful and important to the colonies, and to the British empire, as its reduc- tion was surprising to that empire and mortifying to the court of France. % . - , Besides the stores and prizes which fell into the hands of the English, which were estimated at little less than a million ster- ling, security was given to the colonies in their fisheries; Nova Scotia was preserved, and the trade and fisheries of France Section XXVII. The capture of Louisburg roused the court of France to seek revenge. Under the duke D'Anville, a nobleman of gre courage, an armament was sent to America, 1746, consisting of forty ships of war, fi transports, with three thousand five hundred men, and forty thousand stands of arms for the use of the French and Indians in Canada. The object of this expedition was to recover posses- ion of Cape Breton, and to attack the colonies. iful Providence, however, averte, d by delaying the fleet, and afterwa ling it in a storm, blasted the hop Breat was the consternation of the colonies, when the news 108 THREE wars or wm. m. ANNE...Geo. II. arrived that the French fleet was near the American coast, and greatly increased, on learning that no English fleet was in quest of it. & 2. x § Several ships of this formidable French fleet were damaged by storms; others were lost, and one forced to return to Brest, on account of a malignant disease among her crew. Two or three only of the ships, with a few of the transports, arrived at Chebucto, now Halifax. Here the admiral died, through mor- tification; or, as some say, by poison. The vice-admiral came to a similar tragical death by running himself through the body. That part of the fleet that arrived sailed with a view to attack Annapolis, but a storm scattered them, and prevented the ac complishment of this object. º . Section XVIII. In April, 1748, preliminaries of peace were signed between France and En- gland, at Aix la Chapelle, soon after which, hos- tilities ceased. The definitive treaty was sign ed in October. Prisoners on all sides were to be released without ransom, and all conquests made during the war were to be mutually restored. Notes. Section XXIX. ſºarintre of the Colos itiests. The colonies were now peopled with inhabitants, by far the greater part of whom were born and educated in America. And al. though the first settlers were collected from most or all, the countries of Europe, and emigrants from various nations continued to flock to Ame. rica, still we may observe, during this period, a gradual assimilation of national manners and character. The peculiarities of each class be: same less distinct by intercourse with the others, and every succeeding generation seemed to ex- hibit, less strikingly, those traits which disti erican colonie” § 3:3.33. , 8.3: 3:3: ;3::::::. . . .33. . . . .33% º distin' guished the preceding. Although this is true with respect to the Am † PERIOD III.1689.17ss 109 ally there were some exceptions. Some villages, or terri- gºne ºtories, being settled exclusively by emigrants spee ferent language from that generally spoken—as the Germans, for example—or entertaining some peculiar religious notions— as the Quakers—still preserved their own peculiar manners. But in attempting to ascribe some general character to the people of the colonies during this period, we might consider them, as during our second period, on the whole, exhibiting three varieties; viz. the rigid puritan English of the north– the Dutch in New-York—and the luxurious English of the south. The austerity of the north was, however, much relaxed. The elegant varieties of life, which before had been prohibited, were tolerated, and the refinements of polished society appeared among the higher classes. The strong lines of Dutch manners in New-York were slowly disappearing, under an English go- vernment, and by means of the settlement of English among them. The manners of the south were assuming an aspect of more refinement, particularly among the higher classes—but showed little other change. . . § • Section XXX. §§eligion. During this pe- riod, the spirit of religious bigotry and intole- rance may be observed to have abated in a very considerable degree. The conduct of those sects, which had called forth those severe and unjustifiable restrictions upon the freedom of religious worship, had become less offensive and exceptionable; and at the close of this period, religious persecution had ceased in all the colo- º the rights of conscience were general- y recognized. In 1692, the Mennonites were introduced into Pennsylvania, and settled at Germantown. Their increase, however, has been º, In 1719, the Tunkers, or General Baptists, arrived at Phila delphia, and dispersed themselves into several parts of Pe. 110 THREE wars of whi. III. ANNE.GEO. II. rican colonies, during this period, and settled principally in Penn- sylvania and New-York. w g . . .” Episcopacy was considerably extended during this period. In 1693, it was introduced into New-York; into New-Jersey and Rhode-Island in 1702; into South Carolina in 1703, by law ; in Connecticut in 1704. . In 1708, the Saybrook Platform was formed by a Synod, composed of congregational ministers, under authority of the le gislature of Connecticut. . . About the year 1737, a revival of religion very extensively prevailed in New-England. At this time, great numbers united themselves to the church, and testified by their conduct through life the genuineness of their profession. 3 * The celebrated Whitfield came to America about the year 1740, and produced great religious excitement by his singular powers of pulpit eloquence. He did not found any peculiar sect in this country, although he gave rise to that of the Calvinistick Methodists in England. : . x Section XXXI. Craut and Commitrºt, Although the trade of the colonies began to feel the restrictions imposed upon it by the mother country, still it steadily increased during this From the very commencement of the colonies, the mother country was not without her jealousies respecting their increase in population, trade, and manufactures. Inquiries on these points were instituted, and opportunities sought to keep in check the spirit of colonial enterprise. Laws were enacted from time to time, designed and calculated not only to make the colonies depend on the mother country for her manufactures, but also to limit their trade and commerce, and keep them in safe subjection . As illustrating this course of policy, we may notice several iaws of parliament. In 1732, an act was passed, prohibiting “the exportation of hats out of the plantations of America, and to restrain the number of apprentices taken by hat makers.” So also the act of 1750, prohibited, on penalty of two hundred pounds, “the erection of any mill for slitting, or rolling of iron, or any plating forge to work with a tilt hammer; or any furnace for making steel in any of the colonies.” At the same time, en: couragement was given to export pig and bar iron to England for her manufactories. In like manner was prohibited the ex- p om one province to another by water, and even the carriage by land, on horseback, or in a cart, of all wools and 3. PERIOD III.1689.1756. 111 woolen goods of the produce of America. The colonies were also compelled by law to procure many articles from England, which they could have purchased twenty per cent. cheaper in other markets. § & 3 *, * . But notwithstanding these restrictions, trade and commerce gradually and steadily increased. To England, the colonies exported lumber of all sorts, hemp, flax, pitch, tar, oil, rosin, copper ore, pig and bar iron, whale fins, tobacco, rice, fish, in dºgo, flax seed, beeswax, raw silk, &c. They also built many vessels which were sold in the mother country. - : . But the importation of goods from England, in consequence of the course parsued by the British government, was still much greater than the amount of exports to England. In 1728, sir William Keith stated that the colonies then consumed one sixth part of all the woolen manufactures exported from Great Britain, and more than double that value in linen and calicoes; also great quantities of English manufactured silks, small wares, household furniture, trinkets, and a very considerable value in East India goods. From 1739 to 1756, this importation of goods from England amounted to one million of pounds sterling annually, on an average. . . But, if the amount of imports from Great Britain was thus more than the colonies exported thither, they would fall in debt to England. How did they pay this balance of trade against them P It was done by gold and silver obtained chiefly from the West India settlements, to which they exported lumber, fish of an inferior quality, beef, pork, butter, horses, poultry, and other live stock, an inferior kind of tobacco, corn, cider, apples, cab- bages, onions, &c. They built also many small vessels, which ſound a ready market. 3 *... . . . . . . . The cod and whale fisheries were becoming considerable; they were principally carried on by New-England. The cod- fish were sold in Spain, France, England, the West-Indies, &c.; and the money obtained for them aided the colonies in paying the balance of trade against them in England. Section XXXII. Žigriculture. Agriculture, during this period, was greatly improved and ex tended. Immense tracts of forests were cleared, and more enlightened modes of husbandry were introduced. The number of articles produced culture was also increased. . . . . lonies now not only raised a sufficient suppl own use, but their exports became great. W §§ English grain were the principal products of the middl 112 THREE wars of wVſ. III. ANNE...GEO. ii. colonies; grain, beef, pork, horses, butter, cheese, &c. were the chief products of the northern colonies; tobacco, wheat, and rice, were the principal products of the south. In the south, also, large numbers of swine ran wild in the forests, living upon mast. These were taken, salted down, and exported to a considerable extent. & - . Section XXXIII. 3rts and jūanufate tures. Under the head of commerce, we have noticed the obstacles interposed by Great Bri- tain, to the progress of arts and manufactures. Notwithstanding these, however, the coarser kinds of cutlery, some coarse cloths, both linen and woollen, hats, paper, shoes, household furni- ture, farming utensils, &c. were manufactured to a considerable extent; not sufficient, however, to supply the inhabitants. All these manufac- tories were on a small scale ; cloths were made in some families, for their own consumption. The art of printing made considerable progress, during this period. A newspaper, the first in North America, called The Boston Weekly News-Letter, was established in 1704. Before the close of this period, ten others were established—four in New-England; two in New-York; two in Pennsylvania; one in South Carolina; and one in Maryland. The number of books published was also considerable, although they were ex- ecuted in a coarse style, and were generally books of devotion, or for the purposes of education. 3. . Section XXXIV. Bopulation. At the ex- piration of our second period, we estimated the opulation of the English colonies in America at 200,000 souls. About the close of our third pe. riod, Franklin calculated that there were then one million or upwards, and that scarce 80,000 had been brought over sea. This estimate of the population of America very nearly ac- ick an” cords with an estimate made in London from “authenti thorities,” May 1755, which is as follows: PERIOD III.1689.1756, 118 New-Hampshire, 30,000 | New-York, 100,000 Massachusetts Bay, 220,000 | The Jerseys, 60,000 R. Island, and ...: 35,000 Pennsylvania, 250,000 dence Plantations, 2 Maryland, 85,000 Connecticut, 100,000 | Virginia, 85,000 * . . — | North Carolina, 45,000 New-England, 385,000 | South Carolina, 30,000 Mid, and S. Colonies, 661,000 || Georgia, 6,000 Total, 1,046,000 661,000 Section XXXV. 33 ºutation. The south- ern colonies continued to treat the subject of ed- ucation differently from the northern colonies, in this respect; in the north, one of the first objects of legislation was to provide for the education of all classes; in the south, the education of the higher classes only was an object of publick at- tention. . .” The first publick institution for the purposes of education, which succeeded in the south, was that of William and Mary College in Virginia, established in 1692, by the sovereigns whose names it bears. , N. w . Yale College, in Connecticut, was commenced in 1700– eleven of the principal ministers of the neighbouring towns, who had been appointed to adopt such measures as they should deem expedient, on the subject of a college—agreeing to found oneirº, the colony. The next year, the legislature granted them a char- ter. The college was begun at Saybrook, where was held the first commencement, in 1702. In 1717, it was removed to New-Haven, where it became permanently established. It was named after the Hon. Elihu Yale, governour of the East India Company, who was its principal benefactor. . . . . . . The College, at Princeton, New-Jersey, called “Nassau Hall,” was first founded by charter from John Hamilton, Esq. presi- lent of the council, about the year 1738, and was enlarged by Gov. Belcher, in 1747. atttitttions. v1. The history of his period presents he north A. . XX º Anne- *::::: onies to our view, at the same time that they were vi. th cruel and desolating fº still advancing in popula. 114 THREE wans of ww.mi. ANNE...Geo. ii. tion, extending their commerce, forming new settlements, enlarg- ing the boundaries of their territory, and laying wider and deep- er the foundations of a future nation. And, while we look back, with admiration, upon the hardy spirit, which carried our ances- tors through scenes so trying, and enabled them to reap pros- perity from the crimsoned fields of battle and bloodshed, let us be thankful that our lot is cast in a happier day; and that in stead of sharing in the perils of feeble colonies, we enjoy the pro tection and privileges of a free and powerful nation. In addition to the reflections subjoined to the account whic we have given of the “Salem witchcraft,” we may add another, respecting the danger of popular delusion. In that portion of our history, we see a kind of madness rising up, and soon stretching its influence over a whole community. And such too is the pervading power of the spell, that the wise and igno- rant, the good and bad, are alike subject to its control, and for the time, alike incapable of judging, or reasoning aright. Now, whenever we see a community divided into parties, and agitated by some general excitement—when we feel ourselves borne along on one side or the other, by the popular tide, let us in- quire whether we are not acting under the influence of a delu- sion, which a few years, perhaps a few months, or days, may dispel and expose.—Nor, at such a time, let us regard our sin- cerity, or our consciousness of integrity, or the seeming clear- ness and certainty of our reasonings, as furnishing an absolute assurance that, after all, we do not mistake, and that our oppo. ments are not right. . * . Another reflection of some importance, and one that may serve to guard us against censuring, too severely, the wise and good, is suggested by this account of the “Salem witchcraft.” It is, that the best men are liable to err. We should not, there. fore, condemn, nor should we withhold our charity from those who fall into occasional errour, provided their characters are in other respects slay claim to our good opinion. UNITED STATEs. a triot xy. Distinguished for the FRENCH AND INDIAN Extending from the Declaraton of War by England against France, 1756, to the Com- mencement of Hostilities by Great Britain against the American Colonies, in the Battle of Lewington, 1775. 3. * / Section I. The war, which ended in the treaty of Aix-la-Chapelle, in 1748, had been highly in- jurious to the general prosperity of his Majesty's Colonies in America; and the return of peace found them in a state of impoverishment and distress. Great losses had been sustained in their commerce, and many of their vessels had been seized on the coast by privateers. Bills of credit to the amount of several millions, had been issued to carry on the war, which they were now unable to redeem, and the losses of men in va- rious expeditions against the enemyśhad seri- ously retarded the increase of population. The expenses of the northern colonies, including New-Eng- land and New-York, during the war, were estimated at not less than one million pounds sterling. Massachusetts alone is said to have paid half this sum, and to have expended nearly four hundred thousand pounds, in the expedition against Cape Bre- ton. The expenses of Carolina, for the war in that quarter, were not less in proportion. . . . . . . . . To supply the deficiency of money, bills of credit were issued the amount of several millions. Th; bills issued by Massa- itts, during two or three years of the war, amounted to be. . 116 PERIOD iv.1756.1775. their emission, five or six hundred pounds were equal to ly one hundred pounds sterling. Before the complete redemption of these bills, savs Dr. Trumbull, in those colonies, where their credit was best supported, the depreciation was nearly twenty for one. s . The losses sustained by the colonies, in the fall of many of their bravest men, during this and the last Indian war, were se- verely felt. From 1722 to 1749, a period of twenty-seven years, the losses of Massachusetts and New-Hampshire equalled the whole increase of their numbers, whereas, in the natural course of population, their numbers would have more than doubled. Such, in few words, was the general state of the colonies, at the close of this war. The re- turn of peace was hailed as the harbinger of bet- ter days, and the enterprising spirit of the peo- ple soon exerted itself to repair the losses which had been sustained. Commerce, therefore, again flourished; population increased; settle- ments were extended; and publick credit revived Section II. Scarcely, however, had the colo- nies time to reap the benefits of peace, before the prospect was clouded, and the sound of ap- proaching war filled the land with general anx- iety and distress. After an interval of only about eight years, from 1748 to May 18th 1756, Great Britain, under George II. formally declared war against France, which declaration was recipro- cated on the ninth of June, by a similar declara- tion on the part of France, under Louis XV. against Great Britain. . . The general cause, leading to this war, com: monly called the “French and Indian War.” was the alleged encroachments of the French, upon the frontiers of the colonies in America, belonging to the English Crown. These encroachments were made upon Nova Scotia in the east, which had been ceded to Great Britain, by the 12th article of the treaty of Utrecht, but to a considerable pa French laid claim, and, in several places, were erecting FRENCH AND INDIAN war. 117 cations. In the north and west, they were settling and fortify. ing Crown Point, and, in the west, were not only attempting to complete a line of forts from the head of the St. Lawrence to the Mississippi, but were encroaching far on Virginia. The circumstance which served to open the war, was the alleged intrusion of the Ohio Com- pany upon the territory of the French. This company consisted of a number of influential men, from London and Virginia, who had obtained a charter grant of six hundred thousand acres of land, on and near the river Ohio, for the purpose of carrying on the fur trade with the Indians, and of settling the country. The governour of Canada had early intelli- gence of the transactions of this company. Fear- ing that their plan would deprive the French of the advantages of the fur trade, and prevent communications between Canada and Louisiana, he wrote to the governour of New-York and Pennsylvania, claiming the country east of the Ohio to the Alleghanies, and forbidding the furtherencroachments of the English traders. As et, the Pennsylvanians had principally managed the trade with the Indians. But, being now about to be deprived of it, by the Ohio Company, who were opening a road to the Poto- mac, they excited the fears of the Indians, lest their lands should be taken from them, and gave early intelligence to the French, of the designs and transactions of the Company. The French governour soon manifested his hostile determina- nation, by seizing several of the English traders, and carrying them to a French port on the south of Lake Erie-The Twight- Wees, a tribe of Indians in Ohio, near Miami river, among whom the English had been trading, resented the seizure, and, . way of retaliation, took several French traders, and sent them to Peni . . . . . . ilvania. X---- me, a communication was open- 118 PERIOD IV....1756....1775. ed at convenient distances, secured by tempo rary fortifications. The Ohio Company, thus threatened with the destruction of their trade, were now loud in their complaints. Dinwiddie, lieut. governour of Vir. ginia, to whom these complaints were addressed, laid the subject before the assembly, which or- dered a messenger to be despatched to the French commandant on the Ohio, to demand the reasons of his hostile conduct, and to summon the French to evacuate their forts in that region Section III. The person entrusted with this service was George Washirgton, who at the early age of twenty-one, thus stepped forth in the publick cause, and began that line of servi. ces, which ended in the independence of his country. . The service to which Washington was now appointed, was both difficult and dangerous; the place of his destination being above four hun. dred miles distant, two hundred of which lay through a trackless desert inhabited by Indians. He arrived in safety, however, and delivered a letter from Gov. Dinwiddie to the commandant Having received a written answer, and secretly taken the dimensions of the fort, he returned The reply of the commandant to Gov. Dinwiddie was, that he had taken possession of the country. under the direction of the governour-general of Canada, to whom he would transmit his letter and whose orders only he would obey. Section IV. The British ministry, on being made acquainted with the claims, conduct, an determination of the French, without a formal leclaration of war, instructed the Virginians tº §§ ist their eneroachments, by force of arms FRENCH AND INDIAN WAR. 119 Accordingly a regiment was raised in Virginia, which was joined by an independent company from South Carolina, and with this force, Wash- ington, who was appointed to command the ex- pedition, and was now raised from the rank of major to that of colonel, marched early in April, 1754, towards the Great Meadows, lying within the disputed territories, for the purpose of expel- ling the French. The enterprise of Washing- ton and his troops was highly creditable to them, but the French forces being considerably supe- rior, he was obliged to capitulate, with the pri- vilege, however, of returning with his troops to Virginia. %, - w On his arrival at the Great Meadows, he learned that the French had dispossessed some Virginians of a fortification, which the latter were erecting for the Ohio Company, at the confluence of the Alleghany and Monongahela, and were en- gaged in completing it, for their own use. He also learned, that a detachment from that place, then on its march towards. the Great Meadows, had encamped for the night, in a low and retired situation. º º - - Under the guidance of some friendly Indians, and under co- wer of a dark and rainy night, this party he surprised and cap- tured. Having erected, at the Great Meadows, a small stock- ade fort, afterwards called Fort Necessity, he proceeded with his troops, reinforced by troops from New-York, and others from South Carolina, to nearly four hundred men, towards the French ſort, Du Quesne, now Pittsburg, with the intention of dislodging the enemy. Hearing, however, that the enemy were approach. ing, he judged it prudent to retire to Fort Necessity. Here the enemy, one thousand five hundred strong, under the command ºf M. de Williers, soon appeared and commenced a furious at- tººk on the fort. After an engagement of several hours, de illiers demanded a parley, and offered terms of capitulation. These terms were rejected; but during the night, July 4th, ar- *les were signed, by which Washington was permitted, upon ndering the fort, to march with his troops, unmolested, to by a series of other'hos- 120 PERIOD IV.1756.1775. tilities characterised by the spirit and manner of war, although the formal declaration of war was not made until 1756, two years after, as already mentioned. & . Section W. The British ministry, perceiving war to be inevitable, recommended to the Bri- tish colonies in America, to unite in some scheme for their common defence. Accordingly, a con- vention of delegates from Massachusetts, New- Hampshire, Rhode-Island, Connecticut, Penn- sylvania, Maryland, with the lieut. governour and council of New-York, was held at Albany, this year, 1754, and a plan of union adopted, resem- bling, in several of its features, the present con- stitution of the United States. But the plan met with the approbation, nei- ther of the Provincial Assemblies, nor the King's Council. By the former, it was rejected, be: cause it gave too much power to the crown, and by the latter, because it gave too much power to the people. º According to this plan, a grand council was to be formed o members chosen by the provincial assemblies, and sent from all the colonies; which council, with a governour general, appoint ed by the crown, and having a negative voice, should be em. powered to make general laws, to raise money in all the colonies for their defence, to call forth troops, regulate trade, lay duties, The plan, thus matured, was approved and signed, on the fourth of July, the day that Washington surrendered Fort Nº. cessity, and twenty-two years before the declaration of Indº' pendence, by all the delegates, excepting those from Connectº cut, who objected to the negative voice of the governour genº One circumstance, in the history of this plan, deserves here! be recorded, as evincing the dawning spirit of the revolution. Although the plan was rejected by the provincial assembliº they declared, without reserve, that if it were adol . dºnºlveſ on theºlº. <------> %::::::::::::::::::::::::...º.º. 3’:3:::::::::::::::: jut to pe. ince from Great Britain. They required, b % --- ºr-º-º-º-º-º-º-º-º-º-º: - º º tº 4 º' º *...* left to employ their supplies in their own way, curity and predominance. ºr *The mother country was too jealous to trust such powers with the Americans, but she proposed another plan, designed to lay a foundation for the perpetual dependence and slavery of the colonies. This plan was, that the governours, with one, or more of their council, should form a convention to concert mea- sures for the general defence, to erect fortifications, raise men, &c. &c. with power to draw upon the British treasury, to deſt all charges; which charges should be reimbursed by taxes upon the colonies, imposed by acts of parliament. But to allow the British government the right of taxation—to lay the colonies under the obligations of a debt to be thus liquidated—to subject themselves to the rapacity of king's collectors, we scarcely need say, was a proposal which met with universal disapprobation. ... º.º * - - - , , w w . . . Section VI. Early in the spring of 1755, pre- parations were made, by the colonies, for vigor- ous exertions against the enemy. Four expedi- tions were planned. One against the French in Nova Scotia; a second against the French on the Ohio; a third against Crown Point; and a fourth against Niagara. - º Section VII. The expeditionagainst Nova Sco- tia, consisting of three thousand men, chiefly from Massachusetts, was led by gen. Monckton and gen. Winslow. With these troops, they sailed Boston, May 20th, and on the 1st of June, ed at Chignecto, on the bay of Fundy. After gjoined by three hundred British troopsanda 1 train of artillery; they proceeded against eau Sejour, which, after four days invest- hanged to that of Cumberland. From Hen. Monckton proceeded further i ook the 122 - . & º PERIOD & IV.1 756.1775 . claimed; its tranquility was restored and placed upon a permanent basis. , In this whole expedition, the English took but twenty men Large quantities of provisions and military stores fell into their hands, with a number of valuable cannon. The French force in Nova Scotia being subdued, a difficult question occurred, respecting the disposal to be made of the in habitants. Fearing that they might join the French in Canada whom they had before furnished with intelligence, quarters, and provisions, it was determined to disperse them among the Eng- lish colonies, Under this order, one thousand nine hundred were thus dispersed. % . . . . . . . Section VIII. The expedition against the French, on the Ohio, was led by Gen. Braddock, a British officer, who commenced his march from Virginia, in June, with about two thousand men. Apprehensive that Fort du Quesne, against which he was proceeding, might be reinforced, Braddock, with one thousand two hundred se- lected troops, hastened his march, leaving Col. Dunbar to follow more slowly, with the other troops and the heavy baggage. *... -- :. On the 8th of July, Braddock had advanced sixty miles forward of Col. Dunbar, and within twelve or fourteen miles of Fort du Quesne. Here he was advised by his officers to proceed with caution, and was earnestly entreated by Col Washington, his aid, to permit him to precede the army, and guard against suprise. Too haughty and self-confident to receive advice, Braddock, without any knowledge of the condi- tion of the enemy, continued to press towards the fort. About twelve o'clock, July 9th, when within seven miles of the fort, he was suddenly attacked by a body of French and Indians. 1. –- id not exceed five FRENCH AND IN IAN WAR. 123 tally wounded, and his troops defeated. The loss of the English army was sixty-four out of sixty-five officers, and about one half of the pri- tº This unfortunate defeat of Gen. Braddock is to be ascribed to his imprudence, and too daring intrepidity. Had he attended to those precautions which were recommended to him, he would not have been thus ambuscaded; or had he wisely retreated from a concealed enemy, and scoured the thicket with his cannon, the melancholy catastrophe might have been avoided. But, ob- stinately riveted to the spot on which he was first attacked, he vainly continued his attempt to form his men in regular oruer, although, by this means, a surer prey to the enemy, until being himself wounded, he could no longer be accessary to the de- struction of human life. z A remarkable fact in the history of this affair remains to be told. Gen. Braddock held the provincial troops in great con- tempt. Consequently, he kept the Virginians, and other pro- vincials, who were in the action, in the rear. Yet, although equally exposed with the rest, far from being affected with the fears that disordered the regular troops, they stood firm and un- broken, and, under Col. Washington, covered the retreat of the regulars, and saved them from total destruction. * , The retreat of the army, after Braddock was wounded, was precipitate. No pause was made until the rear division was met. This division on its junction with the other, was seized with the same spirit of flight with the retreating, and both divisions proceeded to Fort Cumberland, a distance of nearly one hun- dred and twenty miles from the place of action. Had the troops, even here, recovered their spirits and return- ed, success might still have crowned the expedition. At least, the army might have rendered the most important service to the cause, by preventing the devastations and inhuman murders, etrated by the French and Indians, during the summer, on estern borders of Virginia and Pennsylvania. But, instead pting a course so salutary and important, Col. Dunbar, : the sick and wounded at Cumberland, marched with his ion IX. The expedition against Crown ect, yet its results d e American colonies, 124 PERIOD IV.1756....1775. dispelled the gloom which followed Braddock's defeat. :- º The army, under Johnson, arrived at the south end of Lake George, the latter part of August. While here, intelligence was received that a body of the enemy, two thousand in number, had land- ed at Southbay, now Whitehall, under command of Baron Dieskau, and were marching towards Fort Faward, for the purpose of destroying the provisions and military stores there. At a council of war, held on the morning of Sept. 8th, it was resolved to detach a party to intereept the French, and save the fort. This party consisted of twelve hundred men, com: manded by Col. Ephraim Williams of Deerfield, Massachusetts. Unfortunately, this detachment was surprised by Dieskau, who was lying in ambush for them. After a most signal slaugh- ter, in which Col. Williams and Hendrick, a re- nowned Mohawk sachem, and many other offi. cers fell, the detachment was obliged to retreat. The firing was heard in the camp of Johnson, and as it seemed to approach nearer and nearer, it was naturally conjectured that the English troops were repulsed. The best preparations which the time allowed, were made to receive the advancing foe. Dieskau, with his troops, soon appeared and commenced a spirited attack. They were received, however, with so much in trepidity—the cannon and musquetry did so much execution among their ranks, that the ene, my retired in great disorder, having experience a signal defeat. The loss of the French was not less than eight hundred, Dieskau estimated them FRENCH AND INDIAN war. 125 tal wound which this distinguished officer him. self received, and in consequence of which he fell into the hands of the English. The loss of the English did not much exceed two hundred. - Few events of no greater magnitude leave stronger impressions than resulted from the bat- tie of Lake George. Following as it did the discomfiture of Braddock, it served to restore the honour of the British arms, and the tone of the publick mind. % At the time it was meditated to send a detachmant under Col. Williams, to intercept Dieskau, the number of men propos- ed was mentioned to Hendrick, the Mohawk chief, and his opiº nion asked. He replied, “If they are to fight, they are too few. If they are to be killed, they are too many.” The number was accordingly increased. Gen. Johnson proposed also to divide the detachment into three parties. Upon this Hendrick took three sticks, and putting them together, said to him, “Put these together, and you cannot break them; take them one by one, and you will break them easily.” The hint succeeded, and Hendrick's sticks saved many of the party, and probably the whole army from destruction.* Early in the action, Gen. Johnson was wounded, and Gen. Lyman succeeded to the command, which he held through the day. To this gentleman's gallant exertions, the success of the day, under Providence, was chiefly to be ascribed. Yet it is remarkable, that Gen. Johnson made no mention of Gen. Ly- man in his official letter, announcing the intelligence of the victory. The ambition of Johnson was too great, and his ava- ice too greedy, to acknowledge the merits of a rival. Gen. Johnson was created a baronet, and parliament voted him five thousand pounds sterling, in consideration of his success. The reward of Gen. Lyman was the esteem and honour of the peo- ple among whom he lived. - mong the wounded of the French, as already stated, was iron Dieskau. He had received a ball through his leg. ing unable to follow his retreating army, was found by glish soldier, resting upon the stump of a tree, with attendant. Dieskau, apprehensive for hi . for his watch, in order to give it to the soldier 126 PERIOD IV.1756.1775, the man, suspecting that he was feeling for a pistol, levelled his gun, and wounded him in the hips. He was carried to the camp, and treated with great kindness. From the camp he wai taken to Albany and New-York, whence, some time after, he sailed for England, where he died. He was a superior officer, possessed of honourable feelings, and adorned with highly polished manners. One stain, however, attaches to his charac- ter. Before his engagement with Col. Williams’ corps, he gave orders to his troops neither to give nor take quarter. Section X. The expedition against Niagara was committed to Gov. Shirley of Massachusetts, whose force amounted to two thousand five hun. dred men. But the season was too far advanced, before his preparations were completed, to effect any thing of importance.—After proceeding to Oswego, on Lake Ontario, the army being poor- ly supplied with provisions, and the rainy season approaching, the expedition was abandoned, and the troops returned to Albany. Thus ended the campaign of 1755. § Section XI. In the spring of the ensuing year, 1756, Gov. Shirley was succeeded by Gen. Aber. crombie, who was appointed to command, until the arrival of the earl of Loudon, commander in chief of all his majesty’s forces in America. The hostilities of the two preceding years had been carried on without any formal proclamation of war; but this year, June 9th, as already stat. ed, war was declared by Great Britain against France, and soon after, by France against Great Britain, in turn. The plan of operations for the campaign of '56 embraced the attack of Niagara and Crown Point, which were still in possession of the French. Both these places were of great im: portance; the former being the connecting link in the line of fortifications between Canada and Louisiana; and the latter commanding FRENCH AND INDIA W WAR. 127 Champlain, and guarding the only passage, at that time, into Canada. But important as were these posts, the reduction of neither was this year !ccomplished, noreven attempted, owing, chiefly, to the great delays of those who held the chief command. º, § . . . . . . ºf . Troops were raised for the expedition against Crown Point, amounting to seven thousand, the command of whom was assign- ed to major-general Winslow, of Massachusetts. But his march was delayed by obstacles ascribed to the improvidence of Aber- crombie. 3. : . x § 3. After the mortal wound received by Dieskau, at the battle of Lake George, the Marquis de Montcalm, an able and enterprising officer, suc- ceeded to the command of the French forces. In the month of August, this officer, with eight thousand regulars, Canadians and Indians, in- vested the fort at Oswego, on the south side of Lake Ontario, -one of the most important posts held by the English in America, and in a few days took it. On the receipt of this intelligence, lord Loudon, who had arrived in Albany, and entered upon the command, despatched orders to Gen. Winslow, on his march towards Crown Point, not to proceed. The fall of the fort at Oswego was most unfortunate for the English, and their loss of men made prisoners, and munitions of war, peculiarly severe. By the capture of this post, the ene- my obtained the entire command of the lakes Ontario and Erie, and of the whole country of the Five Nations. Sixteen hundred men were made prisoners, and one hundred and twenty pieces of cannon were taken, with fourteen mortars, two sloops of war, and two hundred boats and batteaux. º § er this disastrous event, all offensive opera- ere immediately relinquished, although hen three months to the time of the usi ment of the army. Thus through 12s - PERIOD iv.1756.1775. gained, nor one purpose accomplished, either ho mourable or important. … Section XII. Notwithstanding the failure of the campaign of this season, the British Parlia- ment made great preparations to prosecute the war the succeeding year, 1757. In July, an ar- mament of eleven ships of the line and fifty tran- sports, with more than six thousand troops, ar- rived at Halifax, destined for the reduction of Louisburg.—The colonies had been raising men for an expedition against Ticonderogaand Crown Point. Great was their mortification and disap- pointment, when they learned from the orders of lord Loudon, that these troops were to be employed against Louisburg. Such inconstancy and fluctuation appeared beneath the dignity of the commander in chief. But they were obliged to submit, and lord Loudon proceeded to join the armament at Halifax. So dilatory were their measures, however, that before they were ready to sail, Louisburg was reinforced by a fleet of seventeen sail, and with troops to make it nine thousand strong, On the reception of this intelligence, it was deem 3d inexpedient to proceed, and the expedition was abandoned. } Section XIII. While weakness and indecision were marking the counsels of the English, the French continued to urge on their victories. Montcalm, still commander of the French in the north, finding the troops withdrawn from Hali. fax, for the reduction of Louisburg, seized the occasion to make a descent on Fort William Henry, *... the north shore of Lak FRENch AND INDIAN war. 129 sand men, Montcalm laid siege to it.—After a gallant defence of six days, the garrison surren- dered, thus giving to Montcalm the command of the lake, and of the western frontier. The spirited and protracted defence of the fort, against such numbers, reflects the highest honour upon its brave commander, Col. Munroe. Six days was the enemy kept at bay, with una- bated resolution, in full expectation of assistance from Gen. Webb, who lay at Fort Edward, only fifteen miles distant, with an army of four thousand men. 3. The character of Gen. Webb continues sullied, by his unpar- donable indifference to the perilous situation of his brethren in arms, at Fort William Henry. It deserves to be known that Sir William Johnson, after very importunate solicitations, ob- tained leave of General Webb to march with as many as would volunteer in the service, to the relief of Munroe. . § At the beat of the drums, the provincials; almost to a man, sallied forth, and were soon ready and eager for the march. Af. ter being under arms almost all day, what were their feelings when Sir William, returning from head-quarters, informed them that General Webb had forbidden them to march The soldiers were inexpressibly mortified and enraged, and their commander did himself no common honour in the tears he shed, as he turned from his troops, and retired to his tent. The defence of Fort William Henry was so gallant, that Col. Munroe, with his troops, was admitted to an honourable capitu lation. The capitulation, however, was most shamefully broken. While the troops were marching out at the gate of the fort, the Indians attached to Montcalm’s party, dragged the men from their ranks, and with all the inhumanity of savage feeling, plun- dered them of their baggage, and butchered them in cold blood. Out of a New-Hampshire corps of two hundred, eighty were missing. , a It is said that efforts were made by the French to restrain the barbarians, but the truth of the assertion may well be doubted, when it is considered that Montcalm’s force was at least seven thousand French, and yet these barbarians were not restrained. ection XIV. In 1758, most fortunately f onour of the British arms, and for the s »f the colonies, a change took place in the of England. The celebrated Pitt, lor now placed at the head of the breathed a new soul into the B. 130 PERIOD IV.,.1756....1775. councils, and revived the energies of the colo- nies, weakened and exhausted by a series of ill contrived and unfortunate expeditions. The tide of success now turned in favour of the English, who continued, with some few exceptions, to achieve one victory after another, until the whole of Canada surrendered to the British arms. Pitt, upon coming into office, addressed a cir- cular to the colonial governours, in which he as- sured them of the determination of the ministry to send a large force to America, and called upon them to raise as many troops, as the number of inhabitants would allow. The colonies were prompt and liberal in furnishing the requisite sup- plies. Massachusetts, Connecticut, and New- Hampshire, unitedly, raised fifteen thousand men, who were ready to take the field in May. Section XV. Three expeditions were propos: ed—the first against Louisburg; the second against Ticonderoga; the third against Fort Du Quesne.” Section XVI. On the expedition against Lou- isburg, admiral Boscawen sailed from Halifax, May 28th, with a fleet of twenty ships of the line, eighteen frigates, and an army of fourteen thou. sand men, under the command of brigadier Gen. Amherst, next to whom in command was Gen. Wolfe. On the 26th of July, after a vigorous resistance, this fortress was surrendered, and with it five thousand seven hundred and thirty: seven prisoners of war, and one hundred and inty cannon, besides which the enemy lost ind four frigates. At the five ships of the line * Pronounced Du-Kane. FRENCH AND INDIAN 131 same time,Isle Royal, St. Johns, with Cape Bre- ton, fell into the hands of the English, who now became masters of the coast from St. Lawrence to Nova Scotia. . . The surrender of this fortress was a more signal loss to France. than any which she had sustained since the commencement of the war. It greatly obstructed her communications with Cana- da, and was powerfully instrumental in hastening the subjuga- tion of that country to the British crown. Section XVII. The expedition against Ticon- deroga was conducted by Gen. Abercrombie, commander in chief in America, lord Loudon having returned to England. An army of six- teen thousand men, nine thousand of whom were provincials, followed his standard, besides a for- midable train of artillery. . * . . . . . . . . . . ." § { Having passed Lake George, the army pro- ceeded with great difficulty towards the fortress. Unfortunately, Gen. Abercrombie trusted to others, who were incompetent to the task, to re- connoitre the ground and entrenchments of the enemy, and, without a knowledge of the strength of the places, or of the proper points of attack, issued his orders to attempt the lines without bringing up a single piece of artillery. The army advanced to the charge with the greatest intrepidity, and for more than four hours maintained the attack with incredible ob- stimacy. .” After the loss of nearly two thousand in killed ºld wounded the troops were summoned away. e and ill advised. Not a doubt cal exist, that had the siege been prosecute rudence and vigour, the reduction of the •.º. rould have been easily accomplished, thout so great a waste of human life, as the 132 PERIOD IV.1756.1775. garrison amounted to but little more than three The passage of Abercrombie, across Lake George on his way with his army to Ticonderoga, was effected by means of one thousand and thirty-five boats. The splendour of the mili- tary parade on the occasion was eminently imposing, and de- serves to be recorded. A late writer, Dr. Dwight, thus de- scribes it. º “The morning was remarkably bright and beautiful; and the fleet moved with exact regularity to the sound of fine martial musick. The ensigns waved and glittered in the sun-beams, and the anticipation of future triumph shone in every eye. Above, beneath, around, the scenery was that of enchantment. Rarely has the sun, since that luminary was first lighted up in the heavens, dawned on such a complication of beauty and magnificence.” How greatly did all the parade which was dis- played, and all the anticipation which was indulged, add to the mortification of the defeat which followed & . . After his repulse, Gen. Abercrombie retired to his former quarters on Lake George. Here, anxious in any way to repair the mischief and disgrace of defeat, he consented, at the solicita- tion of Col. Bradstreet, to detach him with three thousand men, against fort Frontenac, on the northwest side of the outlet of Lake Ontario, With these troops, mostly provincial, Bradstreet sailed down the Ontario, landed within a mile of the fort, opened his batteries, and, in two days, forced this important fortress to surrender Nine armed vessels, sixty cannon, sixteen mor- tars, and a vast quantity of ammunition, &c. &c. to his hands. Du Quesne, the bulwark of their dominion Settlement at Dover. p. 33. lack amounted to eight thousand, effective men. ing been deserted by the garriso tºveniliig before the arrival of the army. On taking quiet possession of the place, Forbes, in ho º Pitt, called it Pittsburg. Notwithstanding the defeat of Ticonderoga, the campaign closed with honour to the colonies, and to the nation in general. The successes of the year prepared the way for the still greater achievements of the ensuing year. º # Section XIX. Another event of this year con- curred in bringing to pass the fortunate issues of the next. This was a treaty of peace and friend- ship with the Indian nations inhabiting between the Apalachian mountains, the Alleghanies, and the lakes. This treaty was concluded at Easton, sixty miles from Philadelphia. The managers of the treaty on the part of Great Britain, were the governours of Pennsylvania and New-Jersey, Sir William Johnson, four members of the council of Pennsylvania, six members of assembly, and two agents from New-Jersey. The tribes represented on this occasion, and with which the treaty was made, were the Mohawks, Oneidas, Onondagoes, Cayugas, Senecas, Tuscaroras, Nanticoques, and Comays, the Tuteloes, Chugnuts, Delawares, Unamies, Minisinks, Mohi and Wappingers. The whole number of India. and children, present, amounted to five hund the entire conquest | 2d ol e division ag ainst Tic onderoga, Wł ich he reached July 22d. This fortress soon surender ed, the principal part of the garrison having re- tired to Crown Point. Having strengthened Ti- conderoga, the army next proceeded against this latter place, and took quiet possession of it, the enemy having fled before their arrival. The French retired to the Isle aux Noix, situated at the north- ern extremity of Lake Champlain, where they were strongly encamped with a force of three thousand five hundred men, and a powerful artillery. Gen. Amherst designed to follow up his successes against them in that quarter, but the want of a suitable naval armameut prevented. Section XXII. The second division of the army, commanded by Gen. Prideaux, was des- timed against Niagara, at which place they ar- rived July 6th, without loss or opposition. The place was immediately invested: on the 24th of the month, a general battle took place, which decided the fate of Niagara, and placed it in the hands of the English. . . . . gº Four days previous to this battle, that able and distinguished officer, General Prideaux, was killed by the bursting of a co- horn. The command devolved on Sir William Johnson, who successfully put in execution the plans of his lamented prede. C6SSOr. ; : . . .” Section XXIII. While the English troops were achieving these important victories in Up. per Canada, Gen. Wolfe was prosecuting the most important enterprise of the campaign, viz. the reduction of Quebec. Embarking at Louis. burg with eight thousand men, under convoy of Admirals Saunders and Holmes, he landed with * , on the island of Orleans, u veral attempts to reduce the plac FRENCH AND INDIAN war. of from 150 to 200 feet, by which he would reach the plains of Abraham, lying south and west of the city, and thus gain access to the enemy, in a less fortified spot. ~ - This ascent he effected with his army, and ere Montcalm, the French general, was aware of it, the army had formed on the heights of Abraham, and were prepared for battle. w Here, on the morning of the 13th of Septem- ber, Wolfe met the French army under Mont- calm, and after a severe and bloody contest, in which both these brave commanders fell, victory decided in favour of the English. A thousand prisoners were taken, and a thousand of the ene- my were killed. The loss of the English, in killed and wounded did not exceed six hundred. Five days after, the city capitulated ; the in- habitants were to enjoy their civil and religious rights, and remain neutral during the war. The city was garrisoned under the command of Gen. Murray. ... : ... Determined from the first to take º impregnable as it was accounted, the measures of Gen. Wolfe, were singularly bold, and apparently repugnant to all the maxims of war. His attention was first drawn to point Levi, on the southern bank of the St. Lawrence, upon which, after taking possession of it, he erected batteries. By means of these, he destroyed many house: but from this point it was soon apparent that little impression could be made upon the fortifications of the town. f : Finding it impracticable thus to accomplish his pl next decided on more daring measures. For the purpo drawing Montcalm to a general battle, Wolfe, with his ti crossed the river Montmorenci, and attacked the º: renchr "Owing, however, to the * sh conveyed the troops. d so soon as PERIOD iv.1756.1775. r. But it was near night, a thunder storm . Montcalm’s party had now landed, and were • was approaching, and the tide was rapidly setting in. Fearing the consequences of delay, Wolfe ordered a retreat across the Montmorenci, and returned to his quarters on the Isle of Or- leans. In this renceunter, his loss amounted to near six hun- dred of the flower of his army. * . . . The difficulties of effecting the conquest of Quebec now press. ed upon Wolfe with all their force. But he knew the import- ance of taking this strongest hold—he knew the expectations of his countrymen—he well knew that no military conduct could shine that was not gilded with success. ‘. . . ; Disappointed thus far, and worn down with fatigue and watch- ing, General Wolfe fell violently sick. Scarcely had he reco- vered, before he proceeded to put in execution a plan which had been matured on his sick bed. This was to proceed up the ri- ver—gain the heights of Abraham, and draw Montcalm to a general engagement. Accordingly, the troops were transported up the river about nine miles. On the 12th of Sept. one hour after midnight, Wolfe and his troops left the ships, and in boats silently drop- }. down the current, intending to land a league above Cape, iamond, and there ascend the bank leading to the station he wished to gain. Owing, however, to the rapidity of the river, they fell below the intended place, and landed a mile, or a mile and a half, above the city. . The operation was a critical one, as they had to navigate, in silence, down a rapid stream, and to find a right place for land- ing, which, amidst surrounding darkness, might be easily mis- taken. Besides this, the shore was shelving, and the bank so steep and loft, as scarcely to be ascended even without oppo- sition from an enemy. Indeed the attempt was in the greatest danger of being defeated by an occurrence peculiarly interesting, as marking the very great delicacy of the transaction. One of the French sentinels, posted along the shore, as the English boats were descending, challenged them in the custo- mary military language of the French. “Qui vitz” “who goes there?”; to which a captain in Frazer's regiment, who had 㺠in Holland, and was familiar with the French language stoms, promptly replied, “la France.” The next ques. ore embarrassing, for the sentinel demanded “a FRENCH AND INDIAst WAR. 137. which as the English had learned from some deserters, was ex- pected to pass down the river to Quebec. The other sentinels were deceived in a similar manner; but one, less credulous than the rest, running down to the water's edge, called out “Pour quois est ce que vous me parlez plus haut” “Why dont you speak louder?” The same captain, with perfect self-command, replied, “Tais toi, mous serons entendus!” “Hush, we shall be overheard and discovered ſ” The sentry, satisfied with this caution, retired, and the boats passed in safety.” About an hour before day, the army began to ascend the pre- cipice, the distance of one hundred and fifty or two hundred feet, almost perpendicular ascent, above which spread the plains of Abraham. By day-light, Sept. 13th, this almost incredible enterprise had been effected—the desired station was attained, the army was formed, and ready to meet the enemy. . . . To Montcalm, the intelligence that the English were occupy- ing the heights of Abraham was most surprising. The impossi- bility of ascending the precipice he considered certain, and there- fore had taken no measures to fortify its line. But no sooner was he informed of the position of the English army, than per- ceiving a battle no longer to be avoided, he prepared to fight. Between nine and ten o’clock, the two armies, about equal in numbers, met face to face. . . . . The battle now commenced. Inattentive to the fire of a body of Canadians and Indians, one thousand five hundred of whom Montcalm had stationed in the cornfields and bushes, Wolfe di- rected his troops to reserve their fire for the main body of the French, now rapidly advancing. On their approach within forty yards, the English opened their fire and the destruction became immense. The French fought bravely, but their ranks became disorder- ed, and, notwithstanding the repeated efforts of their officers to form them, and to renew the attack, they were so successfully pushed by the British bayonet, and hewn down by the Highland broadsword, that their discomfiture was complete. , uring the action, Montcalm was on the French left, and e on the English right, and here they both fell in the criti ent that decided the victory. Early in the battle a ball in his wrist, but binding his handkerchie tinued to encourage his men.—S ed his groin; but this wo IODIV.1756.1775. ullet pierced his breast. He was now tly, to be carried to the rear of the line. tº in. Monckton succeeded to the command, but was immedi ately wounded, and conveyed away. In this critical state of the action, the command devolved on Gen. Townshend. Gen. Montcalm, fighting in front of his battalion, received a mortal wound about the same time, and Gen. Jennezergus, his second in command, fell near his side. Wolfe died in the field, before the battle was ended; but he lived long enough to know that the victory was his.-While leaning on the shoulder of a lieutenant, who kneeled to support him, he was seized with the agonies of death: at this moment was heard the distant sound, “They fly”—“they fly.” The hero raised his drooping head, and eagerly asked, “Who fly?” Being told that it was the French—“Then,” he replied, “I die happy,” and expired. < . . . ; “This death,” says professor Silliman, “has furnished a grand and pathetic subject for the painter, the poet, and the his- torian, and undoubtedly, considered as a specimen of mere mili- tary glory, it is one of the most sublime that the annals of war Montcalm was every way worthy of being the competitor of Wolfe. In talents—in military skill—in personal courage, he was not his inferiour. Nor was his death much less sublime. He lived to be carried to the city, where his last moments were employed in writing, with his own hand, a letter to the English eneral, recommending the French prisoners to his care and hu manity. When informed that his wound was mortal, he replied, “I shall not then live to see the surrender of Quebec.” The following interesting particulars, relating to the dangers and sufferings of two officers of the English army, during the ** shall be excused for inserting, notwithstanding their º aptain Ochterlony and Ensign Peyton, belonged to the regiment of Brigadier-General Monckton. They'v sº of an age, which did not exceed thirty; the first was a North- Briton, the other a native of Ireland. Both were agreeable in person, and were con together by the ties of mutual friend. his duty, when his country required his service; and he took the field with a fusil in his hand, though he was hardly able to carry his arms. In leading up his men to the enemy's entrench- ment, he was shot through the lungs with a musketball, an ac- cident which obliged him to part with his fusil, but he still con- tinued advancing, until, by loss of blood, he became too weak to proceed further. About the same time, Mr. Peyton was lamed by a shot, which shattered the small bone of his left leg. The soldiers, in their retreat, earnestly begged, with tears in their eyes, that captain Ochterlony would allow them to carry him and the ensign off the field. But he was so bigotted to a severe point of honour, that he would not quit the ground, though he desired they would take care of his ensign. Mr. Peyton, with a generous disdain, rejected their good offices, declaring that he would not leave his captain in such a situation; and in a little time, they remained sole survivors on that part of the field. “Captain Ochterlony sat down by his friend, and as they ex- pected nothing but immediate death, they took leave of each other; yet they were not altogether abandoned by the hope of being protected as prisoners; for the captain seeing a French soldier, with two Indians, approach, started up, and accosting them in the French language, which he spoke perfectly well, expressed his expectation that they would treat him and his com- panion as officers, prisoners, and gentlemen. The two Indians seemed to be entirely under the conduct of the Frenchman, who, coming up to Mr. Peyton, as he sat on the ground, snatched his laced hat from his head, and robbed the captain of his watch and money. This outrage was a signal to the Indians for mur. der and pillage. One of them, clubbing his firelock, struck at him behind, with a view to knock him down, but the blow miss- the other Indian poured his shot into the breast of this unfortun ate young gentleman, who cried out, “O Peytonſ the villain has shot me.” Not yet satiated with cruelty, the barbarian sprung upon him, and stabbed him in the belly with his scalping ife. The captain having parted with his fusil, had no wea- his defence, as none of the officers wore swords in the The three ruffians finding him still alive, endeavoured. m with his own sash; and he was now § 140 PERIOD iv.1756.1775. take no effect. The savage fired in his turn, and wounded the ensign in the shoulder; then rushing upon him, thrust his bayo. net through his body; he repeated the blow, which Mr. Peyton attempting to parry, received another wound in his left hand; nevertheless, he seized the Indian's musket with the same hand, pulled him forwards, and with his right, drawing a dagger which hung by his side, plunged it in the barbarian's side. A violent struggle ensued; but at length Mr. Peyton was uppermost, and, with repeated strokes of his dagger, killed his antagonist out- right. Here he was seized with an unaccountable emotion of curiosity, to know whether or not his shot had taken effect on the body of the Indian; he accordingly turned him up, and stripping off his blanket, perceived that the ball had penetrated quite through the cavity of the breast. Having thus obtained a dear bought victory, he started up on one leg, and saw captain Ochterlony standing at the distance of sixty yards, close by the enemy's breast-work, with the French soldier attending him. Mr. Peyton then called aloud, “Captain Ochterlony, I am glad to see you have at last got under protection. Beware of that vi'ain, who is more barbarous than the savages. God bless you, my dear Captain. I see a party of Indians coming this way, and expect to be murdered immediately.” A number of these barbarians had for some time been employed on the left, in scalping and pillaging the dying and the dead that were left upon the field of battle; and above thirty of them were in full march to destroy Mr. Peyton. This gentleman knew he had no mercy to expect; for, should his life be spared for the pre- sent, they would have afterwards insisted upon sacrificing him to the manes of their brethren whom he had slain; and in that case he would have been put to death by the most excruciating tortures. Full of this idea, he snatched up his musket, and, not. withstanding his broken leg, ran above forty yards without halt. ing; and feeling himself now totally disabled, and incapable of proceeding one step further, he loaded his piece, and presented it to the two foremost Indians, who stood aloof waiting to be joined by their fellows: while the French, from their breast. works, kept up a continual fire of cannon and small arms upon this poor, solitary, maimed gentleman. In this uncomfor able tuation he stood, when he discerned at a distance, a Highl §º with a party of his men, skirting the plain towards: FRENCH AND INDIAN waR 141 ung gentleman, his kinsman, had dropped on the field of had put himself at the head of this party, with which he enetrated to the middle of the field, drove a considerable num- ber of the French and Indians before him, and finding his rela- tion still unscalped, carried him off in triumph. Poor captain chterlony was conveyed to Quebec, where, in a few days he ied of wounds. After the reduction of that place, the French * - - - - - - - ttended him, declared, that in all probability, he would have recovered of the two shots he had received in his breast, had he not been mortally wounded in the belly by the Indians scalping knife. * . - - - - - - - “As this very remarkable scene was acted in sight of both armies, General Townshend, in the sequel, expostulated with the French officers upon the inhumanity of keeping up such a severe fire against two wounded gentlemen, who were disabled, and destitute of all hope of escaping. They answered that the fire was not made by the regulars, but by the Canadians and savages,whom it was not in the power of discipline to restrain.” Section XXIV. The capture of Quebec, which soon followed, important as it was, did not imme- diately terminate the war. The French in Ca: nada had still a powerful army, and some naval force above the city. Section XXV. In the ensuing spring, 1760, Monsieur Levi approached Quebec from Mon- treal, assisted by six frigates, for the purpose of recovering it from the English. Gen. Murray, who commanded the English garrison, marched out to meet him, with only three thousand men, and, on the 28th of April, after a bloody battle, ht at Sillsery, three miles above the city, the lish army was defeated, with the loss of one housand men, the French having lostmo º able that number. . . . . he English retreated to Quebec, to w now laid siege. About the surgeons who a 142 period iv.itsa.ins. forcements, soon after which, the French fleet was taken and destroyed, and the siege was raised. - X: Section XXVI. The attention of the English commander in chief, Gen. Amherst was now di rected to the reduction of Montreal, the last for. tress of consequence in the possession of the French. To eliect this he detached Col. Havi- land, with a well disciplined army to proceed to Lake George, Crown Point, and Lake Cham- plain; Gen. Murray was ordered from Quebec, with such forces as could be spared from the gar- rison, while General Amherst himself proceeded with ten thousand men, by Lake Ontario, down the river St. Lawrence. . Generals Amherst and Murray arrived at Mon- treal the same day Sept. 6th, and were joined by Haviland, on the day succeeding. While pre- paring to lay siege to the place, the commander of Montreal, M. de Vaudreuil, perceiving that resistance would be inefiectual, demanded a ca- pitulation. On the 8th, Montreal, Detroit, Mi- chilimackinac, and all the other places within the government of Canada were surrendered to his Brittanick Majesty. . . . . . . . . . Section XXVII. Thus ended a war which, from the first hostilities, had continued six years. and during which much distress had been exper rienced and many thousand valuable lives lost. Great and universal was the joy that sprea through the colonies, at the successful terminºr tion of a contest, so long and severe, and pub- lick thanksgivings were generally appointed tº ascribe due honour to HIM, who had preserve to the colonies their existence and liberties. Section XXVIII. While the troops were em. FRENCH AND INDIAN WAR. 143 ployed in the conquest of Canada, the Colonies of Virginia and South Carolina, suffered inva- sion and outrage from the Cherokees, a powerful tribe of savages on the West. But in 1761, they were signally defeated by Col. Grant, and com- • * pelled to sue for peace. intelligence being communicated to Gen. Amherst of the dan- ger of these colonies, he despatched Gen. Montgomery with one thousand two hundred men, for their protection and relief. . Being joined by the forces of the province of Carolina on his arrival, he immediately proceeded into the country of the Che- rokees, plundering and destroying their villages and magazines of corn. In revenge, the savages besieged Fort Loudon, on the confines of Virginia, which was obliged, by reason of famine, to capitulate. The capitulation was, however, broken, and the troops, while on their march to Virginia, were assaulted—num- bers of them killed, and the rest taken captive. The next year, 1761, Gen. Montgomery being obliged to re- turn, Col. Grant was sent to continue the war. With an army of near two thousand six hundred men, he began his march to: wards the enemies' country. On the fourth day the army fell in with a body of savages, and after a strongly contested battle, put them to flight. Following up this victory; Col. Grant pro- ceeded to destroy their magazines, burn their corn fields, and consume their settlements, until, having effectually routed them, he returned with his troops. Soon after this, the Cherokee chiefs came in, and a peace was concluded. Section XXIX. The conquest of Canada having been achieved in 1763, a definitive treaty, the preliminaries of which had been settled the year before, was signed at Paris, and soon after ratified by the kings of England and France; by which all Nova Scotia, Canada, the Isle of pe Breton, and all other islands in the gulf river St. Lawrence, were ceded to the Bri- * 144 PERIOD IV.1756.1775. * ź Notts. Section XXX. jūantittg' of tiſt Colo- mists. The change in respect to manners in the colonies, during this period, consisted chiefly in a gradual wearing away of national distinctions and peculiarities, and a tendency to a still great- er unity and assimilation of character. The ra- pid increase of wealth, and the frequency of in- tercourse with Europe, began to introduce among the colonies the tastes, and fashions, and luxu- ries of European countries. But the introduc- tion of them produced little enervation of cha- racter among the people of America. Such an effect was counteracted by the bloody, but suc- cessful war with the French and Indians, and the boundless prosperity which seemed to open to the country, and call forth its energies. In- stead, therefore, of a growing weakness in the colonies, we perceive a more vigorous spirit of commercial enterprise, pervading the country; a consciousness of political importance becoming confirmed; and a deep and ardent love of civil liberty breathing over the land. & Section XXXI. Želigion. The only reli. gious sect introduced into America, during this period, was that of the Shakers, or Shaking Quakers, who arrived from England in 1774, and settled at Niskayuna, near Albany. Although the spirit of religious intolerance had disappeared from the colonies, and the puritanical severity of the north hº e much softened, yet until the commencement of the becor French and Indian war, the religious character of the coloniº had remained essentially the same. But during this war, in delity was extensively introduced into the army, by means." he foreign English officers and soldiers who were sent into country. From the army, it spread itself into society, and prº relaxation of morals, and a looser adher- *------ – -ºº -- - -º VV&s his period, trade and com- merce made great advances; the annual amount imports from Great Britain, was about two and a half millions of pounds sterling, from 1756 and a half annually, on an average.—The annual amount of exports of the colonies to Great Bri- tain and elsewhere, was about four million pounds sterling, at the close of this period. The articles of export, and the nature of the trade of the co- lonies, were essentially the same as stated in the notes to period third. In 1769, the number of ships employed by Great Britain and the colonies, in the trade with the colonies, was one thousand se- venty-eight, manned by twenty-eight thousand nine hundred and ten seamen. . The whale and other fisheries in the colonies had become of great importance. In 1775, there were employed in the fishery generally, and in carrying the fish to market from New-England, one thousand four hundred and fifty vessels of all descriptions, of one hundred thousand tons burthen, and eleven thousand fish. od, a gradual progress was ſture, but it does not need an gº sts, d fe intere ests, dur º 146 PERIOD IV.1756.1775. 1769, the college at Hanover, New-Hampshire, was founded, and called Dartmouth College, in honour of the earl of Dartmouth, who was one of its principal benefactors. a In 1770, the University in Rhode-Island called Brown University, was established at Provi dence. It was incorporated in 1764, and first io- cated at Warren. At this place the first com- mencement was held, 1769. § 3: ... ; z itfitttions. XXXVII. The preceding short period of our history presents several interesting subjects of reflection. The American colo- nies became the theatre of a bloody conflict, attended by all the appalling features of savage war. Although feebly supported by England, and embarrassed by the want of political union, they surmounted every obstacle, and compelled the French, their enemies, to depart from their shores for ever. But no sooner was this conflict ended, than they began to feel, with added weight, the hand of British oppression.—Not humbled, however, by injustice, nor crushed by severities, they vigorously put forth their strength in commerce, trade, and ag- riculture. They spread innumerable sails upon the ocean; they converted forests into meadows and wheat fields; estab- lished seminalies of learning; founded cities; and built churches to God. • . . . Nay, more—we see that those very steps, which were taken by the mother country to cripple the American colonies, were so ordered as to add to their strength. By leaving them to bear the war of 1756 almost alone, she showed them that they could not expect defence from her; she taught them the necessity of relying upon their own energies; gave them an opportunity to learn the art of war, and to ascertain their own strength. g The long line of British acts, designed to crush the colonies, and to keep them in humble subjection, passed, as they were, in wilful ignorance of the feelings and power of America, awakened the spirit of the revolution, and laid the foundation of a great nation. . . . . . . What a lesson may tyranny gather from this And how thankful should we be, that a just Providence is above, whoºº. ards the affairs of men—who turns aside the tramping heel ºf oppression, and causes the blood wrung out by tyranny to */ UNITED STATEs. 33triotſ v. distinguished for the war of the Revolu- Extending from the commencement of hostilities by Great Britain against the American co- lonies, in the battle of Lexington, 1775, to the disbanding of the American Army at West Point, 1783. & Section I. On the 19th of April, 1775, was shed at Lexington, Massachusetts, the first blood in the war of the revolution—a war, which ter- minated in the separation of the American colo- nies from Great Britain, and in their change from this humble character and condition, to that of free and independent States. Section II. The causes, which led the colonies to take up arms against the mother country, de- serve a distinct recital in this portion of our his. tory, as they will clearly show the justice, wis- ym, and necessity of those acts of resistance, to nich, at that trying period, resort was had. §º 148 PERIOD v.1775..1783....REvolution. when they spoke, or wrote, or thought of Eng- land, it was under the filial and affectionate idea of “home.” “And even at the commencement of the controversy with Great Britain,” if we credit those who lived at that time, “there ex- isted no desire, nor intention of becoming inde- pendent.” Testimony with respect to the filial disposition of the colo- nies towards the mother country abounds. “I profess,” said Pownal, who had been governour and commander in chief of Massachusetts Bay—governour of South Carolina, &c. &c. “I profess,” said he, in 1765, “an affection for the colonies, because, having lived among their people, in a private as well as publick character, I know them—I know that in theii private social relations, there is not a more friendly, and in their politi- cal one, a more zealously loyal people in all his majesty's do. minions. They would sacrifice their dearest interest for the ho- nour of their mother country. I have a right to say this, be: cause experience has given me a practical knowledge and this impression of them.—They have no other idea of this country than as their home; they have no other word by which to ex- press it, and till of late, it has been constantly expressed by the name of home.” > * To the same effect is the testimony of Dr. Franklin. “Scot- land,” said he, in 1768, “has had its rebellions; Ireland has had its rebellions: F.mgland its plots against the reigning family; but America is free iron, this reproach;”—“No people were ever known more truly loyal : the protestant succession in the house of Hanover was their ide’”. For these feelings of effec.wn for the mother country, the colonies deserve the highest enco: mium. Causes existed which might have justi. fied a less degree of attachment, and were calcu- lated to produce it. These were the oppression and losses which they endured; the shacklesim. posed upon them; the restraints upon their com" merce; the parsimony with which aid was adm nistered by the mother country; the malead tion—the peculation and arbit period v.1715.1785. Revolution. 149 feeling of affection, and shake the last remains of their allegiance. , % * , . Yet, through all this oppressive subordination —through the calamities of war—through the attempt to wrest from them their charters, and their dearest rights—they could say, and did say, “England, with all thy faults, I love thee still.” Nor is it probable that these friendly disposi- tions of the colonies would at this time have been withdrawn, had not Great Britain interrupted them by a grievous change of policy towards the inhabitants touching the subject of revenue and taxation. % 2. Before the peace of '63, this subject had been wisely let alone. The colonies had been per- mitted to tax themselves, without the interfer- ence of the parliament. Till this period, it had sufficed for the mother country so to control their commerce, as to monopolize its benefits to herself. But from and after this period, the ancient system was set aside, and a different and oppressive policy adopted. The first act, the avowed purpose of which was a revenue from the colonies, passed the parliament, Sept." 29th, 1764, the preamble to which began thus: —“Whereas, it is just and necessary that a revenue be raised in America, for defraying the nses of defending, protecting, and securing same, we the commons, &c.” The act then !ds to lay a duty on “clayed sugar, indigo, the dominion of his majest tº the colonies could not 150 PERIOD v.1775.1783...REvolution. their existence, nearly one hundred and fifty years, until now, had seldom been named. But the colonies could submit to it, although unplea- sant and unjust, nor would this act alone have led to permanent disaffection, had it not been followed by other acts, still more unjust and oppressive. On the subject of the right of the British parliament to tax the colonies, it was asserted in the mother country “to be es- sential to the unity, and of course to the prosperity, of the em- pire, that the British parliament should have a light of taxation over every part of the royal dominions.” In the colonies it was contended, “that taxation and representation were in- separable, and that they could not be safe, if their property might be taken from them, without their consent.” This claim of the right of taxation on the one side, and the denial of it on the other, was the very hinge on which the revolution turned. In accordance with the policy to be observed towards America, the next year, 1765, the fa- mous stamp act passed both houses of parlia- ment. This ordained that instruments of writ: ing, such as deeds, bonds, notes, &c. among the colonies, should be null and void, unless exe: cuted on stamped paper, for which a duty should be paid to the crown. When this bill was brought in, the ministers, and particularly Charles Townshend, exclaimed: , - “These Americans, our own children, planted by our care, nourished by our indulgence, protected by our arms, until they are grown to a good degree of strength and opulence; will they now turn their backs upon us, and grudge to contribute th. mite to relieve us from the heavy load which overwhelms us?” Col. Barre caught the words, and, with a vehemence becºm" ing a soldier, rose and said: sº “Planted by 3 re? No! your oppression plante" ºnari, r tyranny into a then ºr g PERIOD v.1775..1783...RevoluTION. 151 yet actuated by principles of true English liberty, they met all hese hardships with pleasure, compared with those they suffer- ed in their own country, from the hands of those that should have been their friends. - . “ They nourished by your-indulgence / They grew by your neglect; as soon as you began to care about them, that care was exercised in sending persons to rule over them, in one department and another, who were, perhaps, the deputies of the deputies of some members of this house, sent to spy out their liberty, to misrepresent their actions, and to prey upon them : men, whose behaviour, on many occasions, has caused the blood of these sons of liberty to recoil within them: men, promoted to the highest seats of justice, some of whom, to my knowledge, were glad, by going to foreign countries, to escape the vengeance of the laws in their own. - & . . . . “They protected by your arms / They have nobly taken up arms in your defence, have exerted their valour amidst their constant and laborious industry, for the defence of a country whose frontiers, while drenched in blood, its interior parts have yielded for your enlargement the little savings of their frugality and the fruits of their toils. And believe me, remember, I this day told you so, that the same spirit which actuated that people at first, will continue with them still.” The night after this act passed, Doctor Franklin, who was then in London, wrote to Charles Thompson, afterwards secre- tary of the Continental Congress, “The sun of liberty is set; the Americans must light the lamps of industry and economy.” To which Mr. Thompson answered; “Be assured we shall light torches of quite another sort”—thus predicting the con- vulsions which were about to follow. Section III. On the arrival of the news of the stamp act in America, a general indignation spread through the country, and resolutions were assed against the act, by most of the colonial these resolutions, Virginia led the way. On the me ouse of burgesses, Patrick Henry presented, an e following resolutions, which were substan 152. PERIod v.1775.1783. Revolution. olo- ny, together with his majesty, or his substitutes, have, in their representative capacity, the only exclusive right and power to lay taxes and imposts upon the inhabitants of this colony; and that every attempt to vest such power in any other person, or persons, whatsoever, than the general assembly aforesaid, is il- legal, unconstitutional, and unjust, and hath a manifest tendency to destroy British as well as American liberty. Resolved, That his majesty's liege people, the inhabitants of this colony, are not bound to yield obedience to any law or ordinance whatever, designed to impose any taxation whatever upon them, other than the laws or ordinances of the general as- sembly aforesaid. . . . . . Resolved, That any person who shall, by speaking or writing, assert or maintain that any, person, or persons, ... than the general assembly of this colony, have any right or power to im- pose or lay any tax on the people here, shall be deemed an enemy to this, his majesty’s colony. Copies of these resolutions were immediately forwarded to the other provinces, and served to raise still higher the genera. feeling of opposition to the conduct of the mother country. Section IV. In June, Massachusetts recom- mended a colonial congress to consult for the general safety. The recommendation was well received by most of the colonies, and in Octo- ber, twenty-eight members assembled in New- York, where they remonstrated against the stamp act, and petitioned its repeal. At the same time, also, they drew up a bill of rights, in which taxation and representation were de- | clared to be inseparable. Section W. The stamp act came into opera: tion on the first of November. In Boston, and in Portsmouth, the day was ushered in by a fu- neral tolling of the bells. In the latter place, he course of the day, a coffin, neatly orna. ted, and inscribed with the word Liberty, in Resolved, therefore, That the general assembly of this - Qºr PERIod v.1775.1783. Revolution. 13s as offered in favour of the deceased. oration was of feeling occurred in various parts of the country. In some places, the stamp officers were oblig- ed to resign, or to secrete themselves, to escape the vengeance of the people. Stamps were not permitted to be landed, and business, in many places, was conducted without them. At the same time, associations were formed in all parts of the the country, by merchants, not to import goods until this odious act was repealed. Most cheerfully did the people, women as well as men, enter upon this self-denial. Luxuries, decorations, elegancies, were universally laid aside. The opposition to the stamp act in America was so spirited, so deep laid, so universal, that parliament had only the alternative, to compel her to submit, or to repeal it. After a long and angry debate on the question, the repeal was carried:—but accompanying the repealing act, was one called the declaratory act, more hostile to American rights than any which had preced- ed. The language of the act was, “that par- liament have, and of right ought to have, power to bind the colones un all cases whatsoever.” On the meeting of Parliament, Jan. 7th, 1766, his majesty in his speech spoke of the above oppositicn of the colonies to the stamp act, in pointed terms of reprehension. On the mo- ion for an address to the king, Mr. Pitt, the independent and invariable friend of liberty and equal rights, was the first to of. er his sentiments on the state of affairs. “It is a long time, § le resolution was taken in this house to tax America, bed. If I could have endured to have been carr at was the agitation of my mind for the co ild have solicited some kind hand to hav 454. PERIOD W.1775..1783,...REVOLUTION. It is my opinion that this kingdom has No RIGHT to lay a tax upon the colonies.” . * * * Upon concluding his speech, a silence of some minutes suc- ceeded. No one appeared inclined to take the part of the late minister, or to rouse the lion, which lay basking in the eye of the great Commoner who had just sat down. At length, Mr Grenville rose to reply. After declaring the tumult in America to border upon rebellion, and insisting upon the constitutional right of Parliament to tax the colonies, he concluded as follows: “ Ungrateful people of America! The nation has run itself into an immense debt to give them, protection; bounties have been extended to them; in their favour the act of navigation, that palladium of the British commerce, has been relaxed: and now that they are called upon to contribute a small share to- wards the publick expence, they renounce your authority, insult your officers, and break out, I might almost say, into open re- bellion.” ; : - 2” Mr. Grenville had scarcely taken his seat, when Mr. Pitt, rose to reply—but the rules of the house forbidding him to speak twice on the same motion, he was called to order, and in obedience to the call, was resuming his seat, when the loud and repeated cry of “Go on,” induced him once more to take the floor. In the course of his speech he said, “We are told America is obstinate—America is in open rebellion. Sir, I re- joice that America has resisted; three millions of people so dead to all the feelings of liberty, as voluntarily to submit to be slaves, would have been fit instruments to make slaves of all the rest. I am no courtier of America. I maintain that Parlia- ment has a right to bind, to restrain America. Our legislative power over the Colonies is sovereign and supreme. “When,” asks the honourable gentleman “were the colonies emancipat. ed?” At what time, say I in answer, were they made slaves? I speak from accurate knowledge when I say that the profits to Great Britain from the trade of the colonies, through all its branches, is two millions per annum. This is the fund which carried you triumphantly through the war; this is the price America pays you for her protection ; and shall a miserable financier come with a boast that he can fetch a pepper-corn into the exchequer, at the loss of millions to the nation? . . I know the valour of your troops—I know the skill of your officers—I know the force of this country; but in such a cause success would be hazardous. America, if she fell, wººl -: e strong man: she would embrace the pilla state, and pull down the constitution with her. I º PERIOD v.1775..17ss...R wolution. 155 to sheathe it in the bowels of your countrymen * The Al º ri- cans have been wronged—they have been driven to madness by injustice! Will you punish them for the madness you have occasioned? No: let this country be the first to resume its pru- dence and temper; I will pledge myself for the colonies, that on their part, animosity ad resºtment will cease. Upon the whole I will beg leave to ll the house in few words what is really my opinion. It is, that the stamp act be repealed abso- lutely, totally and immediately.” On the 22d of February, General Conway introduced a mo- tion to repeal this act. The debate lasted until three o’clock in the morning, and never was there a debate which excited more warmth of interest, or more vehemence of opposition. The lobbies of the house were crowded with the manufacturers and traders of the kingdom, whose anxious countenances plainly showed that their fates hung upon the issue. A division at length being called for, two hundred and seventy-five rose in support of the motion, and one hundred and sixty-seven against On learning this vote, the transports of the people were un- governable. Impressed with the conviction, that they owed their deliverance to Mr. Pitt, their gratitude knew no bounds: when he appeared at the door, in the language of Burke, “they jumped upon him, like children on a long absent father. They clung to him as captives about their redeemer. All England joined in his applause.” In the house of Peers, the opposition to the motion was still more obstinate. Some of the Dukes, and the whole Bench of Bishops were for forcing the Ameri- cans to submit, with fire and sword. Opposition however was at length wearied out, and the motion to repeal was carried by a majority of thirty-four, a compromise having been made by introducing the above declaratory act. The satisfaction of the colonies on the repeal of the stamp act was sincere and universal. Ele- wated with the idea of having removed an odious and oppressive burden, and believing, notwith: standing the declaratory act of parliament, that the right of taxing the colonies was at length sur rendered, better feelings were indulged; com sial intercourse was revived, and larger im n VI. The colonies, however, mistool e spirit and determination of the ministry #56 PERIod v.1715.17ss...Revolution. For, in 1767, a bill passed the parliament, im. posing a duty to be collected in the colonies on glass, paper, painter's colours, and tea. . . . This act, with several others, not less arbitra- ry and unjust, again spread alarm through the colonies, and revived the fire of opposition which had been smothered by the repeal of the stamp act. Again were associations formed to prevent the importation of British goods; again were meetings called to resolve, petition, and remon- strate. … º * ... Section VII. In Feb. 1769, both houses of par liament went a step beyond all that had preced- ed, in an address to the king, requesting him to give orders to the governour of Massachusetts— the spirited conduct of which province was par. ticularly obnoxious to the ministry—to take no- tice of such as might be guilty of treason, that they might be sent to England and tried there. A measure more odious to the people of Ame- rica, or more hostile to the British constitution, could not be named, than for a man to be torn from his country, to be tried by a jury of stran- gers. > : º : º The house of burgesses of Virginia met soon after the official accounts of this address were received, and, in a few days, pass. ed several spirited resolutions, expressing “their exclusive right to tax their constituents, and denying the right of his majesty to remove an offender out of the country for trial.” The next day, the royal governour of that colony sent for the house of burgess- es and addressed them laconically as follows: “Mr. Speaker, and gentlemen of the house of burgesses, I have heard of your resolves, and augur ill of their effects. You have made it.} ty to dissolve you, and you are accordingly dissolved!”. Th" of North Carolina passed similar resolutions and were y their governour, in a similar manner. . . . While affairs were thus situated airs red which prod PERIOD v.1775..1783. REVOLUTION. 157 This was an affray on the evening of the fifth of March 1770, between some of the citizens of Boston, and a number of his majesty's soldiers, who had been sent from Halifax, and were now stationed at the custom house. Several of the inhabitants were killed, and others severely wounded. . - The quarrel commenced on the 2d of March, at Gray's rope walk, between a soldier, and a man employed at the rope walk. The provocation was given by the citizen, and a scuffle ensued, in which the soldier was beaten. On the 5th of the month, the soldiers while under arms were pressed upon and insulted, and dared to fire. One of them, who had received a blow, fired at the aggressoi, and a single discharge from six others succeeded. Three of the citizens were killed, and five dangerously wounded. The town was instantly thrown into the greatest commotion, the bells were rung, and the general cry was “to arms.” In a short time several thousands of the citizens had assembled, and a dreadful scene of blood must have ensued, but for the promise of Governour Hutchinson, that the affair should be settled to their satisfaction in the morning. Captain Preston, who com- manded the soldiers, was committed with them to prison. Up- on their trial the captain and six soldiers were acquitted; two were convicted of manslaughter. For several subsequent years the evening of the day on which this outrage was committed was commemorated by the citizens of Boston, and the event gave oc- casion to addresses the most warm and patriotick, which served to waken up, and increase the spirit of the revolution. Section IX, 1773. The recommendations of meetings and associations to suspend the impor- tation of tea, had been so strictly complied with, that but little had been brought into the country. The consequence was, that vast quantities, se- venteen millions of pounds, had accumulated upon the hands of the East India Company.— For their relief, the parliament now authorized them to export this tea into any part of the world, free of duty. By this regulation, tea would come cheaper to the colonies than before it had been made a source of revenue—parliament having, 14 158 PERIOD W....1775..1783....REVOLUTION. in 1767, reduced the duty on it to three pence a pound. . - Confident of now finding a market for their tea in America, the East India Company freight- ed several ships with that article for the different colonies, and appointed agents to dispose of it. On the arrival of this tea, however, the determi- nation of the colonists was formed—they would not pay even three pence by way of duty. The consequence was, that cargoes of tea, sent to New-York and Philadelphia, were returned without being entered at the custom house; and those sent to Charleston, S. C. were stored, but not offered for sale. . In Massachusetts, a different fate awaited it. Upon its arrival, the inhabitants endeavoured to procure its return, but this being impracticable, the tea having been consigned to the relations and friends of the royal governour, Hutchinson, they resolved to destroy it. Accordingly, a num- ber of persons, dressed like Indians, repaired to the ships, and discharged three hundred and forty-two chests of tea into the water, without, however, doing any other damage. . Section X. Intelligence of these proceedings was, on the 7th of March, 1774, communicated in a message from the throne to both houses of Parliament. The excitement was peculiarly strong. In the spirit of revenge against Massa- chusetts, and particularly against Boston, which was considered as the chief seat of rebellion, a bill was broughtforward, called the “Boston port bill,” by which the port of Boston was precluded from the privilege of landing and discharging, or of loading and shipping goods, wares, and iner PERIOD v.1775..1783....REvolution. 159 A second bill, which passed at this time, es- sentially aitered the charter of the province, making the appointment of the council, justices, judges, &c. dependent upon the crown, or its agent. A third soon followed, authorizing and directing the governour to send any person in- dicted for murder, or any other capital offence, to another colony, or to Great Britain for trial. Section XI. On the arrival of these acts, the town of Boston passed the following vote: “That it is the opinion of this town, that, if the other colonies come into a joint resolution to stop all importation from Great Britain and the West Indies, till the act for blocking up this harbour be repealed, the same will prove the salvation of N. America and her liberties.” Copies of this vote were transmitted to each of the colonies. As an expression of their sympathy with the people of Boston in their distress, the house of burgesses in Virginia ordered that the day, on which the Boston port bill was to take effect, should be observed as a day of fasting and prayer x Obs. The words Whigs and Tories were, about this time, in- troduced as the distinguishing names of parties. By the former, was meant those who favoured the cause of Boston, and were zealous in supporting the colonies against the parliament: by the latter, was meant be favourers of Great Britain. Section XII. During these transactions in Massachusetts, measures had been taken to con- vene a Continental Congress. On the 4th of Sept. 1774, deputies from eleven colonies met at Philadelphia, and elected Peyton Randolph, the then late speaker of the Virginia Assembly, asident, and Charles Thompson, secretary. After considerable debate, it was agreed that each colony should have one equal vote. 160 PERIOD v.1775.1783. Revolution. Having settled the manner of voting, the con gress proceeded to the discharge of the high trust committed to them. They agreed upon a de- claration of their rights, recommended the non- importation of British goods into the country, and the non-exportation of American produce to Great Britain, so long as their grievances were unredressed—voted an ºddress to his Majesty— and likewise one to the people of Great Britain, and another to the French inhabitants of Ca- nada. This congress, having finished their business in less than eight weeks, dissolved themselves, after recommending another congress to be convened on the 10th of May ensuing, unless the redress of their grievances should be pre- viously obtained. - Although the power of this congress was only advisory, their resolutions were approved, not only by the people, but also by the authorities, whether established, or provincial, and exerted a commanding influence in consummating that union among the colonies, which had been in- creasing with their grievances. The name by which the above congress is generally known is “the Continental Congress.” It consisted of fifty-five mem. hers, one half of whom were lawyers. After the arrival of the delegates from North Carolina, twelve colonies were repre- sented. - w 3. º 2. Section XIII. An assembly was ordered by Gov. Gage, of Massach:Isetts, to convene Oct. 5th ; but before that period arrived, judging their meeting inexpedient, he counteracted the writs of convocation, by a proclamation. The assembly however, to the number of ninety. met at Šalem, where the governour not attend. ing, they adjourned to Concord. Here they PERiod v.ing...ites. Revolution. 161 chose John Hancock president, and, after ad- journing to Cambridge, drew up a plan for the immediate defence of the province, by enlisting men, appointing general officers, &c, . In November, this provincial congress met again, and re. so ved to get in readiness twelve thousand men to act in any emergency; and that one fourth part of the militia should be enlisted as minute-men. At the same time, a request was for warded to Connecticut, New-Hampshire, and Rhode-Island, jointly to increase this army to twenty thousand men. Section XIV. Early the next year, Jan. 7th, 1775, Lord Chatham, Mr. Pitt, after a long re- tirement, resumed his seat in the house of Lords, and introduced a conciliatory bill, the object of which was, to settle the troubles in America. But the efforts of this venerable and peace-making man wholly failed, the bill being rejected by a majority of sixty-four to thirty- two, without even the compliment of lying on the table. , , , , The rejection of this bill was followed the next day by the introduction of a bill, which finally passed, to restrain the trade of the New-England provinces, and to forbid their fishing on the banks of Newfoundland. Soon after, restrictions were im- posed upon the middle and southern colonies, with the excep- tion of New-York, Delaware, and North Carolina. This bill, designed to promote disunion among the colonies, happily ſailed Thus we have given a succinct account of the system of measures adopted by the ministry of England toward the American colonies after the peace of '63—measures most unfeeling and ust; but which no petitions, however respect- and no remonstrances, however loºd, ild change. Satisfied of this, justice p *d the people, and self-respect and sel KW. The crisis, th 14*. 162 PERIOD W.1775..1783...BEVOLUTION. arrived, the signal of war was given, and the blood shed at Leavington opened the scene. Gen. Gage, the king’s governour of Massa- chusetts, learning that a large quantity of mili- tary stores had been deposited by the provin- cials, at Concord, detached Lieut. Col. Smith, and Major Pitcairn, with eight hundred grena- diers, to destroy them. On their arrival at Lexington, on the morning of the 19th of April, 1775, seventy of the militia, who had hastily assembled upon an alarm, were under arms, on the parade. Eight of these were without pro- vocation killed, and several wounded. The greatest precaution was taken by Governour Gage, to prevent the intelligence of this expedition from reaching the country. Officers were dispersed along the road to intercept expresses, who might be sent from Boston. But the precaution proved ineffectual. The alarm was given, and was rapidly spread by means of church bells, guns, and volleys. º The slaughter of the militia at Lexington was extremely wan. ton. Major Pitcairn, on seeing them on the parade, rode up to them, and, with a loud voice, cried out, “ disperse, disperse you rebels; throw down your arms and disperse.” The sturdy yeomanry not immediately obeying his orders, he approached nearer, discharged his pistol, and ordered his soldiers to fire. From Lexington, the detachment proceeded to Concord, and destroyed the stores. After killing several of the militia, who came out to oppose them, they retreated to Lexington with some loss, the Americans firing upon them from behind walls, hedges, and buildings. - - `. Fortunately for the British, here Lord Percy met them, with a reinforcement of nine hundred men, some marines, and two field-pieces. Still annoyed by the provincials, they continued their retreat to Bunker's Hill, in Charlestown, and the day ſo; lowing crossed over to Boston. The British lost, in killed, and wounded, during their absence, two hundred and seventy-ſhº The loss of the Americans amounted to eighty-eight kille" wounded, and missing. tion XVI. Such was the affair at Le ton, the first action that opened the war of . reRiod v.1775.1783. Revolution. 163 officers with indignation: they could not endure that an undisciplined multitude, that “a flock of Yankees,” as they contemptuously named the Americans, should have forced them to turn their backs. On the contrary, the result of the day immeasurably increased the courage of the Americans. The tidings spread ; the voice of war rung through the land, and preparations were every where commenced to carry it for- ward. 3. % - The provincial Congress of Massachusetts, being in session at this time, despatched a mi- nute account of the affair at Lexington, to Great Britain, with depositions to prove that the Bri- tish troops were the aggressors. In conclusion, they used this emphatic language: “Appealing to Heaven for the justice of our cause, we deter- mine to die, or be free.” w The congress, at the same time, resolved that a levy should be made in the province of thirteen thousand six hundred men. This force being raised was soon after joined by troops from New-Hampshire, Connecticut, and Rhode- Island, and an army of thirty thousand men assembled in the environs of Boston. Section XVII. As the war had now begun, and was likely to proceed, it was deemed im- portant to secure the fortresses of Ticonderoga and Crown Point. Accordingly, a number of volunteers from Connecticut and Vermont, un- der command of Col. Ethan Allen, and Col. Benedict Arnold, marched against Ticonderoga, , on the 10th of May, took it by surprise, the rison being asleep. The fortress of Crown 2ndered shortly after. l of Allen at Ticonderoga, he demand % what authority ºn asked the commander. “I de- 164 PERIOD v.1775.1783. Revolution. mandit,” said Allen, “ in the name of the Great Jehovah, and of the Continental Congress.” The summons was instantly obeyed, and the fort was, with its valuable stores, surrendered. Section XVIII. The taking of Ticonderoga and Crown Point was soon followed by the memorable Battle of Bunker’s Hill, as it is usually called, or of Breed's Hill, a high emi- nence in Charlestown, within cannon-shot of Boston, where the battle was actually fought, June 17th. . The evening preceding, a detachment of one thousand Ame. ricans were ordered to make an intrenchment on Bunker's Hill; but, by some mistake, they proceeded to Breed's Hill, and by the dawn of day, had thrown up a redoubt eight rods square, and four feet high. : - On discovering this redoubt in the morning, the British com- menced a severe cannonade upon it, from several ships and floating batteries, and from a fortification on Copp's Hill, in Boston, which was continued until afternoon. The Americans, however, never intermitted their work for a moment, and du- ring the forenoon, lost but a single man. % . Between twelve and one o’clock, three thousand British un- der command of Major Gen. Howe, and Brigadier Gen. Pigot, crossed Charles River, with an intention to dislodge the Ame- ºricans. :- * As they advanced, the British commenced firing at some dis- tance from the redoubt; but the Americans reserved their fire, until the enemy were within twelve rods. They then opened, and the carnage was terrible. The British retreated in preciº pitate confusion. They were, however, rallied by their officers, being, in some instances, pushed on by their swords, and were again led to the attack. The Americans now suffered them to approach within six rods, when their fire mowed them down in heaps, and again they fled. Unfortunately for the Americans, • their ammunition here failed; and, on the third charge ºf the British, they were obliged to retire, after having obstinately re- sisted even longer than prudence admitted. The British lost in this engagement two hundred and twenty-six killed, among whom was Major Pitcairn, who first lighted the torch of war at Lexington, and eight hundred and twenty-eight wounded. Th; Americans lºst one hundred and thirty-nine killed, and of wounded and missing there were three hundred and fourteen, Among the killed was the lamented Gen. Warren, # PERIOD v.1775..1783...Revolution. 165 ... The horrours of this scene were greatly increased by the con- dagration of Charlestown, effected, during the heat of the battle, by the orders of Gen. Gage. By this wanton act of barbarity, two thousand people were deprived of their habitations, and property to the amount of one hundred and twenty thousand pounds sterling perished in the flames. “Wanton, however, as the burning of Charlestown was, it wonderfully enhanced the dreadful magnificence of the day. To the volleys of musketry and the roar of cannon; to the shouts of the fight- ing and the groans of the dying; to the dark and awful at- mosphere of smoke, enveloping the whole peninsula, and illu- mined in every quarter by the streams of fire from the various instruments of death; the conflagration of six hundred buildings added a gloomy and amazing grandeur. In the midst of this waving lake of flame, the lofty steeple converted into a blazing pyramid, towered and trembled over the vast pyre, and finished the scene of desolation.” . . & To the Americans, the consequences of this battle were those of a decided victory. They learned that their enemies were not invulnerable. At the same time, they learned the importance of stricter discipline, and greater preparations. As the result of the battle spread, the national pulse beat still higher, and the arm of opposition was braced still more firmly. < . Section XIX. The second continental con- gress met at Philadelphia, on the 10th of May. As military opposition to Great Britain was now resolved upon by the colonies, and had actually commenced, it became necessary to fix upon a proper person to conduct that opposition. The person unanimously selected by congress was George Washington, a member of their body, from Virginia. . & % . General Washington, in his reply to the President of Con- #ress, who announced to him his appointment, after consenting, so enter upon the momentous duty assigned him, added: “But lest some unlucky event should happen unfavourable to my re- utation, I begit may be remembered, by every gentleman in om, that I this day declare with the utmost sincerity, ot think myself equal to the command I am honoured with. As to pay, sir, I beg leave to assure the congress, tna # * Dwight's Travels. 166 PERIon v.1775..1783....REvolution. no pecuniary consideration could have tempted me to accept this arduous employment, at the expense of my domestic ease and happiness, I do not wish to make any profit from it. I will keep an exact account of my expenses. Those I doubt not they will discharge, and that is all I desire.” A special commission was drawn up and presented to him, as commander in chief of the American forces; on presenting it, congress unanimously adopted this resolution: “that they would maintain and assist him, and adhere to him with their lives and fortunes in the cause of American liberty.” Following the appointment of General Washington, was the appointment of four Major-Generals, Artemas Ward, Charles Lee, Philip Schuyler, and Israel Putnam; and eight Brigadier Generals, Seth Pomeroy, Richard Montgomery, David Wooster, William Heath, Joseph Spencer, John Thomas, John Sullivan, and Nathaniel Greene. . Section XX. Gen. Washington, on his arrival at Cambridge, on the second of July, was re- ceived with joyful acclamations by the American army. He found them stretched from Roxbury to Cambridge, and thence to Mystic river, a dis- tance of twelve miles. The British forces oc- cupied Bunker and Breed's hill, and Boston Neck. -- * . The attention of the commander in chief was immediately di. rected to the strength and situation of the enemy, and to the m: troduction of system and union into the army, the want of which pervaded every department. This was a delicate and difficul: attempt, but the wisdom and firmness of Washington removed every obstacle, and at length brought even independent freemen, in a good degree, to the controul of military discipline. Section XXI. While Washington was em. ployed in organizing his army and preparing for future operations, an important expedition * The whole sum which, in the course of the war, passed through his hande amounted only to fourteen thousand four hundred and sevenº". pounds sterling. After Gen. Washington's elevation to the presidenº . intinued to send to the comptrollers of the treasury an an. expenses, which, in some years, amounted to thirty-one s. As the salary fixed by law for that office was no.” funds five thousand dollars, the excess he paid out of his prival” fittº, PERIOD v.1775.1783. Revolution. 167, was planned against Canada, the charge of which was assigned to Gens. Schuyler and Montgomery. On the 10th of September, one thousand Ame- rican troops landed at St. Johns, the first British post in Canada, one hundred and fifteen miles north of Ticonderoga, but found it advisable to retire to the Isle aux Noix, twelve miles south of St. Johns. Here the health of Gen. Schuyler obliged him to return to Ticonderoga, and the command devolved on Gen. Montgomery. This enterprising officer, in a few days, returned to the investment of St. Johns, and on the 3d of November, received the surrender of this import- ant post. * * . On the surrender of St. Johns, five hundred regulars and one tundred Canadians became prisoners to the provincials. There were also taken thirty-nine pieces of cannon, seven mortars, and five hundred stands of arms. - Gen. Montgomery next proceeded against Montreal, which, without resistance, capitulated. From Montreal he rapidly proceeded towards. Quebec. º Before his arrival, however, Col. Arnold, who had been despatched by Gen. Washington with one thousand American troops from Cambridge, had reached Quebec by the way of the Kenne- beck, a river of Maine,—had ascended the heights of Abraham, where the brave Wolfe ascended be-, fore him; but had found it necessary to retire to a place twenty miles above Quebec, where he was waiting for the arrival of Montgomery. Seldom was there an expedition attempted during the Ameri- 'an war, in which more hardship was endured, or more untiring ºrseverance manifested, than in this of Arnold's. In ascending & nebeck, his troops were constantly obliged to work. an impetuous current, and often to haul their batteaux up, rents and over dangerous falls. Nor was their march e country, by an unexplºred route of three hund ficult or dangerous. They had swamps and woods, º:- * - º º, W....1775....1783,...,REVOL UTIO N. 168 mountains and precipices alternately to surpass. Added to their other trials, their provisions failed, and, to support life, they were obliged to eat their dogs, cartouch boxes, clothes and shoes. While at the distance of one hundred miles from human habitations, they divided their whole store, about four pints of flour to a man. At thirty miles distance, they had baked and eaten their last pitiful morsel. Yet the courage and fortitude of these men continued unshaken. They were suffering for their country’s cause, were toiling for wives and children, were con- tending for the rights and blessings of freedom. After thirty one days of incessant toil through a hideous wilderness, they reached the habitations of men. - Dec. 1st, Montgomery having effected a junc- tion with Arnold, commenced the siege of Que- bec. After continuing the siege nearly a month to little purpose, the bold plan was adopted of attempting the place by scaling the walls. Two attacks were made, at the same time, in different quarters of the town, by Montgomery and Ar- mold. The attempt, however, proved unsuccess. ful, and, to the great loss and grief of America, fatal to the brave Montgomery. He fell while attempting to force a barrier, and with him fell two distinguished officers, Capt. M'Pherson, his aid, and Capt Cheeseman. - After this repulse, Arnold retired about three miles from Quebec, where he continued encamp- ed through a rigorous winter. On the return of spring, 1776, finding his forces inadequate to the reduction of Quebec, and not being reinforced, he retired. By the 18th of June, the Americans, having been compelled to relinquish one post after another, had wholly evacuated Canada. The garrison of Quebec consisted, at the time of the above at- tack, of about one thousand five hundred men; the American orces were near eight hundred. The loss of the Americans in ind wounded was about one hundred, and three hundred n prisoners. . . . . . . , , , th of General Montgomery was deeply iboth º British parliament displayed their eloquence in praising his tues and lamenting his fall,” Congress directed a monument to be erected to his memory, expressive of their sense of his high matriotism and heroick conduct. ^ * 3: . . . Section XXII. During this year, 1775, Virgi- nia, through the indiscretion of lord Dunmore, the royal governour, was involved in difficulties little short of those to which the inhabitants of Massachusetts were subjected. From the ear- liest stages of the controversy with Great Bri- tain, the Virginians had been in the foremost rank of opposition, and, in common with other provinces, had taken measures for defence. These measures for defence, the royal govern- our regarded with an eye of suspicion, and at- tempted to thwart them by the removal of guns and ammunition, which had been stored by the people in a magazine. The conduct of the go, vernour roused the inhabitants, and occasioned intemperate expressions of resentment. Appre- nending personal danger, lord Dunmore retired on board the Fowey man of war, from which he issued his proclamations, instituting martial law, and proffering freedom to such slaves as would leave their masters, and repair to the royal stand- ard. Here, also, by degrees, he equipped and armed a number of vessels, and, upon being re- fused provisions by the provincials, from on shore, he proceeded to reduce the town of Norfolk to ashes. The loss was estimated at three hundred thousand pounds sterling. Nearly six thousand persons were deprived of their habitations. a thought it prudent to retire, and seek safety on bot war. Royal government generally terminated th it the country, the king's governours, for the most overnments, and ta sing r º a on h 170 PERIOD v.1775.1783...REvoluTION. _ Section XXIII. Early in the spring of 1776, Gen. Washington contemplated the expulsion of the British army from Boston, by direct assault. In a council of war, it was deemed expedient, however, rather to take possession of, and tortify Dorchester Heights, which commanded the har bour and British shipping. The night of the 4th of March was selected for the attempt. Ac- cordingly, in the evening a covering party of eight hundred, followed by a working party of twelve hundred, with entrenching tools, took pos- session of the Heights, unobserved by the ene- my. f Here they set themselves to work with so much activity, that by morning, they had con- structed fortifications which completely sheltered them. The surprise of the British cannot easily be conceived. The English admiral after ex- amining the works, declared that, if the Ameri- cans were not dislodged from their position, his vessels could no longer remain in safety in the harbour. It was determined, therefore, by the British, to evacuate Boston, which they now did, and on the 17th, the British troops, under command of lord William Howe, successor of Gen. Gage, sailed for Halifax. General Wash- ington, to the great joy of the inhabitants, army, and nation, immediately marched into the town. The rear guard of the British was scarcely out of the town, when Washington entered it on the other side, with colours displayed, drums beating, and all the forms of victory and tri- umph. He was received by the inhabitants, with demonstr; tions of joy and gratitude. Sixteen months had the people suſ. ſered the distresses of hunger" and the outrages of an insolent sº visions had been so searce in Bostºn, that a PERIOD v.1775.1783. Revolution. 171 ºThe town presented a melancholy spectacle, at the time the army of Washington entered. One thousand five . ists, with their families, had just departed on board the British flee, tearing themselves from home and friends, for the love of the royal cause. Churches were stripped of pews and benches for fuel, shops were opened and rifled of goods to clothe the army, and houses had been pillaged by an unfeeling soldiery. . Section XXIV. While affairs were proceed- ing thus in the north, an attempt was made, in June and July, to destroy the fort on Sullivan's Island, near Charleston, S. C. by Gen. Clinton and Sir Peter Parker. After an action of up- wards of ten hours, the British were obliged to retire, having their ships nearly torn to pieces, and with a loss of two hundred killed and wounded. The loss of the Americans was but ten killed, and twenty-two wounded. ...; $ 3, §§ The fort was commanded by Col. Moultrie, whose garrison consisted of but three hundred and seventy five regulars, and a few militia. On the fort was mounted twenty-six cannon of eighteen and nine pounders. The British force consisted of two fifty gun ships, and four frigates, each of twenty-eight guns, besides several smaller vessels, with three thousand troops on oard. By this repulse of the British, the southern states ob- - ; d a respite from the calamities of war for two years and a Among the American troops who resisted the British, in their attack on fort Moultrie, was a sergeant Jasper, whose name has been given to one of the counties in Georgia, in commemoration of his gallant deeds, and who deserves an honourable notice in every history of his country. In the warmest º of the con- test, the flag staff was severed by a cannon ball, and the . #. fell to the bottom of the ditch, on the outside of the works. Th accident was considered, by the anxious inhabitants in Charles- as putting an end to the contest, by striking the Ame º to the enemy. The moment Jasper made the disco le flag had fallen, he jumped from one of the embrasu duck eight shillings and two É pound. Asheep cost thirty-five ; percord, and finally was not to be pro- pence, a º the parapet, where he supported it until ano * The subsequent activity and enterprise of this patriot induce Col. Moultrie to give him a sort of roving conmission, to go an cºme at pleasure, confident that he was always usefully em- ployed, . He was privileged to select such men from the regi- ºnt as he should choose, to accompany him in his enterprises. His parties consisted generally of five or six, and he often re- turned with prisoners, before Moultrie was apprised of his ab- sence. Jasper was distinguished for his humane treatment when an enemy fell into his power. His ambition appears to have been limited to the characteristicks of bravery, humanity, and usefulness to the cause in which he was engaged. By his *unning and enterprise, he often succeeded in the capture of thºse who were lying in ambush for him. He entered the Bri- tish lines, and remained several days in Savannah, in disguise, and, after informing himself of their strength and intentions, re. turned to the American camp with useful information to his commanding officer. º . . . . In one of these excursions, an instance of bravery and hu- manity is recorded, by the biographer of General Marion, which could not be credited if it was not well attested. While he was examining the British camp at Ebenezer, all the sympa- thy of his heart was awakened by the distresses of a Mrs. Jones, whose husband, an American by birth, had taken the king's protection, and been confined in irons for deserting the roya, cause, after he had taken the oath of allegiance. Her well founded belief was, that nothing short of the life of her husband would atone or the offence with which he was charged. An- ticipating the awful scene of a beloved husband expiring on the gibbet, had excited inexpressible emotions of grief and distrac- tion. Jasper secretly consulted with his companion, Serjeant Newton, whose feelings for the distressed jº and her child were equally excited with his own, upon the practicability of releasing Jones from his impending fate. Though they were unable to suggest a plan of operation, they were determined to watch for the most favourable opportunity, and make the effort. The departure of Jones and several others, all in irons, to Savannah, for trial, under a guard, consisting of a serjeant, or poral, and eight men, was ordered upon the succeeding, nº ing. Within two miles of Savannah, about thirty yards ºn 1 road, is a spring of fine water, surro º §º gº remodvins...ites. Revolution. their enterprise. They accordingly passed the guard, and cor cealed themselves near the spring. When the enemy came up, they halted, and two of the guard only remained with the prisoners, while the others leaned their guns against trees in a careless manner, and went to the spring, Jasper and Newton sprung from their place of concealment, seized two of the muskets, and shot the sentinels. The posses- sion of all the arms placed the enemy in their power, and com- pelled them to surrender. The irons were taken off from the prisoners, and arms put into their hands. The whole party ar- rived at Perrysburg, the next morning, and joined the American camp. There are but few instances upon record where personal exertions, even for self-preservation from certain prospects of death, would have induced a resort to an act so desperate of execution; how much more laudable was this, where the spring to action was roused by the lamentations of a female unknown to the adventurers | - Subsequently to the gallant defence at Sullivan's Island, Col. Moultrie’s regiment was presented with a stand of colours by Mrs. Elliot, which she had richly embroidered with her own hands; and, as a reward of Jasper’s particular merits, Govern- our Rutledge presented him with a very handsome sword. Du- ring the assault against Savannah, two officers had been killed and one wounded, endeavouring to plant these colours upon the enemy’s parapet of the Springhill redoubt. Just before the re- treat was ordered, Jasper endeavoured to replace them upon the works, and while he was in the act, received a mortal wound and fell into the ditch. When a retreat was ordered, he recol- lected the honourable condition upon which the donor presented the colours to his regiment, and among the last acts of his life, succeeded in bringing them off. Major Horry called to see him soon after the retreat, to whom, it is said, he made the following communication. “I have got my furlough. That sword was presented to me by Governour Rutledge, for my services in the defence of fort Moultrie. Give it to my father, and tell him I have worn it with honour. If he should weep, tell him his son died in the hope of a better life. Tell Mrs. Elliot that I lost my life, sup- porting the colours which she presented to our regiment. It should ever see Jones, his wife and son, tell them that Jas- is gone, but that the rememberance of the battle, which ught for them, brought a secret joy to his heart w stop its motion forever.” He expired a few PERIOD W.1775..1783....REVOLUTION. Section XXV. During these transactions in the south, the continental congress was in ses- sion, intently observing the aspect of things, and deeply revolving the probable issue of the pre- sent important contest. The idea of independ- ence had now been broached among the people, and the way was, in a measure, prepared to bring the subject before the congress. - Accordingly, on the 8th of June, Richard Henry Lee, one of the deputies from Virginia, rose and made a motion to declare America free and independent. Mr. Lee addressed the house on this motion, and concluded as follows: “Why then do we longer delay, why still deliber- ate? Let this most happy day give birth to the American re- publick. Let her arise, not to devastate and conquer, but to re-establish the reign of peace and of the laws. The eyes of Europe are fixed upon us; she demands of us a living example of freedom, that may contrast, by the felicity of the citizens, with the ever increasing tyranny which desolates her polluted shores. She invites us to prepare an asylum, where the unhap- py may find solace, and the persecuted repose. She entreats us to cultivate a propitious soil, where that generous plant, which first sprang up and grew in England, but is now withered by the poisonous blasts of Scottish tyranny, may revive and flourish, sheltering under its salubrious and interminable shade, all the unfortunate of the human race. * . . . . . . . . . . This is the end presaged by so many omens, by our first victories, by the present ardour and union, by the flight of Howe,” and the pestilence which broke out amongst Duº- more's people, by the very winds which baffled the enemy's fleets and transports, and that terrible tempest which ingulphed seven hundred vessels upon the coast of Newfoundland. If we are not this day wanting in our duty to our country, the names * alludi, # to the evacuation of Boston by the British, und º º man of war, as noticed page 16 , onboard of whi , and t *… of his squadron, a pestilential malady broke out, which earºº - the crowd, both white and black, which had throng" id inmore, the royal governour file American legislators will be placed, by posterity, at th side of those of Theseus, of Lycurgus, of Romulus, of Numa, of the three Williams of Nassau, and of all those whose memory has been, and will be for ever dear to virtuous men, and good The deputies of Pennsylvania and Maryland not being present, and congress being desirous, by some delay, to evince the maturity of their deliberations, adjourned the further considera- tion of the subject to the first of July. . . . . On the arrival of the day assigned, the sub- ject was resumed, and on the 4th of July, 1776, upon the report of Thomas Jefferson, John Adams, Benjamin Franklin, Roger Sherman, and Philip Livingston, the thirteen confederate colonies dissolved their allegiance to the British crown, and declared themselves Free and Inde- pendent, under the name of the Thirteen Uni- ted States of America. After specifically enumerating the wrongs received, and de- claring these to be sufficient grounds for a separation, they sol- emnly and deliberately proceeded to the act of separation, in the words following: . “We, therefore, the representatives of the United States of America, in general congress assembled, appealing to the Su- preme Judge of the world, for the rectitude of our intentions, and by authority of the good people of these colonies, solemnly publish and declare, That these united colonies are, and of right ought to be, free and independent states; that they absolved from all allegiance to the British crown, and that all political connection between them and the state of Great Britain is, and ought to be, totally dissolved; and that as free and in- dependent states, they have full power to levy war, conclude e, contract alliances, establish commerce, and to do all other acts and things, which independent states may of rig And for the support of this declaration, with a firm relian rotection of Divine Providence, we mutually ple ir lives, our fortunes, and our. sacred honour.” º Who Colººseº Cººººººººººººººº. John Hancock, President, from Massachusetts. . . . New-Hampshire. James Smith, Josiah Bartlett, George Taylor, William Whipple, James Wilson, Matthew Thornton. George Ross. ... : :::::: Massachusetts. Delaware. Samuel Adams, Caesar Rodney, . John Adams, George Read. Robert Treat Paine, § Maryland Elbridge Gerry. Samuel Chase, w Rhode-Island. William Paca, Stephen Hopkins, Thomas Stone, ..º. William Ellery. Charles Carroll of Carrollton, Connecticut. - Virginia. Roger Sherman, George Wythe, Samuel Huntington, Richard Henry Lee, William Williams, Thomas Jefferson, Oliver Wolcott. Benjamin Harrison, &º.3 New-York. Thomas Nelson, Jun. William Floyd, Thomas Lightfoot Lee, | Philip Livingston, Carter Braxton. º Francis Lewis, North Carolina. Lewis Morris. . William Hooper, New-Jersey. Joseph Hewes, Richard Stockton, * John Penn. º • John Witherspoon, South Carolina. Francis Hopkinson, i Edward Rutledge, John Hart, § Thomas Hayward, Jun. Abraham Clark. Thomas Lynch, Jun. Pennsylvania. Arthur Middleton. Robert Morris, . Georgia, Benjamin Rush, Button Gwinnett, Benjamin Franklin, Lyman Hall, John Morton, George Walton. George Clymer, º This declaration was received by the people with º: of joy. Public º took place in various parts of the Union. In New-York, the statue of George III. was taken down, and the lead, of which it was composed, was converte into musketballs. In Boston, the garrison was drawn up in King's street, which from that moment, took the name of State- street, and thirteen salutes, by thirteen detachments, into which the troops were formed, were fired; the bells of the town wº in token of felicitation, and the evening concluded in pieces, and burning, the ensigns of rºyº" ~. . ia, the exultation exceeded description. On learn- ing the measures of Congress, the Virginia convention immedi- ately decreed, that the name of the king should be suppressed in all the publick prayers. They ordained that the great seal of the commonwealth should represent Virtue as the tutelary genius of the province, robed in drapery of an Amazon, rest- ing one hand upon her lance, and holding with the other a sword, trampling upon tyranny, under the figure of a prostrate man, having near him a crown, fallen from his head, and bear- ing in one hand a broken chain, and in the other a scourge. At the foot was charactered the word Virginia, and round the effigy of virtue was inscribed:—Sic semper tyrannis. The reverse represented a group of figures; in the middle stood Liberty, with her wand and cap ; on one side was Ceres, with a horn of plenty in the right hand, and a sheaf of wheat in the left; upon the other appeared Eternity, with the globe and the phoenix. At the foot were found these words:–Deus nobis haic otia fe- cit. . . . . . . Section XXVI. Soon after the evacuation of Boston by the British troops, Washington, be- lieving that the possession of New-York would be with them a favourite object, determined to make it the head quarters of his army, and there- by prevent their occupation of it, if such a step had been contemplated. . Accordingly, he soon oved to that city with the principal part of Section XXVII. ºr June, C William Howe, with the army which had e ated Boston, arrived from Halifax, off Sa Hook. Here he was soon after joined by his In Virgini h a reinforcement. Their combine four thousand. On th ed near the Narrow ostilities, Admiral and Gen. I 178 PERIOD v.1775..1783. REVOLUTION. Great Britain and the colonies. But, not ad dressing Washington by the title due to his rank, he thought proper to decline receiving their com- munication. It appeared, however, that the power of these commissioners extended little farther than, in the language of their instruc- tions, “to grant pardons to such as deserve mercy.” Section XXIX. The American army, in and near New-York, amounted to seventeen thou- sand two hundred and twenty-five men, a part of whom were encamped near Brooklyn, on Long-Island. On the 27th of August, this body of the Americans, under command of Brigadier Gen. Sullivan, were attacked by the British, un- der Sir Henry Clinton, Percy, and Cornwallis, and were defeated with the loss of upwards of a thousand men, while the loss of the British amounted to less than four hundred. Gen. Sul. livan, and Brigadier Generals Lord Sterling and Woodhull, fell into the hands of the British, as prisoners. . tº In the heat of the engagement, Gen, Washington had cro se * over to Brooklyn from New-York, and on seeing some of his best troops slaughtered, or taken, he uttered, it is said, an ex clamation of anguish. But deep as his anguish was, and much as he wished to succour his troops, prudence forbad the calling in of his forces from New-York, as they would, by no means. have sufficed to render his army equal to that of the English. Section XXX. After the repulse at Brooklyn, perceiving the occupation of his position on Long- Island to be of no probable importance, Wash; ington withdrew his troops to New-York, and soon after evacuated the city, upon which, on the 12th of October, the British entered it. Seldom, if ever, was a retreat conducted with more * PERIOD v.1775..1783....Revolution. 179 parations having been made, on the 29th of August, at . in the evening, the troops began to move in the greatest silence. But they were not on board their vessels before eleven. A vio- lent northeast wind and the ebb tide, which rendered the cur- rent very rapid, prevented the passage. The time pressed, however. Fortunately, the wind suddenly veered to the north- west. They immediately made sail, and landed in New-York, Providence appeared to have watched over the Americans. About two o'clock in the morning, a thick fog, and at this sea- son of the year extraordinary, covered all Long-Island, whereas the air was perfectly clear on the side of New-York. Notwith- standing the entreaties of his officers, Washington remained the last upon the shore. It was not till the next *: when the sun was already high, and the fog dispelled, that the English perceived the Americans had abandoned their camp, and were sheltered from pursuit. . . gº. §§ {} Washington with a part of his troops, retired to White Plains, where he entrenched himself with great care. Here, on the morning of the 28th of September, he was attacked by Gene- rals Clinton and Heister. The loss in the ac- tion on each side, was several hundred.—But neither party could claim any decided advan- While Washington was retiring from New- Work, Sir William Howe seized the opportunity to reduce Fort Washington, on the Hudson, then under the command of Col. Magaw. Nov. 16th, the English forces invested the fort, and after a evere contest, which continued nearly all day, Col Magaw, his ammunition mostly exhausted, surrendered the fort, it about two thousand seven hundred men as prisoners war. The surrender of Fort Washington was followed short- er, by the surrender of Fort Lee, on the Jersey shore, the ion XXXI. Washington, having crossed rth River, tended by circumstances of deep depression. The Americans had just lost two thousand seven hundred men in Fort Washington; numbers of the militia were daily claiming to be discharged, and some of the leading characters, both in New- Jersey and Pennsylvania, were changing sides, and making peace with the enemy. In this season of general despondency, congress recommend- ed to each of the States, the observance of a “day of solemn fasting and humiliation before God.” At the same time they called upon the States to furnish militia to reinforce the continent- al army, now so enfeebled as scarcely to amount to three thou- sand men. Soon after, one thousand five hundred Pennsylva- nian militia joined the American standard. Section XXXII. Notwithstanding the general aspect of affairs, on the part of America, was thus forbidding, the continental congress, so far from betraying symptoms of despair, manifested more confidence than ever; and, as if success must eventually crown their enterprises, calmly occupied themselves in drawing up various ar- ticles of confederation, and perpetual union be- tween the States. . Such articles were obviously necessary, that the line of distinction between the powers of the respective States, and of congress, should be exactly defined. In this way, only, would col- lisions be avoided, and the peace and harmony of the union be preserved. . Accordingly, such articles were now digested, and at the sitting of congress, Oct. 4th, 1776, were signed by all the members, and copies im: mediately sent to the respective assemblies of each State for approbation. The principal ar- ticles of confederation were the following. . “They all and each obligate themselves to contribu e for the 1.1775..1783....Revolution 181 ating its internal government, and of framing laws in all mat- ters, not included in the articles of confederation, and which would not be prejudicial to it. . “No particular State was either to send, or to receive ambas- sadors, enter into negotiations, contract engagements, form al- liances, or make war, except in the case of sudden attack, with any king, prince or power, whatsoever, without the consent of the United States. . . . . . “No individual, holding any magistracy, office, or commis- sion, whatsoever, from the United States, or from any of them, was allowed to accept of any presents, or any office, or title of any kind whatsoever, from any foreign king, prince, or poten tate. . z : “No assembly was to confer titles of nobility. § “No State was to make alliances or treaties of what kind so- ever, with another, without the consent of all. , “Each particular State had authority to maintain, in peace as well as war, the number of armed ships and of land troops, judged necessary, by the general assembly of all the States, and 110 ºn Ore., & " . . . . . . . “There shall be a publick treasury for the service of the con- federation, to be replenished by the particular contributions of each State; the same to be proportioned according to the num- ber of inhabitants, of every age, sex, or condition, with the ex- ception of Indians. “A general congress was to be convoked every year, on the first Monday of November, to be composed of deputies from al the States; it was invested with all the powers that belonged to the sovereigns of other nations.” These powers were exactly “Every individual holding any office, and either wa salary, or emolument whatsoever, was thereby excluded congress. ; : * * * * N. • º “There was to be a council of state composed of c ne deputy from each province, nominated annually by his colleagues, of the same State, and in case these should not agree, by the gene. ral congress.” Each State was to have but one vote. 182 PERIOD v.1775.1783. Revolution. surprised and took prisoners, on the following day, about one thousand Hessians, then in the service of the British. Having secured these prisoners on the Pennsylvania side of the Dela- ware, he marched to Princeton, and attacked a party of British, who had taken refuge in the college. About sixty of the enemy were killed, and three hundred made prisoners. & The successes at Trenton and Princeton re- vived the desponding friends of independence. During the month of December, a melancholy gloom had overspread the United States. These successes, however, seemed to brighten the pros- pect, and promise better things. Washington now retired to Morristown, where his army were nearly all inoculated with the small pox, that disease having appeared among the troops, and rendering such a measure necessary. The dis- ease proved mortal but in few instances, nor was there a day in which the soldiers could not, if called upon, have fought the enemy. Section XXXIV. On the opening of the cam- paign of 1777, the army of Washington, although congress had offered to recruits bounties in land, and greater wages, amounted to little more than seven thousand men. Towards the latter end of May, Washington quitted his winter encamp- ment at Morristown, and, about the same time, the royal army moved from Brunswick, which they had occupied during the winter. Much shifting of the armies followed, but no definite plan of operation had apparently been settled Previous to PERIOD v.1775.1783. Revolution, 188 with no resistance they reached Danbury on the 26th of April, and destroyed one thousand eight, hundred barrels of beef and pork, and eight hundred of flour, two thousand bushels of grain, clothing for a regiment, one hundred hogsheads of rum, and one thousand seven hundred and ninety tents. Besides the destruc- tion of these articles, the enemy wantonly burned eighteen hous- es with their furniture, murdered three unoffending inhabitants, , and threw them into the flames. Generals Sullivan, Wooster, and Arnold happening to be in the neighbourhood, hastily collected about six hundred militia, with whom they marched in pursuit, in a heavy rain, as far as Bethel, about two miles from Danbury. On the morning of the 27th of April, the troops were divided, Gen. Wooster with about three hundred men, falling in the rear of the enemy, whil Arnold took post in front, at Ridgefield. : Gen. Wooster proceeded to attack the enemy, in which en- gagement he was mortally wounded, and from which his troops were compelled to retire. At Ridgefield, Arnold warmly re- ceived the enemy on their retreat, and although repulsed, return- ed to the attack the next day on their march to the Sound. Find- ing themselves continually annoyed by the resolute and courage- ous yeomanry of the country through which they passed, they hastened to embark on board their ships, in which they sailed for New-York. Their killed, wounded, and missing, amounted to about one hundred and seventy; the loss of the Americans was not admitted to exceed one hundred. Gen. Wooster, now in his seventieth year, lingered with his wounds until the 2d of May. Congress resolved that a monument should be erected to his memory. To Gen. Arnold they presented a horse, properly caparisoned, as a reward for his gallantry on the occasion. At length, the British General Howe, leaving New-Jersey embarked at Sandy Hook, with sixteen thousand men, and sailed for the Chesa- peake. On the 14th of August, he landed his troops, at the head of Elk river, in Maryla It being now obvious that his design wa jº le, its 184 PERIOD v.1775..1783. Revolution. engagement, which continued nearly all day, the Americans were compelled to retire. The loss of the Americans in this action was estimated at three hundred killed, and six hundred wounded. Between three and four hundred, principally the wounded, were made Prisoners. The loss of the British was stated at less than one hundred killed, and four hundred wounded. • Not considering the battle of Brandywine as decisive, con gress, which was sitting in Philadelphia, recommended to the commander in chief to risk another engagement; preparations for which were accordingly made. Sept. 16th, the two armies drew near to each other, and the advance guards began to skirmish, when they were separated by a heavy rain, which rendered the musketry and ammunition of the armies wholly unfit for action. - Section XXXV. An easy access to Philadel- phia was now presented to the enemy, and on the 26th, Howe entered the place without mo- lestation. The principal part of the British army was stationed at Germantown, six miles from Philadelphia. Congress adjourned to Lancaster, and Washington encamped at eigh- teen miles distance from Germantown. Section XXXVI. Immediately after the oc- cupation of Philadelphia, the attention of Gen. Howe was drawn to the reduction of some forts on the Delaware, which rendered the naviga- tion of that river unsafe to the British.-Ac- cordingly, a part of the royal army was detach- ed for that purpose. Washington seized the opportunity to attack the remainder at German- This attack was made Oct. 4th, but, after a severe action, the Americans were repulsed with loss of double that of the British. The loss PERIOD V.1775..1788...REvol. JTION. 185 After this action, the British removed to Philadelphia, where they continued long inac- tive.' Washington retreated to Skippack creek, and there encamped. Great was the chagrin of Washington, on account of the re- pulse at Germantown, which was much increased by the auspi- cious commencement of the battle, and the flattering prospect of a speedy and complete victory. The ultimate failure of the Americans was attributed to the inexperience of a part of the troops, and to embarrassments arising from a fog which increas- ed the darkness of the night. Congress, however, expressed their approbation of Washington's plan of attack, and highly applauded the courage and firmness of the troops. Section XXXVII. While such was the pro- gress of military operations in the middle States, important events were taking place in the north. It has already been noticed, that in May, 1775, Ticonderoga and Crown Point had been taken by surprise, by Colonels Allen and Ar- nold ; that in the ensuing fall, Gen. Montgom- ery had reduced the fort of St. John's, captured Montreal, and made an ineffectual, though des- perate assault upon Quebec. . On the return of spring, the American army gradually retired up the St. Lawrence, and af tér a loss of one post and another, in June, 1776, entirely evacuated Canada. "in the spring of irº, it was settled in Eng land that an invasion of the States should be tempted from the north, and a communication formed between Canada and New-York. ( § ously have precluded intercourse between England and t more southern States. . . of the plan was committed 186 PERIOD W ...1775,...1783...,REVOLUTION, thousand troops, besides a powerful train of ar. tillery, and several tribes of Indians.” &º Section XXXVIII. On the 1st of July, Bur- goyne landed and invested Ticonderoga. The American garrison here amounted to three thou- sand men, under command of Gen. St. Clair, an officer of high standing. x Deeming this force inadequate to maintain the post, especially as Burgoyne had taken pos- session of Mount Defiance, which commanded Ticonderoga, and not having provisions to sus. tain the army for more than twenty days, St. Clair perceived no safety for the garrison but in a precipitate flight. Accordingly, on the night of the 5th, Ticonderoga was abandoned. By a circuitous march, St. Clair continued to retreat, first into Vermont, although closely pursued, and thence to Hudson river, where, after having lost one hundred and twenty pieces of artillery, with a great quantity of military stores, he joined Gen. Schuyler, commanding the main army of the north. After this junction, the whole army continued to retire to Saratoga and Stillwater, and at length took post on Van Shaick's Island, in the mouth of the Mohawk, on the 18th of Au- ;er the taking of Ticonderoga, Gen. Bur- goyne, with the great body of his troops, pro- ceeded up the lake, and destroyed the American flotilla and a considerable quantity of baggage and stores, which had been deposited at Skeens- borough. Having halted at this place for nearly PERIOD v.1775.1783....REvolution. 187 three weeks, he proceeded to Fort Edward, on the Hudson, where he did not arrive until July 30th, his way having been obstructed by Schuy- ler's army, which felled a great number of trees across the road, and demolished the bridges, while on their retreat... . . Section XXXIX. While Gen. Burgoyne lay at Fort Edward, a detachment of his army of five hundred English and one hundred Indians, under Col. Baum, who had been sent to seize at magazine of stores at Bennington, in Vermont, was totally defeated, and Col. Baum slain, by a }. of Vermont troops called Green Mountain oys, and some New-Hampshire militia, under command of Gen. Stark. Baum, on his arrival near Bennington, learning that the Americans were strongly entrenched at that place, halted, and despatched a messenger to Gen. Burgoyne, for a reinforcement. Gen. Stark, now on his march with a body of New-Hamp- shire militia, to join Gen. Schuyler, receiving intelligence of Baum's approach, altered his movement, and collected his force at Bennington. - - - Before the expected reinforcement could arrive, Gen. Stark, having added to his New-Hampshire corps a body of Vermont militia, determined to attack Baum in his entrenchments. Ac- cordingly, on the 16th of August, an attack was made, which re- sulted in the flight of Baum's detachment at the mo ment in which thereinforcement of troops, despatched by Gen. Burgoyne, ed. With the assistance of these, the battle was now renewed ended in the discomfiture of the British forces, and with a loss, on their part, of about seven hundred in killed and wounded. The loss of the Americans was about one hundred. Section XL. The battle at Benningtong ly revived the courage of the America greatly disappointed the hopes of Gen. Bl and served materially to embarrass 8 188 PERIOD v.1775.1783. Revolution. dence being not a little difficult to determine To retreat was to abandon the object of his ex". pedition; to advance seemed replete with diffi. culty and danger. This latter step, however, at length appeared the most judicious. . . . . . Accordingly, on the 13th and 14th of Sep- tember, he passed the Hudson, and advanced upon Saratoga and Stillwater. On the 17th, his army came nearly in contact with that of the American, now commanded by Gen. Gates, who had succeeded Schuyler, August 21 ; some skir- mishing ensued, without bringing on a general battle. § . . . . . . Two days after, the two armies met, and a most obstinate, though indecisive engagement ensued, in which the Americans lost, in killed and wounded, between three and four hundred, and the British about six hundred. : On the 7th of October, the battle was renew- ed, by a movement of Gen. Burgoyne towards the left of the Americans, b ich he hoped to effect his retreat to the lakes. The battle was extremely severe ; and darkness only put an end. ºf , * * to the effusion of blood. . & During the night which succeeded, an attempt was made by the royal army to retreat to Fort Edward.—While preparing to march, intelli- gence was received that this fort was already in possession of the Americans. No avenue to escape now appeared open. Worn down with constant toil and watching, and having ascer- tained that he had but three days’ provisions, a council of war was called, which unanimously after settled, an J. : nd seven hundred effect: PERIOD W.1775..1783....REVOLUTION. 189 ive men, surrendered prisoners of war on the 17th of October. Gen. Gates, immediately after the victory, de- spatched Col. Wilkinson, to carry the happy tidings to Congress. On being introduced into the hall of congress, he said, “The whole Bri. tish army has laid down arms at Saratoga: our sons, full of vigour and courage, expect your or- ders: it is for your wisdom to decide where the country may still have need of their services.” Among the romantick incidents of real life, few surpass the adventures of the Baroness de Reidesel and Lady Harriet Ack- land, two ladies who had followed the fortunes of their hus- bands, the Baron de Reidesel and Major Ackland, officers in the army of Gen. Burgoyne, the latter of whom was wounded in the battle of the 9th of October. On the 7th of October, says the Baroness de Reidesel, out misfortunes began. I was at breakfast with my husband, and heard that something was intended. On the same day I ex- pected Generals Burgoyne, Phillips, and Fraser, to dine with us. I saw a great movement among the troops; my husband told me it was merely a reconnoissance, which gave me no concern, as it often happened. I walked out of the house, and met several Indians in their war dresses, with guns in their hands. When I asked where they were going, they cried out, War ! War! meaning that they were going to battle. This filled me with apprehension; and I had scarcely got home, before 1. heard the reports of cannon and musketry, which grew louder by degrees, till at last the noise became excessive. About four o'clock in the afternoon, instead of the guests whom I expected, Gen. Fraser' was brought on a litter, mortally wounded. The table, which was already set, was removed, and a bed placed, in its stead, for the wounded gene- ral. I sat trembling in a corner; the noise grew louder, and the alarm increased; the thought that my husband m * bro in the same manner, was terrible ought in wounded, in 190 w PERIOD v.1775.1783....REvolution, Tion Poor GENERAL Burgoyne Oh My poor wire P He was asked if he had any request to make, to which he replied: “IF GENERAL BURGoyNE would perMIT it, HE should liks To BE BURIED AT 6 o'clock IN THE EvKNING, on THE Top of A MoUNTAIN, IN A REdoubt, which HAD BEEN BUILT THERE.” I did not know which way to turn; all the other rooms were full of sick. Towards evening, I saw my husband coming; then I forgot all my sorrows, and thanked God that he was spared to me. He and his aid-de-camp ate, in great haste, with me, behind the house. We had been told, that we had the advantage of the enemy; but the sorrowful faces I beheld told a different tale; and, before my husband went away, he took me one side, and said every thing was going very bad; that I must keep myself in readiness to leave the place, but not to mention it to any one. I made the pretence that I would move, the next morning, into my new house, and had every thing packed up ready. .x. .x. Lady H. Ackland had a tent, not far from our house, n which she slept, and the rest of the day she was in the camp. All of a sudden, a man came to tell her, that her husband was mortally wounded, and taken prisoner; on hearing this, she pecame very miserable; we comforted her, by telling her, that the wound was only slight, and, at the same time, advised her to go over to her husband, to do which she would certainly ob tain permission; and then she could attend him herself. She was a charming wºman, and very fond of him., I spent much of the night in comforting her, and then went again to my chil- dren, whom I had put to bed. I could not go to sleep, as I had General Fraser, and fall; the other wounded gentlemen, in my room; and I was sadly afraid my'children would awake, and by their crying, disturb, the "dying man, in his last moments, who often addressed me; and apologized “for the trouble he About three o'clock in the morning, I was told that he could not hold out much longer; I had desired to be informed of the near approach of this sad crisis, and 1 then wrapped up my children in their clothes, and went with them into the room below.— About eight o'clock in the morning, he died. After he was laid out, and his corpse wrapped up in a sheet, we came again into the room, and had this sorrowful sight before us, the whole 3. 3. . . . .3.3 -::::-----------> to add to the melancholy scene, almost every mº: officer of my acquaintance was brought in won ommenced again; a retrea smallest motion was made the afternoon, I saw t PERIOD v.1775.1783. Revolution. 191 knew that General Burgoyne would not refuse the last request of General Fraser, though, by his acceding to it, an unneces- sary delay was occasioned, by which the inconvenience of the army was increased. At six o'clock, the corpse was brought out, and we saw all the generals attend it to the mountain; the chaplain, Mr. Brude- mell, performed the funeral service, rendered unusually solemn and awful, from its being accompanied by constant peals from the enemy’s artillery. Many cannon balls flew close by me, but I had, my eyes directed towards the mountain, where my husband was standing, amidst the fire of the enemy, and, of course, I could not think of my own danger. General Gates afterwards said, that if he had known it had been a funeral, he would not have permitted it to be fired on. As soon as the funeral service was finished, and the grave of Gen. Fraser was closed, an order was issued that the army should retreat. My calash was prepared, but I would not con- sent to go before the troops. Major Harnange, although suf. fering from his wounds, crept from his bed, as he did not wish to remain in the hospital, which was left with a flag of truce, When Gen. Reidesel saw me in the midst of danger, he ordered my women and children to be brought into the calash, and in- timated to me to depart, without delay. I still prayed to re- main; but my husband, knowing my weak side, said, “well then, your children must go, that, at least, they may be safe from danger.” I then agreed to enter the calash with them, and we set off at eight o'clock. The retreat was ordered to be conducted with the greatest silence. Many fires were lighted, and several tents left standing. We travelled continually du- ring the night. At six o'clock in the morning, we halted, which surprise of all. General Burgoyne had the cannon ranged and prepared for battle. This delay seemed to displease every body; for, if we could only have made another good march, we should have been in safety. My husband, quite exhausted with fatigue, came into my calash, and slept for three hours. Du- ring that time, Capt. Wilde brought me a bag full of bank notes, and Capt. Geisman his elegant watch, a ring, and a § º purse full of money, which they requested me to take and whi ch I promised to do to the utmost of my power. the enemy was in sight. It proved to be only ing party of two hundred men, who might eas if Gen Burgoyne had given 192 PERIOD v.1775.1785. Revolution. through and through with rain, and, in that state, I had to re- main the whole night, having no place to change it; I however got close to a large fire, and at last lay down on some straw. At this moment, General Phillips came up to me, and I asked him why we had not continued our retreat, as my husband had promised to cover it, and bring the army through P “Poor dear woman,” said he, “I wonder how, drenched as you are, you have still the courage to persevere, and venture further in this kind of weather. I wish,” continued he, “you was our commanding general. General Burgoyne is tired, and means § to halt here to-night, and give us our supper.” On the morning of the 9th, at ten o’clock, General Burgoyne ordered the retreat to be continued, and caused the handsome houses and mills of General Schuyler to be burnt; we marched however but a short distance, and then halted. The greatest misery at this time prevailed in the army, and more than thirty officers came to me, for whom tea and coffee were prepared, and with whom I shared all my provisions, with which my calash was in general well supplied; for I had a cook who was an excellent caterer, and who often, in the night, crossed small rivers, and foraged on the inhabitants, bringing in with him sheep, small pigs, and poultry, for which he often forgot to pay, though he received good pay from me, as long as I had any, and he was, ultimately, handsomely rewarded. Our provisions now failed us, for want of proper conduct in the commissary's department, and I began to despair. … º, º sº About two o'clock in the afternoon, we again heard a firing of cannon and small arms; instantly all was in alarm, and every thing in motion. My husband told me to go to a house not far off. I immediately seated myself in my calash, with my children, and drove off; but, scarcely had we reached it, before I discovered five or six armed men, on the other side of the Hudson. Instinctively I threw my children down in the calash, and concealed myself with them. At that moment the fellows fired, and wounded an already wounded English soldier, who was behind me. Poor fellow ! I pitied him exceedingly, but, at that moment, had no power or means to relieve him. A terrible cannonade was commenced by the enemy, which was directed against the house in which I sought to obtain shelter for myself and children, under the mistaken idea that all the generals were in it. Alas! it contained none but wounded and women; we were at last obliged to resort to the cellar for re- fuge, and, in one corner of this, I remained th children sleeping on the earth, with their hea in the same situation I passed a sleepless night, Eleven them roll away. One poor soldier, who was lying on a table, for the purpose of having his leg amputated, was struck by a shot, º carried away his other leg. His comrades had left him, and, when we went to his assistance, we found him in a corner of the room, into which he had crept, more dead than alive, scarcely breathing. My reflections on the danger to which my husband was exposed now agonized me exceedingly, and the thoughts of my children, and the necessity of struggling for their preservation alone sustained me. . :- - I now occupied myself through the day in attending to the wounded; I made them tea and coffee, and often shared my dinner with them, for which they offered me a thousand expres- sions of gratitude. One day a Canadian officer came to our cellar, who had hardly the power of holding himself upright, and we concluded he was dying for want of nourishment. I was happy in offering him my dinner, which strengthened him, and procured me his friendship. I now undertook the care of Major Bloomfield, another aid-de-camp of Gen. Phillips, who had received a musket ball through both cheeks, which in its course, had knocked out several of his teeth, and cut his tongue. He could hold nothing in his mouth; the matter which ran from his wound almost choked him, and he was not able to take any nourishment, except a little soup or something liquid. We had some Rhenish wine; and, in the hope that the acidity of it would cleanse the wound, I gave him a bottle of it; he took a little now and then, and with such effect, that his cure soon followed; and thus I added another to my stock of friends, and derived a satisfaction, which, in the midst of sufferings, served to tranquillize me, and diminish their acuteness. . . . One day, General Phillips accompanied my husband, at the risk of their lives, on a visit to us, who, after having witnessed our situation, said to him, “I would not, for ten thousand guineas, come again to this place, my heart is almost broken In this horrid situation we remained six days. A cess of hostilities was now spoken of, and eventually took place convention was afterwards agreed upon; but one day a messa was sent to my husband, who had visited me, and was repº in my b, §§ l, to attend a council of war, where it was prope reak the convention, but, to my great joy, the major r adhering to it. On the 16th, however, my husb arms, and gave themselves up prisoners of war, and now, the good woman, who had supplied us with water, at the haze her life, received the reward of her services; each of us threw a handful of money into her apron, and she got altogether about twenty guineas. At such a moment as this, how susceptible is the heart of feelings of gratitude!" º, ºr º ºx My husband sent a message to me, to come over to him with my children. I seated myself, once more, in my dear calash, and then rode through the American camp. As I passed on, I observed (and this was a great consolation to me) that no one eyed me with looks of resentment, but that they all greeted us, and even showed compassion in their countenances, at the sight of a woman with small children. I was, I confess, afraid to go over to the enemy, as it was quite a new situation to me. When I drew near the tents, a handsome man approached and met me, took my children from the calash, and hugged and kissed them, which affected me almost to tears. “You tremble,” said he, addressing himself to me, “be not afraid.” “No,” I answered, “you seem so kind and tender to my children, it in- spires me with courage.” He now led me to the tent of Gen. Gates, where I found Generals Burgoyne and Phillips, who were on a friendly footing with the former. Burgoyne said to me, “Never mind, your sorrows have now an end.” I an- swered him that I should be reprehensible to have any cares, as he had none, and I was pleased to see him on such a friendly footing with General Gates. All the generals remained to dine with General Gates. - tº The same gentleman, who received me so kindly, now came and said to me, “You will be very much embarrassed to eat with all these gentlemen; come with your children to my tent; * > there I willprº pare for you a frugal dinner, and give it with a free will.” fº. #. ARE CERTAINLY A HUSBAND AND A FArHER, you have shown me so much kindness. I now found that he was GENERAL Schuyler. He treated me with excellent smoked tongue, beef steaks, potatoes, and good bread and butter. Never could I have wished to eat a better dinner. F was content. I saw all around me were so likewise; and, what was better than all, my husband was out of danger. When we had dined, he told me his residence was at Alba ºne house, where I was to remain, he turned back agai the house I found a French surgeon, who had under his care a Brunswick officer, who was mortally wounded, and died some days afterwards. A ;: * The Frenchman boasted much of the care he took of his pa- tient, and perhaps was skilful enough as a surgeon, but other- wise was a mere simpleton. He was rejoiced when he found I could speak his language, and he began to address many empty and impertinent speeches to me; he said, among other things, he could not believe that I was a general's wife, as he was cer- tain a woman of such rank would not follow her husband. He wished me to remain with him, as he said it was better to be with the conquerers than the conquered. I was shocked at his impudence, but dared not show the contempt I felt for him, be- cause it would deprive me of a place of safety. Towards eve- ning he begged me to take a part of his chamber. I told him I was determined to remain in the room with the wounded offi- cers; whereupon he attempted to pay me some stupid com ments. At this moment the door opened, and my husban his aid-de-camp entered. I then said, “Here, Sir, is my band;” and at the same time eyed him with scorn, whereu he retired abashed, nevertheless, he was so polite as to offer chamber to us. º Some days after this we arrived at Albany, where we so often wished ourselves, but we did not enter it as we expected we should, victors' We were received by the good General Schuyler, his wife, and daughters, not as enemies, but kind. iends; and they treated us with the most marked attention d politeness, as they did General Burgoyne, who * il Schuyler's beautifully finished house º i. d with y hus- his behaved like persons of exalted minds, who dete mined to bury all recollection of their own injuries, in th templation of our misfortunes. General Burgoyne wº with General Schuyler's generosity, and said to him. was the fate of war,” replied the brave & * about it.” 196 PERIOD v.1775.1783. Revolution. the beginning of the year 1776. In the course of that cam- paign, she traversed a vast space of country, in different ex tremities of the season, and with difficulties, of which an Euro pean traveller cannot easily conceive. In the opening of the campaign, in 1777, she was restrained from offering herself to a share of the fatigue and hazard ex- H. before Ticonderoga, by the positive injunctions of her husband. The day after the conquest of the place he was bad. ly wounded, and she crossed Lake Champlain to join him. As soon as he recovered, Lady Harriet proceeded to follow nus fortunes through the campaign; and at Fort Edward, or at the next camp, she acquired a two wheel tumbril, which had been constructed by the artificers of the artillery, something similar to the carriage used for the mail, upon the great roads in England. Major Ackland commanded the British grenadiers, which were attached to Gen. Fraser’s corps; and consequently were always the most advanced part of the army. They were often so much on the alert, that no person slept out of his clothes. One of their temporary encampments, a tent in which the ma- jor and Lady Harriet were asleep, suddenly took fire. An or- derly sergeant of grenadiers, with great hazard of suffocation, dragged out the first person he caught hold of. It proved to be the major. It happened that, in the same instant, she had, un- knowing what she did, and perhaps not perfectly awaked, pro- videntially made her escape, by creeping under the walls of the tent. The first object she saw, upon º of her sens- es, was the major on the other side, and in the same instant, again in the fire in search of her. The serjeant again saved him, but not without the major's being very severely burnt in his face, and different parts of his body. Every thing they had with them in the tent was consumed. * This accident happened a little time before the army crossed the Hudson, 18th Sept. It neither altered the resolution or cheerfulness of Lady Harriet; and she continued her progress, a partaker of the fatigues of the advanced corps. The next call upon her fortitude was of a different nature, and more distress ing, as of longer suspense. On the morning of the 19th of Sept. the grenadiers being liable to action at every step, she had been directed by the major to follow the route of the artillery and baggage, which were not exposed. At the time the action be gan, she found herself near an uninhabited hut, where she alight ed. When it was found the action was becoming general, the surgeon of the hospital took possession of the convenient for the first care of the PERIOD v.1775.1785. Revolution. 197 the post of her husband, at the head of the grenadiers, that he was in the most exposed part of the action. She had three fe- male companions, the Baroness of Reidesel, and the wives of two British officers, Major Hanage and Lieutenant Reynell; but, in the event, their presence served but little for comfort. Major Hanage was soon brought to the surgeon very badly wounded; and a little time after, came intelligence that Lieut. Reynell was shot dead. Imagination will want no help to figure the state of the whole group. ź : From the date of that action to the 7th of October, Lady Harriet, with her usual serenity, stood prepared for new trials; and it was her lot that their severity increased with their num- ber. She was again exposed to the hearing of the whole action, and, at last, received the word of her individual misfortune, mixed with the intelligence of the general calamity; the troops were defeated, and Major Ackland, desperately wounded, was a prisoner. #3: ... The day of the 8th was passed by Lady Harriet and her companions in uncommon anxiety; not a tent nor a shed being standing, except what belonged to the hospital, their refuge was among the wounded and the dying. . . . . . “When the army was upon the point of moving, I received a message from Lady Harriet, submitting to my decision a propo- sal, and expressing an earnest solicitude to execute it, if not in- terfering with my design, of passing to the camp of the enemy, and requesting Gen. Gates’ permission to attend her husband. “Though I was ready to believe, for I had experienced, that patience and fortitude in a supreme degree, were to be found, as well as every other virtue, under the most tender forms, I was astonished at the proposal. After so long an agitation, exhaust- ed not only for want of rest, but absolutely want of food, drench- ed in rain for twelve hours together, that a woman should be ca- pable of such an undertaking, as delivering herself to the enemy, probably in the night, and uncertain of what hands she might first fall into, appeared an effort above human nature. The as- surance I was enabled to give was small indeed. I had not even. a cup of wine to offer; but I was told she found from some kind and fortunate hand, a little rum and dirty water. A could furnish to her was an open boat, and a few lines, § ection.” / . This letter was as follows Harrie Ackland, a y of the first º usual decision. He was opposed, war er in your hands, that I cannot refuse her request to commit her to your protection. Whatever general impropriety there may be in persons, act- ing in your situation and mine, to solicit favours, I cannot see the uncommon pre-eminence in every female grace and exalta tion of character in this lady, and her very hard fortune, with out testifying that your attentions to her will lay me under obli- gations. . . . . . § a is I am, Sir, . * g . . . . *} 9 % Your obedient servant, - “.. “ J. Burgoyne, is letter did this woman, who was of the most tender and delicate frame, habituated to all the soft elegancies and re- fined enjoyments, that attend high birth and fortune, and far ad- vanced in a state in which the tenderest cares, always due to the sex, become indispensably necessary, in an open boat leave the camp of Burgoyne with a flag of truce for that of the enemy. The night was advanced before the boat reached the shore. Lady Harriet was immediately conveyed into the apartment of Major Henry Dearborn, since Major General, who commanded the guard at that place, and every attention was paid her which her rank and situation demanded, and which circumstances per- mitted. Early in the morning, she was permitted to proceed With th in the boat to the camp, where Gen. Gates, whose gallantry will not be denied, stood ready to receive her, with due respect courtesy. Having ascertained that Major Ackland had set permission, to join ted his exchange, out for Albany, Lady Harriet proceeded, by him. Some time after, Major Ackland and returned to England. The catastrophe of this tale is affect- ing. Ackland, after his return to England, procured a regi- º: and at a dinner of military men, where the courage ofthe icans was made a question, took the negative side with his mth ensued, and he gave shot , fought him, and was arriet lost her senses, and continued which she married Mr. Brudenell, ther wounded husband on Hudson river. , Section XLI. It would be difficult to descr the transports of joy which the news of thes it Lloyd th arriet ed the acknowledgment of their country's inde pendence by France and other European powers. The capitulation of Gen. Burgoyne, at Saratoga, was soon followed by an acknowledgment of the independence of America at the court of France,” and the conclusion of a formal treaty of alliance and commerce between the two countries—an event highly auspicious to the interests of Ame- rica. The treaty was signed Feb. 6th–º nei- ther of the contracting powers to make war or peace, without the formal consent of the other.” For more than a year, commissioners from congress, at the head of whom was Dr. Franklin, had resided at the court of France, urging the above important steps. But the success of the American struggle was yet too doubtful for that country to embroil herself in a war with Great Britain. The capture of the British army at Saratoga seemed to increase the probability that the American arms would finally triumph, and decided France to espouse her cause. Section XLII. Upon the conclusion of the campaign of 1777, the British army retired to winter quarters in Philadelphia, and the Ameri- can army at Valley Forge, on the Schuylkill, fif. teen miles from Philadelphia. x --> *-* > . . . . . . .-- Scarcely were the American troops established in their en- campment, which consisted o , before they were in dang ar that which it might have spared, the inhabitants concealed woods. At this time, also, bills of credit had fallen to one or their nominal value, so that one hundred dollars, in would command no more than twenty-five dollars, in specie. In addition to these scenes of perplexity and suffering, thea was nearly destit omfortable clothing. ry, for w of shoes, walked ź.33: .…. . . . .3 gº while the defenders of the country were thus suffering and pe rishing, the royal army was enjoying all the conveniences which an opulent city afforded. . . , , Section XLIII. On the alliance of America with France, it was resolved in Great Britain immediately to evacuate Philadelphia, and to concentrate the royal force in the city of New- York. In pursuance of this resolution, the royal army, on the 18th of June, passed the Delaware into New-Jersey, and continued their retreat to New-York. . . General Washington, penetrating their design, had already sent forward a detachment to aid the New-Jersey militia, in im- peding the progress of the enemy. With the main body of his army, he now crossed the Delaware in pursuit. June 28th, the two armies were engaged at Monmouth, sixty-four miles from Philadelphia, and after a severe contest, in which the Americans, upon the whole, obtained the advantage, were separated only by night. Gen. Washington and his army reposed on the field of battle, intending to renew the attack in the morning. But the British general, during the night, made good his retreat towards New-York. . x The sufferings of both armies during this engagement, from the heat of the day, were unparalleled in the history of the re- volutionary war. No less than fifty-nine British soldiers pe. rished from heat, and several of the Americans died through the same cause. The tongues of many of the soldiers were so swol len, that it was impossible to retain them in the mouth. The loss of the Americans was eight officers, and sixty-one privates killed, and about one hundred and sixty wounded; that of the British, in killed, wounded, and missing, was three hundred and fifty-eight men, including officers. One hundred were taken prisoners, and one thousand deserted during the march. Section XLIV. On the 1st of July, Count D'Estaingarrived at Newport, R.I. from France, with twelve ships of the line and six frigates, to actin concert with the Americans in an attempt on Rhode-Island, which had been in possession of the British since December, 1776. arrived in sight of Rhode-Island thad entered the harbour of Newport. PERIOD v.1775.1783....REvolution. 201 pearance of Howe, the French admiral, instead of co-operating w with the Americans, sailed out to give him battle. A storm, however, arising, separated the fleets. D'Estaing entered Bos- ton to repair. Howe, after the storm, returned to Rhode-Island, and landed Sir Henry Clinton, with four thousand troops—but, fortunately, the Americans had raised the siege of Newport the day before, and left the island.-Sir Henry Clinton soon after sailed again for New-York. . º Section XLV. Hitherto the conquest of the States had been attempted, by proceeding from north to south; but that order, towards the close of this year, began to be inverted, and the south- ern States became the principal theatre on which the British conducted their offensive operations." . § Georgia, being one of the weakest of the Southern States, was marked out as the first ob- ject of attack, in that quarter of the union. In November, Col. Campbell was despatched from New-York by Gov. Clintor, with a force of two thousand men, against Savannah, the capi- tal of that State. This expedition proved suc- cessful, and Savannah, and with it the State of Georgia itself, fell into the power of the Eng- On the arrival of Campbell and his troops at Savannah, he was opposed by Gen. Howe, the American officer, to whom was intrusted the defence of Georgia. His force, consisting of only 600 continentals, and a few hundred militia, was inade- luate, however, to resist the enemy. After an engagement, in which the Americans killed upwards of one hundred, and took about four hundred and fifty prisoners, with several cannon, and large quantities of military stores, the capital surrendered. § In the succeeding year, 1779, Count D’Estaing, who, repairing his fleet at Boston, had sailed for the We returned with a design to co-operate with the Americans the common enemy. In Sept. he arrived upon the Georgia so unexpectedly that the Experiment, a man of w fifty guns, and three frigates, fell into his hands. As so wn, Gen. Lincoln marched with the ari o . r ſ 2 º indsome militia of South Carolina a to co-operate with him in the reduction of Savannah. Before £incoln arrived, D'Estaing demanded the surrender of the town. This demand, General Prevost, the English commander, re. quested a day to consider, which was incautiously granted. Before the day expired, a reinforcement of eight hundred men joined the standard of Prevost from Beaufort, whereupon he bid 'defiance to D’Estaing. On the afrival of Lincoln, it was de- termined to lay siege to the place. Much time was spent in preparation, but in an assault under D'Estaing and Lincoln, the Americans suffered so severely, both as to their numbers, and in their works, that it was deemed expedient to abandon the project. Count D'Estaing re-embarked his troops, and left the continent. . While the siege of Savannah was pending, one of the most extraordinary enterprises ever related in history, one, indeed, which nothing, but the respectability of the testimony, could have prevented our considering as marvellous, occurred. It was an enterprise conceived and executed by Colonel John White of the Georgia line. A Captain French, of Delancey’s first battalion, was posted with one hundred men, British regu- lars, on the Ogeechee river, about twenty-five miles from Savan- mah. There lay also at the same place five armed vessels, the largest mounting fourteen guns, and having on board altogether forty-one men. Col. White, with Captain Ethohm, three sol diers, and his own servant, approached this post, on the even- ing of the 30th of September, kindled a number of fires, ar- ranging them in the manner of a large camp, and summoned French to surrender, he and his comrades in the mean time riding about in various directions, and giving orders in a loud voice, as if performing the duties of the staff, to a large army. French, not doubting the reality of what he saw, and anxious to spare the effusion of blood, which a contest with a force so superior would produce, surrendered the whole detachment, to- gether with the crews of the five vessels, amºunting in all to one hundred and forty-one men, and one hundred and thirty stands of arms! . . … º Col White had still, however, a very difficult game to play; it was necessary to keep up the delusion of Capt. French, until the prisoners should be secured; and with this view, he pre- tended that the animosity of his troops was so ungovernable, that a little stratagem would be necessary to save the prisoner from their fury, and that he should therefore commit t the care of three guides, with orders to conduct them of safety. With many thanks for the color ccepted the proposition, and marche s, under the direction of three uides, fearf PERIOD W.1775..1783....REVOLUTION. 203 that the rage of White's troops would burst upon them in de- (iance of his humane attempts to restrain them. White, as soon as they were out of sight, employed himself in collecting the militia of the neighbourhood, with whom he overtook his prison- ers, and they were conducted in safety for twenty-five miles, to un American fort.” :: "A . Section XLVI. The campaign of 1779 was listinguished for nothing splendid, or decisive, on the part either of America or England. The British seemed to have aimed at little more than to distress, plunder, and consume, it having been, early in the year, adopted as a prin- ciple upon which to proceed, “to render the co- lonies of as little avail as possible to their new connections.” . - N. Actuated by these motives, an expedition was fitted out from New-York for Virginia, which, in a predatory incursion, took possession of large naval stores, magazines of provisions, and great quantities of tobacco. After enriching them- selves with various kinds of booty, and burning several places, they returned to New-York. Soon after this expedition to Virginia, a simi- lar one, under the command of the infamous Gov. Tryon, was projected against the maritime parts of Connecticut. During this expedition, New-Haven was plundered; East-Haven, Fair- field, Norwalk, and Green's Farms, were wan- tonly burnt. In an account of the devastations made by the English in this expedition, which was transmitted to Congress, it appeared that at Fairfield there were burnt two houses of publick worship, fif- elling houses, eleven barns, and several stores. At Nor- ouses of publick worship, eighty dwelling houses, ins, twenty-two stores, seventeen shops, four mills In addition to this wanton destruction of pro- sixty-seven bar and five vessels. ſº § * Allen's Revolution 204 PERIOD v.1775.1783. Revolution. - s perty, various were the acts of brutality, rapine, and cruelty, committed on aged persons, women, and prisoners. At New. Haven, an aged citizen, who laboured under a natural inability of speech, had his tongue cut out by one of the royal army. At Fairfield the deserted houses of the inhabitants were entered, desks, trunks, closets, and chests, were broken open and robbed of every thing valuable. Women were insulted, abused, and threatened, while their apparel was taken from them. Even an infant was robbed of its clothes, while a bayonet was pointed at the breast of its mother. - About this time General Putnam, who had been stationed with a respectable force at Reading, in Connecticut, then on a visit to his out-post, at Horse Neck, was attacked by Governour Tryon, with one thousand five hundred men. Putnam had only a picket ef one hundred and fifty men, and two field pieces, without horses or drag-ropes. He however placed his cannon on the high ground, near the meeting house, and continued to pour in upon the advancing foe, until the enemy's horse appeared upon a charge. The general now hastily ordered his men to retreat to a neighbouring swamp, inaccessible to horse, while he him- self put spurs to his steed, and plunged down the precipice at the church. : g % - This is so steep, as to have artificial stairs, composed of nearly one hundred stone steps, for the accommodation of worshippers ascending to the sanctuary. On the arrival of the dragoons at the brow of the hill, they paused, thinking it too dangerous to follow the steps of the adventurous hero. Before any could go pound the hill and descend, Putnam had escaped, uninjured by the many balls which were fired at him in his descent; but one touched him, and that only passed through his hat. He pro- ceeded to Stamford, where, having strengthened his picket with some militia, he boldly faced about and pursued Gov. Tryon on While the British were proceeding in these des, lating opera- tions, Gen. Washington was loudly called upon by the suffering inhabitants, for continental troops to resist them; but his cir- cumstances permitted him toº º: s --------------> --- spare but few. Had he listened to their calls, and divided his army conformably to the wishes of the invaded citizens, he would have exposed his whole force to ruin. Choosing rather to hear the reproaches wh some heaped upon him, than to hazard the loss of he kept his army concentrated on both sides of the at some distance from New-York, to prevent, if I * Ramsay. PERIOD W.1775....1783....REVOLUTION. 205 British from possessing themselves of West Point, sixty miles north of New-York, a post which they eagerly coveted, and the possession of which would have given them incalculable advan- tage over that part of the country. & Section XLVII. The exertions of the Ameri- cans, during this campaign, were still more fee- ble than those of the enemy. Scarcely an ex- pedition was planned which merits any notice, and, with the exception of the reduction of Stoney Point, forty miles north of New-York, on the Hudson, scarcely any thing was accom- plished of importance. The reduction of this place July 15th, was one of the most bold enter- prises which occurred in the history of the war. At this time, Stoney Point was in the condition of a real for- tress; it was furnished with a select garrison of more than six hundred men, and had stores in abundance, and defensive pre- parations which were formidable. & g’ Fortified as it was, Gen. Washington ventured an attempt to reduce it. The enterprise was committed to Gen. Wayne, who, with a strong detachment of active infantry, set out towards the place, at noon. His march of fourteen miles, over high moun- tains, through deep morasses, and difficult defiles, was accom- plished by eight o'clock in the evening. - ~ At the distance of a mile from †oint, Gen. Wayne halted, and formed his men into two columns, putting himself at the head of the right. Both columns were directed to march in order and silence, with unloaded muskets and fixed bayonets. At midnight they arrived under the walls of the fort. “An unex. pected obstacle now presented itself: the deep morass, which covered the works, was at this time, overflowed by the tide. The English opened a tremendous fire of musketry and of can- non loaded with grape shot: but neither the inundated morass, nor a double palisade, nor the storm of fire that was poured upon them, could arrest the impetuosity of the Americans; they opened their way with the bayonet, prostrated whatever opposed them, scaled the fort, and the two columns met in the centre of the works. The English lost upwards of six hundred men in killed and prisoners. The conquerors abstained from pillage, and from all disorder; a conduct the more worthy, as they had still present in mind, the ravages and butcheries, which their enemies had so recently committed in Virginia • :- º's ſirginia ami 206 period v.17s...itsa. Revolution. cut, Humanity imparted new effulgence to the victory lour had obtained.” ... . . . . .'; ... … . . ; Section XLVIII. Another expedition, plan- ned and executed this year, entitled to some notice, was one under Gen. Sullivan, against the Six Nations, which, with the exception of the Oneidas, had been induced, by the English, to take up arms against America. At the head of between four and five thousand men, Gen. Sullivan marched into the country, up the Susquehannah, and attacked the Indians, in well constructed fortifications. The resist- ance of the savages was warlike. Being over powered, however, they were obliged to flee. Gen. Sullivan, according to his instructions, proceeded to lay waste their country. Forty villages were consumed, and one hundred and sixty thousand bushels of corn were destroyed. Section XLIX. It has already been stated, that the campaign of 1779 was remarkable for the feeble exertions of the Americans. Among the causes which contributed to lessen their ac- tivity, the failure of the French fleet, in every scheme undertaken for their benefit, was no in- considerable one. America had expected much from an alliance with France, and looked to the French fleet under D'Estaing, to hasten the downfall of British power in the country. But when they perceived nothing equal to their ex- º accomplished, they became despond- ent, and exertion was enfeebled. But another, and a still more powerful cause of these feeble exertions, on the part of the Americans, was the daily depreciation of their bills of credit PERIOD v.1775.1783. Revolution. 207 As the contest between England and America originated in the subject of taxation, it was early perceived, by the continent- al congress, that the imposition of taxes, adequate to the exigen- cies of war, even if practicable, would be impolitick. The only expedient, therefore, in their power to adopt, was the emission of bills of credit, representing specie, under a publick engage- ment, ultimately to redeem those bills, by an exchange of gold or silver. Accordingly, in June, 1775, on the resolution to raise an army, congress issued bills of credit, to the amount of two mil- lions of dollars. This emission was followed, the next month, by the issue of another million. For their redemption, the con- federated colonies were pledged—each colony to provide means to pay its proportion, by the year 1779. . . . . . . . . " In the early periods of the war, the enthusiasm of the people for liberty made them comparatively indifferent to property. The cause was popular, and the publick credit good. Bills of credit, therefore, by common consent, rapidly circulated, and calculations about private interest were, in a great measure, suspended. ” § gº : . . - It was obvious, however, that there was a point, beyond which the credit of these bills would not extend. At the expi- ration of eighteen months from their first emission, when about twenty millions had been issued, they began to depreciate. At first, the diminution of their value was scarcely perceptible, but from that time it daily increased. . . . . Desirous of arresting the growing depreciation, congress at length resorted to loans and taxes. But loans were difficult to negociate, and taxes, in several of the States, could not be col- lected. Pressed with the necessities of an army, congress found themselves obliged to continue to issue bills, after they had begun to depreciate, and to pay that depreciation, by in- creasing the sums emitted. By the year 1780, the amount in circulation was the overwhelming sum of two hundred millions. The progress of this depreciation is worthy of notice—To- wards the close of 1777, the depreciation was two or three for one; in '78, five or six for one; in '79, twenty-seven or twenty- eight for one; in ’80, fifty or sixty for one, in the first four or five months. From this date, the circulation of these oills was limited, but where they passed, they soon depreciated to one hundred and fifty for one, and finally, several hundreds for one. Several causes contributed to sink the value of the continental currency. The excess of its quantity at first begat a natural depreciation. This was increased by the enemy, who counter feited the bills, and spread their forgeries through the State Publick agents, who received a commission to t - * 208 PERIOD v.1775.1783. REvolution their purchases, felt it to be their interest to give a high price for all commodities. These causes, co-operating with the de- cline of publick confidence, and the return of more selfish feel- ings, rapidly increased the depreciation, until bills of credit, or what has been commonly called, “continental currency,” be- came of little or no value. . The evils which resulted from this system were immense. Under it, it became extremely difficult to raise an army, and to provide necessaries for its subsistence. At the same time, it originated discontents among the officers and soldiers, since their pay, in this depreciated currency, was inadequate to the support of their families at home. “Four months pay, of a pri- vate, would not procure his family a single bushel of wheat, and the pay of a colonel would not purchase oats for his horse.” Under circumstances like these, it reflects the highest honour upon Washington, that his wisdom and prudence should have been able to keep an army together. ; : In addition to these evils, which fell so heavily upon the army, others, not less deplorable, fell upon the community. In order to prevent the growing depreciation of their bills, con- gress directed that they should be a legal tender. But this, while it did not much retard the regular diminution of their value, was the source of immeasurable injustice and distress. The aged, who had retired to enjoy the fruits of their indus- try, found their substance but a scanty pittance. The widow was compelled to take a shilling, where a pound was her due, and the orphan was obliged to discharge an executor on the payment of sixpence on the pound. In many instances, the earnings of a long life were, in a few years, reduced to a trifling Suſº. . 3. Had congress foreseen these evils, they would have guarded against them. But it was a day of poverty and experiment. They designed no injustice. They had placed before them the freedom of the country from the yoke of British dominion, and if, in their zeal to effect it, they sometimes erred, the sufferings which resulted from their ignorance have been a thousand times compensated, by the subsequent enjoyments of a free and inde- pendent people. % & & . y Section L. Towards the close of the year 779, Sir Henry Clinton, committing the Eng- ish garrison of New-York to Gen. Kniphausen; barked with a force of between se º sand men, for the reduction c PERIOD v.1775.1783. Revolution. 209 ton, South Carolina, which important object he accomplished on the 12th of May, 1780. After a tempestuous voyage of some weeks, in which severa, transports were lost, the army arrived at Savannah, whence they sailed on their destined purpose. On the 2d of April, 1780, Gen. Clinton “opened his batteries against Charleston. Gen. Lincoln, at this time, commanded the American forces of the south. Urged by the inhabitants, on the approach of the enemy, to continue in Charleston, and assist in repelling the attack, he consented to remain, and, with Gov. Rutledge, in- dustriously forwarded preparations for defence. Notwithstanding these preparations, the batteries of the ene- my soon obtained a decided superiority over those of the town, and left but little reason to the besieged to hope that they should be able to defend the place. A council of war, held on the 21st, agreed that a retreat would probably be impracticable, and ad- vised that offers of capitulation should be made to Gen. Clinton, which might admit of the army's withdrawing, and afford secu- rity to the persons and property of the inhabitants. On the proposal of these terms, they were rejected. Hostili- ties were now renewed by the garrison, and returned with unu- sual ardour by the British. On the 11th of May, finding the longer defence of the place impracticable, a number of citizens addressed Gen. Lincoln, advising him to capitulate. Acquies- cing in the measure, painful as it was, Gen. Lincoln again pre- sented terms of capitulation, which being accepted, the Ameri- can army, amounting to 5000, together with the inhabitants of the place, and four hundred pieces of artillery, were surrendered to the British. . The loss on both sides, during the siege, was nearly equal. Of the royal troops, seventy-six were killed, and one hundred and eighty-nine wounded. Of the Americans, eighty-nine were kill- ed, and one hundred and forty wounded. By the articles of ca- pitulation, the garrison was to march out of town, and to deposit their arms in front of the works, but, as a mark of humiliation, which, eighteen months afterwards, was remembered and re- taliated on Lord Cornwallis at Yorktown, the drums were not to beat a British march, nor the colours to be uncased. "section iſ shortly after the surrender of Charleston, Sir Henry Clinton, leaving four thousand men for the southern service, under !ornwallis, returned to New-York. Bri- rrisons were now posted in different parts e State of South fºolina, to awe the in- 210 PERIOD v.1775.1783. Revolution. habitants, and to secure their submission to the British government. • The spirit of freedom, however, still remained with the people, nor was it easy to subdue that spirit, how much soever it might be temporarily repressed, by royal and oppressive menace. Notwithstanding the efforts of his majesty's servants to preserve quietness, the month of July did not pass by in peace. General Sumpter, a man ardently attached to the cause of liberty, in several engagements in South Carolina, with the English and their partizans, gained great advantages over them, and in one instance, re- duced a regiment—the prince of Wales'—from two hundred and seventy-eight to nine. While Sumpter was thus keeping up the spi- rits of the people by a succession of gallant ex- ploits, a respectable force was advancing through the middle States, for the relief of their south- ern brethren. We shall interrupt the thread of our history to relate the per- sonal adventures of Major General Wadsworth, in the district of Maine, during the spring of this year, 1780. He had been sent by the legislature of Massachusetts, to command in that part of the country. Having attended to the objects of his mis- sion during the summer of ’79, and the principal part of the suc- ceeding winter, he dismissed his troops towards the end of Feb- ruary, and began to prepare for his return to Boston. He had been accompanied during this time by Mrs. Wadsworth, and a friend of hers, Miss Fenno, of that place. His preparations, however, were discovered by a disaffected inhabitant in the neighbourhood, who gave intelligence to the commander of the British fort at Bagaduce, and assured him that the general might easily be made a prisoner. No time was lost. Twenty-five soldiers, with the proper officers, were soon embarked on board a vessel, in which they proceeded to an in- ſet, four miles from the general’s quarters. Here they landed under cover of night, and lying concealed til midnia º . ;: ; Ś * …* heir destined pu º ose. ğ ſº : ground was such as to conce the house. The sentinel, being surprised, PERIOD v.1775..1783....Revolution. 211 spru ng into the kitchen door, and was followed by a volley from the assailants, and by some of the assailants themselves. Ano- ther party, blew in the windows of the General's bed-room, whilst a third party, forcing the windows of Miss Fenno, rushed into her apartment. w The general’s room being barred, he determined to make what resistance he was able. Accordingly, as the assailants ap- proached his apartment, he repeatedly discharged his pistols, a blunderbuss, and fusee. At length a ball from the kitchen broke bis arm, and terminated the contest. % The party, apprehensive of danger, now retired in haste, tak- ing with them the wounded general, but leaving his wife and Miss Fenno, to emotions the most intense. After proceeding with some difficulty near a mile, General Wadsworth was put on a horse, behind a mounted soldier, and being warned that silence alone would ensure his safety, the party at length reach- ed the vessel, which immediately sailed for the fort. Near the close of the day the party arrived with their charge. General Wadsworth landed amidst the shouts of a multitude, which had assembled to see the man, who had justly excited their admiration, by his enterprises in that quarter, and, under a guard, was conducted to the officers' guard room. Here his wounds were dressed; a room in the officers’ barracks was as- signed him, and through the civility of General tºº, the commandant of the fort, who often visited him, his situation was rendered as comfortable as could be expected. General Wadsworth, however, was a prisoner and alone. (Nothing could supply the* of freedom, to which a spirit like his constantly aspired, or of domestick happiness, which, though a soldier of the most ardent stamp, he well knew how to º: Added to this, his wound, during the first two weeks, had become so inflamed as to confine him entirely to his room. * * : & - ------------------...". ----------- At the expiration of this time, he had the happiness to hear from his wife by means of an officer, bearing a flag of truce, who at his request had been despatched by General Campbell with a letter to her, and another to the governour of Massachu- setts. The intelligence he received from Mrs. Wadsworth, of her safety, and tº. of that of his littleson, who he supposed had been killed the night he was taken prisoner—was peculiar- ly gratifying. So far from having been injured, his son had slept amidst all the horrors of the scene, and only knew of the transactions of the dreadful night, by the devastations he around him in the morning. . . . . . . end offive weeks, when his wounds were nearly 1 requested the customary privilege of a parole. §§ 212 PERIOD v.1775.1783...Revolution. cumstances, however, existed which rendered it necessary to deny him, and he acquiesced. About this time Mrs. Wadsworth and Miss Fenno, under protection of a passport from General Campbell, visited him. The visit lasted ten days, to their mu. tual satisfaction. 3. In the mean time, orders respecting him had arrived from the commanding general at New-York. Of the tenor of these or- ders, General Wadsworth was ignorant, but their unpropitious nature was indicated by the change of conduct and counte nance in some of the officers. Miss Fenno had accidentally learned their import, but she carefully concealed her knowledge, until the moment of her departure, when, to prevent suspicion, she barely said, “General Wadsworth, take care of yourself.” From the servants, not long after, he learned that instead of be- ing exchanged, he was to be sent to England. . In the course of some days, Major Benjamin Burton, a brave officer, was conveyed as a prisoner to Bagaduce, and lodged in the same room with General Wadsworth. He confirmed the report of the servants respecting the transportation of the gene- ral to England, and learned, not long after, that he himself was destined to a similar fate. The monitory caution of Miss Fenno was now explained, and the general plainly saw the importance of attending to it. These officers were not long in deciding that they would not cross the Atlantick; and though scarcely a ray of hope presented itself to encourage them, they nevertheless re- solved to attempt to escape. w Bagaduce, on which the fort stands, is a peninsula of mode- rate extent, washed by considerable waters on every side, ex- cept the sandy beach which connects it with the main land of . the west. The fort stands on the middle of the peninsula. The prisoners were confined in a grated room in the officers’ bar- racks. The walls of the fort, exclusively of the depth of the ditch surrounding it, were twenty feet high, with frasing on the top, and chevaux-de-frise below. Sentinels were stationed in every place in and about the fortress, where their presence could be supposed to be necessary. Escape, therefore, seemed al- most impracticable. After several plans proposed by the prisoners for their escape, they settled at length upon the following. As the room in which they were confined was ceiled with boards, they deter. mined to cut off one of these so as to admit their entrance After passing through, they proposed to creep along one of th joists to which these boards were nailed, and z m adjoining it, which belonged to the o me to the middle entry, and then by a blanket, which aken with them, to let themselves down in this entry. PERIOD V.1775..1783....REVOLUTION. 213 In case of being observed, they agreed upon several stratagems to be employed, in order that their attempt might be crowned with success. . … . . - In agreement with this plan, after the sentinel had taken the required precaution in regard to the prisoners, and seen them in bed, General Wadsworth arose, and attempted to make the necessary incision into the board with his knife. But he found the attempt useless, and hazardous, since it could be done nei- ther with the necessary expedition nor without noise. This part of the design was therefore abandoned. He, however, soon found means, through the agency of a soldier, who was his barber, to procure a gimblet without exciting a suspicion as to the purpose for which he intended it. . - On the succeeding night, they made the attempt with their gimblet, but this also occasioned too much noise. They resolved next to make the experiment in the day time; and although two sentinels in walking the entry every moment or two passed by their door, which had a glass window in it, and although they were exposed every hour to the intrusion of their servants, or of the officers of the fort, they succeeded in perforating the ceiling from time to time. The stratagem was simply this. As the sentinels were in the habit of pacing the entry backwards and forwards, the prisoners would commence the same tour in their own room, being careful to keep time with them, and both to pass at the same instant by the glass door; but as the senti- nels had to go twice the length the prisoners had, this afforded an opportunity for one of the latter to be engaged with the gim- blet in the mean time, and then to join his companion as the sentinels came back. - In this manner a sufficient number of holes were bored in the course of three weeks. The small spaces between the holes were cut with a pen-knife, except one at each corner, in order to hold the piece in its proper place, till they were ready finally to remove it. The wounds in the mean time were covered over with a paste made of chewed bread, resembling the colour of the board, and the dust was carefully swept from the floor. All this was done without suspicion from any quarter. & Their conveyance to New-York, or Halifax, and thence to England, was understood to be by a privateer, which was then on a cruise, but was soon expected to return. Their attention of course was arrested by every thing which they heard relative to this vessel, and they made every unsuspicious inquiry i power, concerning the situation of the ſort, the posting imilar subjects. The information, thus adsworth, who had previo 214 PERIOD W.1775..1783....REVOLUTION." knowledge of the place, to form a correct view of the whore During this time they made what little preparations they were able, as to provisions, and other things, that related to their intended escape. At the end of three weeks they were all ready. The privateer was daily expected to return, which would disconcert all their purposes, and they wished nothing more than such an opportunity as a dark and rainy night would afford, in order to their deliverance. During a whole week no such opportunity offered, and, together with this fact, some cir- cumstances, tending to excite a belief that their design was sus- pected, occurred, and rendered their anxiety extreme. At length the favourable occasion was presented. A storm on the 18th of June brought on an unusual degree of darkness and rain. At about eleven o’clock the prisoners retired appa- rently to rest, while the sentinel was looking through the glass door. No sooner, however, were their lights extinguished, than they arose; their first object was to cut the corners of the board, through which they were to make their escape. An hour was spent in accomplishing this purpose, and as it was attended with considerable noise, it was not done without dan- Burton first passed through the aperture. His size rendered it a difficult attempt. The general, although smaller, found even greater difficulty from the weakness of his arm. But the ur- gency of the case induced him to put forth every effort. By means of a chair, on which he stood, and a blanket fastened with a skewer put through the hole, he raised himself through. The noise made by these attempts, and even the cackling of the fowls that roosted above the rooms were unheeded, being drown. ed by the torrents of rain pouring incessantly on the roof of the By agreement, when Burton had reached the middle entry, he was to wait for the general; the latter, however, when hé had gained the place was unable to find him, but judging from appearances that he had escaped through the door, he followed on. Passing partly round the building in order to gain the western side, he felt his way directly under the eaves, lest he should strike against some person, an event to which he was exposed in consequence of the extreme darkness. From this point he made his way towards the neighbouring wall bu had ſo of the ( PERIod v.1775.1783. Revolution. 215 and the words “Relief turn out” were dictinctly sounded. At this instant he heard a scrambling in a contrary direction, which he knew must be made by his companion. This was a critical moment. The general was in danger of being trod on by the guard, as they came around on the top of the wall, and he barely prevented this catastrophe, by getting himself and his wet blanket upon the fraising, which was the outward margin of the wall. . - º After the guard had passed on, by means of his blanket, fastened round a picket of the fraising, he let himself down as near the ground as the length of the blanket would admit, and then let go his hold, and fell without injury. Having made several movements with great silence, in order to clear himself from the works connected with the fort, he at length found himself descending the declivity of the hill, into the open field. All this was done, not without extreme difficulty, owing to the lameness of his arm. No indications appeared that he was as yet discovered. . > As the rain and darkness continued, he groped his way to an old guard house on the shore of the back cove. At this build- ing he and his companion had agreed to meet, should they have been previously separated. Burton, however, after a long search was not to be found. Accordingly the general prepared to cross the cove, and happily succeeded, as the time was that of low water. It was now about two o'clock in the morning, and he had proceeded a mile and a half from the fort. His course lay up a sloping acclivity, which at the time happened to be overspread with trees, a circumstance that greatly impeded his progress. He proceeded a mile over the ground, till he reached the summit, where he found a road, which, however, he soon left for the woods, in order to make his way to the river. Here the day dawned, and he heard the reveillé beat at the fort. At sun-rise he reached the eastern shore of the Penob- scot. Choosing however not to cross the river at that place, he continued his way still higher up at the foot of the bank, passing near the water, so as to have his steps washed by the tide. By this means he hoped to be secure from the blood- hounds kept at the fort. Having reached a place at a distance of seven miles from the fort, where it was necessary for him to cross the river, and where he found a canoe lying on the shore, he concluded to rest for a time, and dry his clothes. While in this situation, what was his joy to descry his friend Burton ap- proaching him, in the very track which he himself had taken. The major, after having passed through the hole in the ceil- iately made his way into the second entry, and con- hat his friend would be unable to pass through the hole, 216 for want of assistance in the room, thought it best to complete his escape alone. He met with little difficulty till the door of the guard room was suddenly opened, and supposing that a dis- covery had taken place, he immediately leaped from the wall; fortunately receiving no injury, though his life was singularly exposed by the leap, he easily escaped into the open ground. Mistaking the ground he ...m. have taken, Burton suddenly found himself near a sentinel, who was one of a picket guard, stationed not far from the isthmus. As however he was not perceived, he found means silently to withdraw from his unwel- come neighbour, and entering the water on the side of the visthmus next the river, he passed over to the opposite side above the picket. This undertaking was hazardous in the extreme, and cost him an hour’s excessive toil. . Chilled and exhausted he then took his way through the forest, which the general had taken before, and by this means rejoined him. The two friends entered the canoe, and as they were in the expectation of being pursued by the enemy, they proposed to cross the river obliquely. While executing this project, a barge belonging to the British came in sight at some distance. Cir- cumstances, however, favoured the concealment of the officers, and by hard rowing they landed out of reach of their pursuers. For greater safety they abandoned the shore, and directed their course through the forests towards the head of St. George's river. A compass which Burton had fortunately retained was their guide. Though greatly incommoded by showers, heat, and the obstructions of a forest, they travelled twenty-five miles by sun-set. . § & & They made less progress however the next day; and on the third day, General Wadsworth, from soreness, lameness, and fa- tigue, proposed to stop where he was, until his friend, by pro- ceeding onward to the nearest settlement, could bring him re- lief. To this plan, however, Burton strenuously objected. ley then both proposed to refresh themselves with a little leep. This they did in the heat of the day, and found the ef- fect so beneficial, that they were invigorated to pursue their journey, which they finished at six o'clock, P. M., by reaching the settlements towards which they had directed their course. The inhabitants flocked around them with the strongest expres- sions of joy, and having formed themselves into a guard for their protection, conducted these officers to an inn, not far from the place where the general was taken prisoner. Parties of the enemy were lurking round in order to way-lay them, and they were saved from falling again into their hands only which was so generously afforded them. But his family. General Wadsworth set out for Schenectady. f wng a § Burn 39 ing Wul R in aken p. 81. P iam's Wur. tives l Torture of Cap PERIOD v.1775.1783.I.Evolution. 217 where he expected to find Mrs. Wadsworth. But she and Miss Fenno had sailed for Boston, before his arrival.., , , He immediately proceeded to join them at that place. On his arrival, he found that they had suffered much from the want of money and friends, besides being nearly shipwrecked on their way. The past however was forgotten in the felicities of the present and in gratitude to a kind Providence, through which they had escaped perils both by sea and land." ' x Section LII. The southern army, now placed under the command of Gates, the hero of Sara- toga—General Lincoln having been superseded, amounted to four thousand; but of these scarcely one thousand were regular troops, the rest con- sisting of militia, from North Carolina, Maryland, alld 3. § # , # % § º . . 2. Virginia. As. this army approached South Carolina, Lord Rawdon, who commanded on the frontier, under Lord Cornwallis, concentrated the royal forces, two thousand in number, at Camden, one hun- dred and twenty miles northwest from Charles- ton. Here Cornwallis, on learning the move- ments of the Americans, joined him. On the morning of the 16th of August, the two armies met, and a severe and general action en sued, in which, through the unpardonable failure of the militia, the British gained a decided ad- vantage. At the first onset, a large body of the Virginia militia, under a charge of the British infantry with fixed bayonets, threw down their arms, and fled. . A considerable part of the North Caro- lina militia followed their unworthy example. But t : nental troops evinced the most unyielding firmness, an forward with unusual ardour. Never did men acquit selves more honourably. They submitted only when f by their brethren in arms, and when overpowered by n In this battle, the brave Baron de Kalb, second at the head of the Marylanders, fell, covered with wounds, º bwights twº. . 19 218 PERIOD V.i.1775..1783....REVOLUTION. by birth, and had formerly served in the armies of the French, In consideration of his distinguished merit, as an officer and soldier, congress resolved that a monument should be erected to his memory at Annapolis. . . - - The battle of Camden was exceedingly bloody. The field of battle, the road and swamps, for some distance, were covered with wounded and slain. The number of Americans killed, although not certain, probably amounted to between six and seven hundred, and the wounded and prisoners to one thou- sand three hundred or one thousand four hundred. The British stated their loss to be only three hundred and twenty four, in killed and wounded; but it was probably much greater. - , Section LIII. “The disaster of the army, un- der Gen. Gates, overspread, at first, the face of American affairs with a dismal gloom; but the day of prosperity to the United States began, as will appear in the sequel, from that moment to dawn. “Their prospects brightened, while those of their enemies were obscured by disgrace, broken by defeat, and, at last, covered with ruin. Elat- ed with their victories, the conquerors grew more insolent and rapacious, while the real friends of independence became resolute and determined.” Section LIV. While the campaign of 1780 was thus filled up with important events in the southern department, it passed away, in the northern States, in successive disappointments, and reiterated distresses. § In June, a body of five thousand of the enemy, under Gen. Kniphausen, entered New-Jersey, and, in addition to plundering the country, wan- tonly burnt several villages. ºn the arrival of this body at Connecticut Farms, a small settlement containing about a dozen houses and a church, they burnt the whole. At this place there resided a presbyterian mi- lister by the name of Caldwell, who had taken a conspicuous part in the cause of freedom, and who had, of course, incurred *he deep displeasure of Gen. Kniphausen. Supposing, how- ever,that the general’s resentment would be confined to him, PERIOD v.1775..1783....REvolution. 219 and that his family would be safe on the approach of the enemy, he hastily withdrew, leaving his wife and children to their mer. cy.” Col. Drayton had previously withdrawn the militia from the place, that there might be no pretext for enormities; but the British soldiers in the American war, did not wait for pretexts to be cruel. Mrs. Caldwell was shot in the midst of her chil- dren, by a villain, who walked up to the window of the room in which she was sitting, and took deliberate aim with his mus- ket. This atrocious act was attempted to be excused as an ac- cident, as a random shot; but the attempt at palliation served only to increase the crime. r & Besides these predatory incursions, by which the inhabitants suffered alarm, distress, and de- struction of property, they suffered greatly, also, from the constantly diminishing value of their paper currency, and from unfavourable crops. The situation of Gen. Washington, often during the war em- barrassing, had been distressing through the winter, in his en- campment at Morristown. The cold was more intense than it had ever been known to be before in this climate, within the memory of the oldest inhabitant. The winter, to this day, bears the distinctive epithet of the hard winter. The army suffered extremely, and often had Washington the prospect before him of being obliged to break up his encampment, and disband his soldiers. : : The return of spring brought little alleyiation to their distress. Great disorder pervaded the departments for supplying the army. Abuses crept in, frauds were practised, and notwithstanding the poverty of the country, economy, on the part of the commissa- ries, was exiled. . In May, a committee from congress visited the army, and re- ported to that body, an account of the distresses and disorders conspicuously prevalent. In particular, they stated, “that the army was unpaid for five months—that it seldom had more than six days’ provisions in advance, and was, on several occasions, for sundry successive days, without meat—that the medical de. partment had neither sugar, coffee, tea, chocolate, wine, nor spi- rituous liquors of any kind; and that every department of the army was without money, and had not even the shadow of cre- * Section LW. But under all this tide of evil there appeared no disposition, in public bodies to purchase their relief by concession. They 220 PERIOD v.1775..1785. Revolution, seemed, on the contrary, to rise in the midst of their distresses, and to gain firmness and strength by the pressure of calamity; Section LVI. Fortunately for the Americans, as it seemed, M. de Ternay arrived at Rhode- Island, July 10th, from France, with a squadron of seven sail of the line, five frigates, and five smaller armed vessels, with several transports, and six thousand men, all under command of Lieutenant General Count de Rochambeau. Great was the joy excited by this event, and high raised expectations were indulged from the as sistance of so powerful a force against the ene- my. But the British fleet, in our waters, was still superior, and that of the French, and the French army, were for a considerable time, in- capacitated from co-operating with the Ameri- cans, by being blocked up at Rhode-Island. The arrival of the French fleet, at Newport, was greeted by the citizens with every demonstration of joy. The town was illuminated, and congratulatory addresses were exchanged. As a symbol of friendship and affection for the allies, Gen. Wash- ington recommended to the American officers, to wear black and white cockades, the ground to be of the first colour, and the re- fief of the second. • Section LVII. The fortress of West-Point, on the Hudson, sixty miles north of New-York, and its importance to the Americans, has already been noticed. Of this fortress, Gen. Arnold had solicited and obtained the command. Soon af. ter assuming the command, Arnold entered in- to negotiations with Sir Henry Clinton, to make such a disposition of the forces in the fortress, as that the latter might easily take possession of it by surprise. Fortunately for America, this base plot was seasonably discovered to pre the ruin . consequences that must have et . A. ‘no. C • lar. § w ğ PERIolº v.1775..1783....REvolution. 221 loaded with infamy and disgrace. Andre, the agent of the British, in this negotiation, was tak- en, and justly expiated his crime on the gal- lows, as a spy. . Major Andre, at this time adjutant-general of the British almy, was an officer extremely young—but high-minded, brave, and accomplished. He was transported in a vessel called the Vulture, up the North river, as near to West Point as was prac- ticable, without exciting suspicion. On the 21st of September, at night, a boat was sent from the shore, to bring him. On its return, Arnold met him at the beach, without the posts of either army. Their business was not finished, till too near the dawn of day for Andre to return to the Vulture. He, therefore, lay concealed within the American lines. During the day, the Vul- ture found it necessary to change her position, and Andre, not being able now to get on board, was compelled to attempt his return to New-York by land. × Having changed his military dress for a plain coat, and re- ceived a passport from Arnold, under the assumed name of John Anderson, he passed the guards and outposts, without suspicion. On his arrival at Tarrytown, a village thirty miles north of New-York, in the vicinity of the first British posts, he was met by three militia soldiers—John Paulding, David Wil- liams, and Isaac Van Wert. He showed then his passport, and they suffered him to continue his route. Immediately after this, one of these three men, thinking that he perceived something singular in the person of the traveller, called him back. Andre asked them where they were from P “From down below,” they replied, intending to say, from New-York. Too frank to sus- pect a snare, Andre immediately answered, “And so am I.’” Upon this, they arrested him, when he declared himself to be a British officer, and offered them his watch, and all the gold he had with him, to be released. These soldiers were poor and obscure, but they were not to be bribed. Resolutely refusing his offers, they conducted him to Lieutenant Col. Jameson, their commanding officer. Jameson injudiciously permitted Andre, still calling himself Anderson, to write to Arnold, who immediately escaped on hoard the Vulture, and took refuge in New-York. Washington, on his way to head quarters, from Connecticut & here he had been to confer with Count de Rochambeau- identially happened to be at West Point, just at this time. ; measures to insure the safety of the fort, he ap- board, of which Gen. Greene was president, to decile ºnion and punishment of Andº, 222 PERIOD W.,,,1775....1783....REVOLUTION. After a patient hearing of the case, September 29th, in which every feeling of kindness, liberality, and generous sympathy was strongly evinced, the board, upon his own confession, una- nimously pronounced Andre a spy, and declared, that agree- ably to the laws and usages of nations, he ought to suffer death. Major Andre had many friends in the American army, and even Washington would have spared him, had duty to his country permitted. Every possible effort was made by Sir Henry Clinton in his favour, but it was deemed important that the decision of the board of war should be carried into execu- tion. When Major Andre was apprised of the sentence of death, he made a last appeal, in a letter to Washington, that he might be shot, rather than die on a gibbet. . “Buoyed above the terrour of death,” said he, “by the consciousness of a life devoted to honourable pursuits, and stained with no action that can give me remorse, I trust that the request I make to your excellency at this serious period, and which is to soften my last moments, will not be rejected. Sym- pathy towards a soldier will surely induce your excellency, and a military friend, to adapt the mode of my death to the feelings of a man of honour. Let me hope, sir, that if aught in my character impresses you with esteem towards me, as the victim of policy and resentment, I shall experience the operation of those feelings in your breast by being informed that I am not to die on a gibbet.” . - This letter of Andre roused the sympathies of Washington, and had he only been concerned, the prisoner would have been pardoned and released. But the interests of his country were at stake, and the sternness of justice demanded that private feelings should be sacrificed. Upon consulting his officers, on the pro- priety of Major Andre's request, to receive the death of a soldier, —to be shot—it was deemed necessary to deny it, and to make him an example. On the 2d of October, this unfortunate young man expired on the gallows, while foes and friends uni- versally lamented his untimely end. As a reward to Paulding, Williams, and Van Wert, for their virtuous and patriotick conduct, Congress voted to each of them an annuity of two hundred dollars and a silver medal, on one side of which, was a shield with this inscription—“fidelity,”— and on the other, the following motto, “vincit amor patriae” -the love of country conquers. . . . . . . Arnold, the miserable wretch, whose machinations led to the Blancholy fate Andre experienced, escaped to New-York, as the price of his dishonour, he received the com eral, and the sum of ten thousandpa Pter- º . . ºw bon was the grand secret of Arnold's fall from remiod v.1775-1783. Revolution 22s rtue; his vanity and extravagance had led him into expenses which it was neither in the power nor will of . to sup- port. He had involved himself in debt, from which he saw no hope of extricating himself; and his honour, therefore, was bar- tered for British gold. § 3. : Section LVIII. Gen. Washington, having learned whither Arnold had fled, deemed it pos- sible still to take him, and to bring him to the just reward of his treachery. To accomplish an object so desirable, and, at the same time, in so doing, to save Andre, Washington devised a plan, which, although it ultimately failed, evinc- ed the capacity of his mind, and his unwearied ardour for his country’s good. Having matured the plan, Washington sent to Major Lee to repair to head quarters, at Tappan, on the Hudson. “I have sent for you,” said Gen. Washington, “in the expectation that you have some one in your corps, who is willing to undertake a delicate and hazardous project. Whoever comes forward will confer great obligations upon me personally, and, in behalf of the United States, I will reward him amply. No time is to be lost; he must proceed, if possible, to-night. I intend to seize Arnold, and save Andre.” 3 & . Major Lee named a sergeant-major of his corps, by the name of Champe—a native of Virginia, a man full of bone and mus- cle—with a countenance grave, thoughtful, and taciturn—of tried courage, and inflexible perseverance. . . . Champe was sent for by Major Lee, and the plan proposed. This was for him to desert--to escape to New-York—to ap- pear friendly to the enemy—to watch Arnold, and, upon some fit opportunity, with the assistance of some one whom Champ could trust, to seize him, and conduct him to a place on the river, appointed, where boats should be in readiness to bear them away. Champe listened to the plan attentively—but, with the spirit of a man of honour and integrity, replied—“ that it was not danger nor difficulty, that deterred him from immediately ac- cepting the proposal, but the ignominy of desertion, and the hypocrisy of enlisting with the enemy!” . . . . . these objections, Lee replied, that although he would ap- 5 desert, yet as he obeyed the call of his commander in is departure could not be considered as criminal, and e suffered in reputation, for a time, the matter would 224 PERIOD W.1775..1783....REVOLUTION. one day be explained to his credit. As to the second objection, it was urged, that to bring such a man as Arnold to justice- loaded with guilt as he was—and to save Andre—so young— so accomplished—so beloved—to achieve so much good in the cause of his country—was more than sufficient to balance a wrong, existing only in appearance. . The objections of Champe were at length surmounted, and he accepted the service. . It was now eleven o’clock at night. With his instructions in his pocket, the sergeant returned to camp, and, taking his cloak, valice, and orderly book, drew his horse from the picket and mounted, putting himself upon for tune. gº * , * . Scarcely had half an hour elapsed, before Capt. Carnes, the off- cer of the day, waited upon Lee, who was vainly attempting to rest, and informed him, that one of the patrol had fallen in with a dragoon, who, being challenged, put spurs to his horse and es- caped. Lee, hoping to conceal the flight of Champe, or at least to delay pursuit, complained of fatigue, and told the captain that the patrol had probably mistaken a countryman for a dra- goon. Carnes, however, was not thus to be quieted; and he withdrew to assemble his corps. On examination, it was found that Champe was absent. The captain now returned, and ac- quainted Lee with the discovery, adding that he had detached a party to pursue the deserter, and begged the major's written or- ders. - - After making as much delay as practicable, without exciting suspicion, Lee delivers his orders—in which he directed the party to take Champe if possible, “Bring him alive,” said he, “that he may suffer in the presence of the army; but kill him if he resists, or if he escapes after being taken.” º A shower of rain fell soon after Champe's departure, which enabled the pursuing dragoons to take the trail of his horse, his shoes, in common with those of the horses of the army, being made in a peculiar form, and each having a private mark, which was to be seen in the path. * iddleton, the leader of the pursuing party, left the camp a few minutes past twelve, so that Champe had the start of but little more than an hour—a period by far shorter than had been contemplated. During the night, the dragoons were often de- layed in the necessary halts to examine the road; but, on the coming of morning, the impression of the horse's shoes was so apparent, that they pressed on with rapidity... Some miles above Bergen, a village three miles north of New-York, on the oppo site side of the Hudson, on ascending a hill, Champe was des. cried, not more than half a mile distant. Fortunately ; PERIoD v.1775.1783...REvolution. 225 descried his pursuers at the same moment, and, conjecturing their object, put spurs to his horse, with the hope of escape. By taking a different road, Champe was, for a time, lost sight of but, on approaching the river, he was again descried. Aware of his danger, he now lashed his valice, containing his clothes and orderly book, to his shoulders, and prepared him- self to plunge into the river, if necessary. Swift was his flight, and swift the pursuit. Middleton and his party were within a few hundred yards, when Champe threw himself from his horse and plunged into the river, calling aloud upon some British gal- leys, at no great distance, for help. A boat was instantly de- spatched to the sergeant's assistance, and a fire commenced upon the pursuers. Champe was taken on board, and soon after car- ried to New-York, with a letter from the captain of the galley, stating the past scene, all of which he had witnessed. The pursuers having recovered the sergeant's horse and cloak, returned to camp, where they arrived about three o’clock the next day. On their appearance with the well known horse, the soldiers made the air resound with the acclamations that the scoundrel was killed. The agony of Lee, for a moment, was past description, lest the faithful, honourable, intrepid Champe had fallen. But the truth soon relieved his fears, and he repair- ed to Washington to impart to him the success, thus, far of his plan. ź Soon after the arrival of Champe in New-York, he was sent to Sir Henry Clinton, who treated him kindly, but detained him more than an hour in asking him questions, to answer some of which, without exciting suspicion, required all the art the ser- geant was master of. He succeeded, however, and Sir Henry gave him a couple of guineas, and recommended him to Arnold, who was wishing to procure American recruits. Arnold re- ceived him kindly, and proposed to him tº join his legion; Champe, however, expressed his wish to retire from war; but assured the general, that if he should change his wºnd, he would Champe found means to communicate to Lee an account of his adventures; but, unfortunately, he could not succeed in tak- ing Arnold, as was wished, before the execution of Andre. Ten days before Champe brought his project to a conclusion, Lee ived from him his final communication, appointing the thir quent night for a party of dragoons to meet him at Hobo- ken, opposite New-Yor , when he hoped to deliver 4 he had every opportunity, he could wish, to attend to the habits of the general. He discovered that it was his custom to return 226 PERIOD v.1775.1783.I.Evolution home about twelve every night, and that, previously to going to bed, he always visited the garden. During this visit, the con- spirators were to seize him, and, being prepared with a gag. they were to apply the same instantly. . x -- Adjoining the house in which Arnold resided, and in which it was designed to seize and gag him, Champe had taken of several of the palings and replaced them, so that with ease, and without noise, he could readily open his way to the adjoining alley. Into this alley he intended to convey his prisoner, aided by his companion, one of two associates, who had been intro- duced by the friend, to whom Champe had been originally made known by letter from the commander in chief, .."; whose aid and counsel, he had so far conducted the enterprise. His other associate was, with the boat, prepared at one of the wharves on the Hudson river, to receive the p * * * * … . . . ; ; , 3 * * Champe and his friend intended to place * ed under Arnold's shoulder, and thus to bear him through the most unfrequented alleys and streets to the boat, representing Arnold, in case of being questioned, as a drunken soldier, whom they were conveying to the guard-house. When arrived at the boat, the difficulties would be all sur- mounted, there being no danger nor obstacle in passing to the Jersey shore. These particulars, as soon as made known to Lee, were communicated to the commander in chief, who was highly gratified with the much desired intelligence. He desired Major Lee to meet Champe, and to take cale that Ar- mold should not be hurt. The day arrived, and Lee, with a party of accoutered horses, (one for Arnold, one for the sergeant, and the third for his as sociate, who was to assist in securing Arnold,) left the camp, never doubting the success of the enterprise, from the tenour of the last received communication. The party reached Hoboken about midnight, where they were concealed in the adjoining wood—Lee, with three dragoons, stationing himself near the shore of the river—Hour after hour passed, but no boat ap- proached. 2:::: tº .3 . At length the day broke, and the major retired to his party, and, with his led horses, returned to the camp, where he pro- ceeded to head quarters to inform the general of the much la- mented disappointment, as mortifying, as inexplicable. Wash- ington, having perused Champe's plan and communication, had indulged the presumption, that, at length, the object of his keen and constant pursuit was sure of execution, and did not dis- semble the joy which such a conviction produced. He was chagrined at the issue, and apprehended that his faithful ser- PERIOD v.1775.1785. Revolution. 227 geant must have been detected in the last scene of his tedious and difficult enterprise. . z. In a few days, Lee received an anonymous letter from Champe's patron and friend, informing him, that on the day preceding the night fixed for the execution of the plot, Arnold had removed his quarters to another part of the town, to super- intend the embarkation of troops, preparing, as was rumoured, for an expedition to be directed by himself; and that the Ame- rican legion, consisting chiefly of American deserters, had been transferred from their barracks to one of the transports, it being apprehended that if left on shore, until the expedition was ready, many of them might desert. -----> Thus it happened that John Champe, instead of crossing the Hudson that night, was safely deposited on board one of the fleet of transports, from whence he never departed, until the troops under Arnold landed in Virginia. Nor was he able to escape from the British army, until after the junction of Lord Corn- wallis at Petersburg, when he deserted; and, proceeding high up into Virginia, he passed into North Carolina, near the Saura towns, and, keeping in the friendly districts of that State, safely joined the army soon after it had passed the Congaree, in pur- suit of Lord Rawdon. . N. His appearance excited extreme surprise among his former comrades, which was not a little increased, when they saw the cordial reception he met with from the late major, now Lieu- tenant Col. Lee. His whole story was soon known to the corps, which re-produced the love and respect of officers and soldiers, meretofore invariably entertained for the sergeant, heightened by universal admiration of his late daring and arduous attempt. . Champe was introduced to Gen. Greene, who very cheerfully complied with the promise made by the commander in chief, so far as in his power; and, having provided the sergeant with a good horse and money for his journey, sent him to Gen. Wash- ington, who munificently anticipated every desire of the ser- geant, and presented him with a discharge from further service, lest he might, in the vicissitudes of war, fall into the hands of the enemy, when, if recognized, he was sure to die on a gibbet. We shall only add, respecting the after life of this interesting adventurer, that when Gen. Washington was called by President Adams, in 1798, to the command of the army, prepared to de-, fend the country, against French hostility, he sent to Lieuten- ant Col. Lee, to inquire for Champe; being determined to bring hi o the field at the head of a company of infantry. Lee sent to Loudon county, Virginia, where Champesettled after his 228 PERIOD v.1775.1785.REvolution. discharge from the army; when he learned that the gallantsol. dier had removed to Kentucky, where he soon after died.* Section LIX. The year 1781 opened with an event extremely afflicting to Gen. Washing- ton, and which, for a time, seriously endangered the American army. This was the revolt of the whole Pennsylvania line of troops, at Mor- ristown, to the number of one thousand three hundred. The cause of this mutiny was want of pay, clothing, and provisions. Upon exami- nation of the grievances of the troops, by a com- mittee from congress, their complaints were con- sidered to be founded in justice. Upon their being redressed, the troops, whose time of ser- vice had expired, returned home, and the rest cheerfully repaired again to camp. Gen. Wayne, who commanded these troops, and who was greatly respected by them, used every exertion to quiet them, but in vain. In the ardour of remonstrance with them, he cock ed his pistol, and turned it towards them. Instantly, an hun- dred bayonets were directed towards him, and the men cried out, “we love you, we respect you; but you are a dead man, if you fire. Do not mistake us; we are not going to the enemy. On the contrary, were they now to come out, you should see us fight under your orders, with as much resolution and alacrity as ever.” . . . § º Leaving the camp, the mutineers proceeded in a body to Princeton. Thither, Sir Henry Clinton, who had heard of the revolt, sent agents to induce them to come over to the British, with the promise of large rewards. But these soldiers loved their country's cause too well to listen to proposals so reproachful. They were suffering privations which could no longer be sustained; but they spurned, with disdain, the offer of the enemy. They also seized the agents of the British, and nobly delivered them up to Gen. Wayne to be treated as spies. Section LX. In the midst of these troubles, arising from discontents of the troops, news ar- * Lee's Memoirs. PERIOD v.1775.1783. RevoluTION. rived of great depredations in Virginia, by Arnold, who had left New-York for the south, with one thousand six hundred men, and a number of arm- ed vessels. Extensive outrages were committed by these troops in that part of the country. Large quantities of tobacco, salt, rum, &c. were destroyed. In this manner did Arnold show the change of spirit, which had taken place in his breast, and his fidelity to his new engagements. Upon receiving news of these depredations, at the request of Gen. Washington, a French squadron, from Rhode-Island, was sent to cut off Arnold's retreat. Ten of his vessels were de- stroyed, and a forty-four gun ship was captured. Shortly after this, an engagement took place off the Capes of Virginia, between the French and Fnglish squadrons, which terminated so far to the advantage of the English, that Arnold was saved from imminent danger of falling into the hands of his exasperated countrymen. Section LXI. After the unfortunate battle at . Camden, August 16th, 1780, congress thought proper to remove Gen. Gates, and to appoint Gen. Greene in his place. In December, I'780, Greene assumed the command. The army at this time was reduced to two thousand men, more than half of whom were militia, and all were miserably fed and clothed. With this force, Gen. Greene took the field, against a superiour regular force, flushed with successive victories through a whole campaign. Soon after taking the command, he divided his force, and, with one part, sent Gen. Morgan to the western extremity of South Carolina. At this time, Lord Cornwallis was nearly pre- pared to invade North ºlina. Unwilling to leave such an enemy as Morgan in his rear, he despatched Col. Tarleton to engage Gen. Mor- gan, and “to push him to the utmost.” Section LXII. January 17th, 1781, these two detachments met, when was fought the spirited battle of the Cowpens, in which the American arms signally triumphed. In this memorable battle, the British lost upwards of one hun- dred killed, among whom were ten commissioned officers, and two hundred wounded. More than five hundred prisoners fell into the hands of the Americans, besides two pieces of artillery, twelve standards, eight hundred muskets, thirty-five baggage waggons, one hundred dragoon horses; the loss of the Ameri- cans was no more than twelve killed and sixty wounded. . The victory of the Cowpens must be reckoned as one of the most brilliant achieved during the revolutionary war. The force of Morgan hardly amounted to five hundred, while that of his adversary exceeded one thousand. Morgan's brigade were principally militia, while Tarleton commanded the flower of the British army. . . . x # & § § Section LXIII. Upon receiving the intelli- gence of Tarleton's defeat, Cornwallis aban- doned the invasion of North Carolina for the present, and marched in pursuit of Gen. Morgan, Greene, suspecting his intentions, hastened with his army to join Morgan. This junction was at length effected, at Guilford Court-House, after a fatiguing march, in which Cornwallis nearly overtook him, and was prevented only by the obstruction of a river, After his junction with Morgan, Gen. Greene, with his troops and baggage, crossed the river Dan, and entered Virginia, again narrowly es- &a le British, who were in close pursuit. Greene from North Carolina, Cornwallis retir- reaſon v.1775.1783. Revolution. 231 and fifty men, to se- Tarleton, with four hundred an § cure the countenance of a body of loyalists, col lected between the Hawe and Deep rivers. Section LXV. Apprehensive of Tarleton's success, Gen. Greene, on the 18th of February, re-crossed the Dan into Carolina, and despatch- ed Generals Pickens and Lee to watch the move- ments of the enemy. These officers were un- able to bring Tarleton to an engagement. Gen. Greene, having now received a reinforcement, making his army four thousand five hundred strong, concentrated his forces, and directed his march towards Guilford Court-House, whither Lord Cornwallis had retired. * . . . . . . ...:..., Here, on the 8th of March, a general engage- ment took place, in which victory, after alter- nately passing to the banners of each army, final- ly decided in favour of the British. . The British loss, in this battle, exceeded five hundred in kill ed and wounded, among whom were several of the most distin- guished officers. The American loss was about four hundred, in killed and wounded, of which more than three fourths fell upon the continentals. Though the numerical force of General Greene nearly doubled that of Cornwallis, yet, when we con- sider the difference between these forces, the shameful conduct of the North Carolina militia, who fled at the first fire, the de- sertion of the second Maryland regiment, and that a body of reserve was not brought into action, it will appear, that our numbers, actually engaged, but little exceeded that of the ene- section LXVI. Notwithstanding the issue of the above battle, Gen. Greene took the bold re- solution of leading back his forces to Sol ar olina, and of attacking the enemies’ strong 9th of April, he put his troops in motion, a 232 PERIOD v.1775.1783. Revolution. the enemies’ works. Lord Rawdon, at this time, held the command of Camden, and had a force of only nine hundred men. The army of Gen. Greene—a detachment having been made for another expedition under Gen. Lee—amounted scarcely to twelve hundred men of all classes. On the 25th, Lord Rawdon drew out his for- ces, and the two armies engaged. For a season, victory seemed inclined to the Americans, but, in the issue, Gen. Greene found himself obliged to retreat. - N. ... < ...; The American loss in killed, wounded, and missing, was two hundred and sixty-eight; the English loss was nearly equal. The failure of the victory, in this battle, was not attributable, as in some cases, to the flight of the militia, when danger had scarcely begun—but Gen. Greene experienced the mortification of seeing a regiment of veterans give way to an inferiour force, when every circumstance was in their favour—the very regi- ment too, which, at the battle of the Cowpens, behaved with such heroick bravery. % Section LXVII. Although the British arms gained the victory of Camden, the result of the whole was favourable to the American cause. Gen. Lee, with a detachment despatched for that purpose, while Greene was marching against Camden, took possession of an important post at Mottes, near the confluence of the Congaree and Santee rivers. This auspicious event was followed by the evacuation of Camden, by Lord Rawdon, and of the whole line of British posts, with the exception of Ninety-Six and Charles- Section LXVIII. Ninety-Six, one hundred and forty-seven miles north-west from Charles- was garrisoned by five hundred and sixty st this post, after the battle of reene took § § his march be fore it. So º § : . that - H wdon had D€611 rei ned arrived word enforced by troops from Ireland, and was on his march with two thousand men for its relief. Greene now determined upon an assault, but in this he failed, with a loss of one hundred and fifty men. Soon after his arrival at Ninety Six, Lord Rawdon deemed it expedient to evacuate this post. Retiring himself to Charleston, his army encamped at the Eutaw Springs, forty miles from Charleston. . x. Section LXIX. Gen. Greene, having retired to the high hills of Santee, to spend the hot and sickly season, in September approached the enemy at the Eutaw Springs. On the morning of the 8th, he advanced upon him, and the bat- tle between the two armies became general. The contest was sustained with equal bravery on both sides—victory seeming to decide in fa- vour of neither. . … . The British lost in killed, wounded, and prisoners, about one thousand one hundred. The loss of the Americans was five hundred and fifty-five. . . . . Section LXX. The battle at the Eutaw Springs was the last general action that took place in South Carolina, and nearly finished the war in that quarter. The enemy now retired to Charleston. > Thus closed the campaign of 1781, in South Carolina. Few commanders have ever had greater difficulties to encounter that General Greene; and few have ever, with the same means lished so much. Though never so decisively §:::::3%23% battles which he fought, either from necessity o e always so well managed as to result to his advant unmindful of his eminent services, Congress 284 period....v.1775.1783. Revolution between Greene and Cornwallis, noticed above, the latter, leaving South Carolina in charge of Lord Rawdon, commenced his march towards Petersburg, in Virginia, where he arrived on the 20th of May. Having received several rein- forcements, he found himself with an army of eight thousand, and indulged the pleasing anti- cipations that Virginia would soon be made to yield to his arms. - Early in the spring, Gen. Washington had de- tached the Marquis de la Fayette, with three thousand men, to co-operate with the French fleet, in Virginia, in the capture of Arnold, who was committing depredations in that State, On the failure of this expedition, La Fayette march- ed back as far as the head of Elk river.—Hero he received orders to return to Virginia to op- pose the British. On his return, hearing of the advance of Cornwallis, towards Petersburg, twenty miles below Richmond, he hastened his march to prevent, if possible, the junction of Cornwallis, with a reinforcement, under Gen. Phillips. In this, however, he failed. _ The junction being effected at Petersburg, Cornwallis moved towards James' river, which he crossed, with the intention of forcing the marquis to a battle. x: . . Prudence forbad the marquis risking an en- gagement, with an enemy of more than twice his force. He thetefore retreated, and, not- withstanding the uncommon efforts of his lord- ship to prevent it, he effected a junction with Gen. Wayne, who had been despatched by Wa- shinertrºn hundred Pennsylvania mi- to his assistance. After this reinforce- the disproportion between himself and PERIOD v.1775..1783....REvolution. 235 his adversary was still too great to permit him to think of battle. He continued his retreat, therefore, displaying, in all his manoeuvres, the highest prudence. r Section LXXII. While these things were transpiring in Virginia, matters of high moment seemed to be in agitation in the north, which, not long after, were fully developed. - Early in May, 1781, a plan of the whole cam- paign had been arranged by Gen. Washington, in consultation, at Wethersfield, Connecticut, with Generals Knox and Du Portail, on the part of the Americans, and Count de Rochambeau, on the part of France. The grand project of the season was to lay siege to New-York, in concert with a French fleet, expected on the coast in August. º, % In the prosecution of this plan, the French troops were marched from Rhode-Island, and joined Gen. Washington, who had concentrated his forces at Kingsbridge, fifteen miles above New-York. All things were preparing for a vigorous siege, and, towards this strongest hold : the enemy, the eyes of all were intently direct- In this posture of things, letters addressed to Gen. Washington, informed him that the ex- pected French fleet, under the Count de Grasse, would soon arrive in the Chesapeake, and that this, instead of New-York, was the place of its destination. Disappointed in not having the co-operation of such a force; disappointed also in not receiv- ing the full quota of militia, which had been or- dered from New-England and New-Jersey; and, moreover, learning that Clinton had been 236 PERIOD v.1775..1783....REVOLUTION. reinforced in New-York, by the arrival of three thousand Germans; Washington was induced to change the plan of operations, and to direct his attention to Cornwallis, who, from pursuing the Marquis de la Fayette, had retired to York- town, near the mouth of York river, and had fortified that place. - Section LXXIII. Having decided upon this measure, on the 19th of July he drew off his forces, and commenced his march, at the same time strongly impressing Clinton, by every art in his power, that an attack would soon be made upon New-York. So successfully was this de ception practised, that Washington was some dis tance on his way towards Virginia, before Clin- ton suspected that his object was any other than to draw him from New-York, to fight him in the field, with superiour forces. … º Having halted at Philadelphia a few days, the army continued its march to the head of Elk river, whence it embarked for Williamsburg, then the head quarters of the Marquis de la Fayette, where it arrived September 25th. Gen. Washington and Count de Rochambeau preceded the troops ten days, and, to their great joy, found that the Count de Grasse had entered the Capes on the 30th of the preceding month, with twenty-eight sail, and three thou- sand troops. , , , On the arrival of these two generals at Wil- liamsburg, a vessel was in readiness to convey them on board the Ville de Paris, the flag-ship of the Count de Grasse, where a council w 0 determine on future operations. ion LXXIV. These being settled PERIOD v.1775.1783. Revolution. 287 men, moved upon Yorktown and Gloucester, September 30th, and the Count de Grasse, with his fleet, proceeded up to the mouth of York river, to prevent Cornwallis either from retreat- ing, or receiving assistance. Yorktown is a small village on the south side of York river, whose southern banks are high, and in whose waters a ship of the line may ride in safety. Gloucester Point is a piece of land on the opposite shore, projecting far into the river. Both these posts were occupied by Cornwallis—the main body of the arm being at York, under the immediate command of his lordship, and a detachment of six hundred at Gloucester point, under Lieut. Col. Tarleton. . . . On the 6th of October, Washington's heavy ordnance, &c. arrived, and the siege was com- menced in form. Seldom, if ever, during the revolutionary struggle, did the American com- mander in chief, or his troops, appear before the enemy with more cool determination, or pursue him with more persevering ardour, than at the siege of Yorktown. With the fall of Cornwal- lis, it was perceived that the hopes of Great Bri- tain, successfully to maintain the contest, must nearly expire; with this in prospect, there was no wavering of purpose, and no intermission of On the 19th of October, the memorable victo- ry over Cornwallis was achieved, and his whole army was surrendered, amounting to more than seven thousand prisoners of war, together with a park of artillery of one hºundred and sixty piec- es, the greater part of which were brass. Articles of capitulation being mutually signed and ratified, Gen. Lincoln was appointed, by the commander in chief, to re- ceive the submission of the royal army, in the same º which, eighteen month i. efore, Cornwallis had received ºrieston. road through which the captive army ma was lined with spectators, French and American. On oneside the commander in chief, surro inded with his suite, and the Ame. rican staff, took his station; on the other side, opposite to him, was the Count de Rochambeau, in the like manner attended. The captive army approached, moving slowly in column, with grace and precision. Universal silence was observed amidst the vast concourse, and the utmost decency prevailed; exhibit ing an awful sense of the vicissitudes of human life, mingled with commisseration for the unhappy Every eye was now turned, searching for the British com- mander in chief, anxious to look at the man, heretofore so much the object of their dread. All were disappointed. Cornwallis, unable to bear up against the humiliation of marching at the head of his garrison, constituted Gen. O’Hara is representa- tive, on the occasion. º . The post of Gloucester, falling with that of York, was deliv- ered up the same day, by Lieut. Col. Tarleton. 3. At the termination of the siege, the besieging army amounted to sixteen thousand. The British force was put down at seven thousand one hundred and seven, of which only four thousand and seven rank and file are stated to have been fit for duty. Section LXXV. Five days after the surrender of Cornwallis, Sir Henry Clinton made his ap- pearance off the Capes of Virginia with a rein- forcement of seven thousand men; but, receiv- ing intelligence of his lordship's fate, he re- turned to New-York. Cornwallis, in his despatches to Sir Henry, more than hinted that his fall had been produced by a too firm reliance on pro- mises, that no pains were taken to fulfil. Clinton had promis ed Cornwallis that this auxiliary force should leave New-York on the 5th of October, but for reasons never explained, it did not sail until the 19th, the very day that decided the fate of the ar ºy. % } . Section LXXVI. Nothing could exceed the joy of the American people, at this ſº and important victory, over Lord Cornwallis. Ex- ation broke forth from one extremity of the The remembrance to the other. The remº ave place in all minds to the m # . . . . .33% for which the people had been toiling and bleeding through so many campaigns. In all parts of the United States, solemn festivals and rejoic- ngs celebrated the triumph of American fortune. The names of Washington, Rochambeau, De Grasse, and La Fayette, re- wounded every where. To the unanimous acclaim of the peo- wle, congress joined the authority of its resolves. It addressed- thanks to the generals, officers, and soldiers—presented British colours—ordered the erection of a marble column—and went in procession to church, to render publick thanksgiving to God for the recent victory. The 30th of December was appointed as a day of national thanksgiving. 3 & . Section LXXVII. While the combined ar- mies were advancing to the siege of Yorktown, an excursion was made from New-York, by Gen. Arnold, against New-London, in his native state. The object of this expedition seems to have been, to draw away a part of the American forces; Sir Henry Clinton knowing but too well, that if they were left at liberty to push the siege of Yorktown, the blockaded army must inevitably surrender. This expedition was signalized by the great: gst atrocities. Fort Trumbull, on the west, and Fort Griswold, on the east side of the river Thames, below New-London, were taken, and the greater part of that town was burnt. At Fort Trumbull, little or no resistance was made; but Fort Griswold was defended for a time, with great bravery and reso- lution. After the fort was carried, a British officer entering, in- quired who commanded. Col. Ledyard answered, “I did, but you do now”—at the same time presenting his sword. The officer immediately plunged the sword into his bosom. A gene- ral massacre now took place, as well of those who surrendered as ed, which continued until nearly all the ed or wounded. Sixty dwelling house New-London, were reduced to ashe KVIII. The fall of Corn red as substantially closing 240 … PERIOD, . "....1775..1783...REVOLU º "ION. war. A few posts of importance were still held by the British—New-York, Charleston, and Sa- vannah—but all other parts of the country, which they had possessed, were recovered into the power of congress. A few skirmishes alone indicated the continuance of war. A part of the French army, soon after the cap ture of Cornwallis, re-embarked, and Count de Grasse sailed for the West Indies. Count Ro- chambeau cantoned his army for the winter, 1782, in Virginia, and the main body of the Americans returned, by the way of the Chesa- peake, to their former position on the Hudson. Section LXXIX. From the 12th of December, 1781, to the 4th of March, 1782, motion after motion was made in the British Parliament for putting an end to the war in America. On this latter day, the commons resolved “that the house would consider as enemies to his majesty and to the country, all those who should advise, or attempt the further prosecution of offensive war, on the continent of North America.” Section LXXX. On the same day, the com- mand of his majesty's forces in America was taken from Sir Henry Clinton, and given to Sir Guy Carleton, who was instructed to promote the wishes of Great Britain, for an accommoda- tion with the United States. ... ::::::. . . . . ." § In accordance with these instructions, Sir Guy Carleton endeavoured to open a corres- pondence with congress, and with this view sent to Gen. Washington to solicit a passport for his secretary. . . But this was refused, since con- gress would enter into no negociations but in lcert with his most Christian Majesty. wallis, pressed upon congress the appointm of commissioners for negotiating peace with Great Britain. Accordingly, John Adams, Ben- were appointed. These commissioners met Mr. Fitzherbet and Mr. Oswald, on the part of Great Britain, at Paris, and provisional articles November 30th, 1782. The definitive treaty. was signed on the 30th of September, 1783. , Although the definitive treaty was not signed tility between the two armies, and a state o peace had actually existed from the commence- ment of the year 1783. A formal proclamation of the cessation of hostilities was made through the army on the 19th of April, Savannah was evacuated in July, New-York, in November, and Charleston, in the following month. Section LXXXII. The third of November was fixed upon by congress, for disbanding the army of the United States. On the day previous, Washington issued his farewell orders, and bid an affectionate adieu to the soldiers, who had fought and bled by his side. After mentioning the trying times through which he had passed, and the unexampled patience which, under every cir glorious prospects opening before them, and their cou ERiod v.1775.1785. Revolu. tion. With these wishes, and this benediction, the come in chief is about to retire from service. The curtain of ation will soon be drawn, and the military scene to him be closed for ever.” . . . ; :.. " … .º. 3..... . . . . . . . . . º. et tº ixxx III. Soon after taking leave will of the army, Gen. Washington was called to the still more painful hour of separation from his officers, greatly endeared to him by a long series of common sufferings and dangers. The officers having previously assembled in New-York fo the purpose, Gen. Washington now joined them, and calling for a glass of wine, thus addressed them: “With a heart full of love and gratitude, I now take my leave of you. I most de- voutly wish that your latter days may be as prosperous and happy, as your former ones have been glorious and honour- able.” Having thus affectionately addressed them, he now took each by the hand and bade him farewell. Followed by them to the side of the Hudson, he entered a barge, and, while tears rolled down his cheeks, he turned towards the companions of his glory, and bade them a silent adieu. "Section LXXXIV. December 23, Washing- & §3. 3 % & ...?. § w . ton, appeared in the hall of congress, and re- signed to them the commission which they had given him, as commander in chief of the armies of the United States. - $3 : 33 & . After havin spoken of the accomplishment of his wishes and exertions, in the independence of his country, and com- mended his officers and soldiers to Congress, he concluded as “I consider it an indispensable duty to close the last solemn act of my official life, by commending the interests of our dear- -*. try to the protection of Almighty God, and those who perintendence of them to his holy keeping. ; now finished the work assigned me, I retire from at theatre of action; and, bidding an affectionate fare- is august body, under whose orders I have long acted, º ...” and take my leave of all the em. PERIOD v.1775.1783. REvolution. 243 conducting the war to so happy a termination, and invoked the choicest blessings upon his President Mifflin concluded as follows: “We join you in tommending the interests of our dearest country to the protec- tion of Almighty God, beseeching HIM to dispose the hearts and minds of its citizens to improve the opportunity afforded them of becoming a happy and respectable nation. And for you, we address to HIM our earnest prayers, that a life so beloved, may be fostered with all His care: that your days may be as happy as they have been illustrious; and that HE will finally give you that reward which this world cannot give.” ~ A profound silence now pervaded the assem- bly. The grandeur of the scene, the recol- lection of the past, the felicity of the present, and the hopes of the future, crowded fast upon all, while they united in invoking blessings upon the man, who, under God, had achieved so much, and who now, in the character of a were citizen, was hastening to a long desired repose at his seat, at Mount Vernon, in Virginia. se of his wis TNotté. Section LXXXVI. Harttierg. At the commencement of the revolution, the colonists of America were a mass of husbandmen, mer- chants, mechanicks, and fishermen, who were occupied in the ordinary avocations of their re- spective, callings, and were entitled to the appellation of a sober, honest, and industrious set of people. Bein g, however, under the con- trol of a country, whose jealousies were early and strongly enlisted against them, and which . was eager to repress every attempt, on their - - -2. ----. . . . . . . . .''...:------…. . . . . their part, to rise, they had comparatively 244 PERIOD v.1775.1783. Revolution encouragement, for exertion and But, when the struggle for independence began, the case was altered. New fields for ex- ertion were opened, and new and still stronger impulses actuated their bosoms. A great change was suddenly wrought in the American people, and a vast expansion of character took lace. Those who were before only known in the humble sphere of peaceful occupation, soon shone forth in the cabinet or in the field, fully qualified to cope with the trained generals and statesmen of Europe. - But, although the revolution caused such an expansion of character in the American people, and called forth the most striking patriotism among all classes, it introduced, at the same time, greater looseness of manners and morals. An army alwavs carries deep vices in its train, and communicates its corruption to societ around it. Besides this, the failure of j. credit so far put it out of the power of individuals to perform private engagements, that the breach of them became common, and, at length, was scarcely disgraceful. That high sense of in- tegrity, wº had extensively existed before, was thus exchanged for more loose and slippery notions of honesty and honour. "On the whole, says Dr. Ramsay, who wrote soon after the close of this period, “the literary, political, and military talents of the United States, have been improved by the revolution, but their moral character is inferiour to what it formerly was. So reat is the change for the worse,” continues he, “that the of publick order are loudly called upon to exert their ut- ies, in extirpating the vicious principles and habits, e taken deep root during the late convulsions.” PERIOD V....1775..1783....REvolution. 245 Section LXXXVII. Žttligion.” During the revolution, the coloniés being all united in one cause—a congress being assembled from all parts of America—and more frequent inter- course between different parts of the country being promoted by the shifting of the arinies— local prejudices and sectarian asperities were obliterated ; religious controversy was sus- pended; and bigotry softened. That spirit of intolerance, which had marked some portions of the country, was nearly done away. But, for these advantages, the revolution brought with it great disadvantages to religion in general. The atheistical philosophy, which \ad been spread over France, and which would involve the whole subject of religion in the gloomy mists of skepticism—which acknow- ledges no distinction between right and wrong, and considers a future existence as a dream, that may or may not be realized—was thickly sown in the American army, by the French ; and, uniting with the infidelity, which before had taken root in the country, produced a serious declension in the tone of religious feelings, among the American people. In addition to this, religious institutions during the war, were much neglected; churches were demolished, or converted into barracks; publick worship was often suspended; and the cler- #. suffered severely, from the reduction of their salaries, caused y the depreciation of the circulating medium. Asay, in classing those persºns, in America, -i. were opposed, to the revolution, noti 240 PERIOD v .1775.1785. Revolution. Section LXXXVIII. ºraºſt amº (tout: tutt tº. During the war of the revolution, the commerce of the United States was inter- rupted, not only with Great Britain, but, in a great measure, with the rest of the world. The greater part of the shipping, belonging to the country, was destroyed by the enemy, or perished by a natural process of decay. Our coasts were so lined with British cruisers, as to render navigation too hazardous to be pursued to any considerable ex- tent. Some privateers, however, were fitted out, which suc- ceeded in capturing several valuable prizes, on board of which were arms, and other munitions of war. During the last three years of the war, an illicit trade to Spanish America was car tied on, but it was extremely limited. --> Section LXXXIX. 30 virttitttre. Agri- culture was greatly interrupted during this period, by the withdrawing of labourers to the camp—by the want of encouragement, fur- mished by exportation, and by the distractions which disturbed all the occupations of society. The army often suffered for the means of subsistence, and the officers were sometimes forced to compei the inhabitants to fur- nish the soldiers food, in sufficient quantities to prevent their suffering. z .. Section XC. Ørtº attºſ ſúſūmùttfätttittg. The trade with England, during this period, being interrupted by the war, the people of the United States were compelled to manufacture for themselves. Encouragement was given to all necessary manufactures, and the zeal, inge- nuity, and industry of the people, furnished the country with articles of prime necessity, and, in a PERIOD W.,,.1775.1783. REvolution. •247 were imported altogether, were found so well and so abundantly manufactured at home, that their importation was stopped. i. Section XCI. 330pulation. The increase of the people of the United States, during this period, was small. Few, if any, emigrants ar- rived in the country. Many of the inhabitants were slain in battle, and thousands of that class called tories, left the land, who never returned. Perhaps we may fairly estimate the inhabitants of the country, about the close of this period, 1784, at three millions two hundred and fifty thousand. 3 * Section, XCII. §ºſtttation. The interests of education suffered in common with other kindred interests, during the war. In several colleges, the course of instruction was, for a season, suspended; the hall was exchanged by the students for the camp, and the gown for the sword and epaulette. º, * Towards the conclusion of the war, two colleges were found- ed—one in Maryland, in 1782, by the name of Washington college; the other, in 1783, in Pennsylvania, which received the name of Dickinson college. The writer, whom we have quoted above, estimates the whole number of colleges and academies in the United States, at the close of this period, at thirty-six. º : atttitctions. XCIII. The American Revolution is doubtless the most in- teresting event in the pages of modern history. Changes equally great, and convulsions equally violent, have often taken ºplace; and the history of man tells us of many instances, in which oppression, urged beyond endurance, has called forth 2 48 PERIOD W....1 775..1783....REVOLUTION. powerful, and vindictive enemy. We see these colonies amidst want, poverty, and misfortune—supported by the pervading spirit of liberty, and guided by the good hand of Heaven—for nearly eight years sustaining the weight of a cruel conflict, upon their own soil. We see them at length victorious; their ene- mies sullenly retire from their shores, and these humble colonies stand forth enrolled on the page of history—a free, sovereign, and independent nation. Nor is this all. We see a wise gov. ernment springing up from the blood that was spilt, and, down to our own time, shedding the choicest political blessings upon several millions of people ! x 3. What nation can dwell with more just satisfaction upon its annals, than ours? Almost all others trace their foundation to some ambitious and bloody conquerer, who sought only, by en- slaving others, to aggrandize himself. Our independence was won by the people, who fought for the natural rights of man. Other nations have left their annals stained with the crimes of their people and princes; ours shines with the glowing traces of patriotism, constancy, and courage, amidst every rank of life, and every grade of office. . Whenever we advert to this portion of our history, and re- view it, as we well may with patriotick interest, let us not forget the gratitude we owe, as well to those who “fought, and bled, and died” for us, as that benignant Providence, who stayed the proud waves of British tyranny. :- x. Let us also gather political wisdom from the American revo- lution. It has taught the world, emphatically, that oppression tends to weaken and destroy the power of the oppressor; that a people united in the cause of liberty are invincible by those who would enslave them; and that Heaven will ever frown upon the cause of injustice, and ultimately grant success to those who oppose it. UNITED STATEs. 33triou iſł. oistinguished For THE ForMAtion AND ESTAB- LISHMENT OF THE FEDERAL CONSTITUTION, Extending from the disbanding of the army, º: % the inauguration of George Wash- ington, as president of the United States, & under the Federal Constitution, 1789. Section I. During the revolutionary war, the American people looked forward to a state of peace, independence, and self-government, as almost necessarily ensuring every possible bless- ing. A short time was sufficient, however, to demonstrate that something, not yet possessed was necessary to realize the private and publick prosperity that had been anticipated. After a short struggle so to administer the existing sys- tem of government, as to make it competent to the great objects for which it was instituted, it became apparent that some other system must be substituted, or a general wreck of all that had been gained would ensue. Section II. At the close of the war, the debts" of the Union were computed to amount to some- what more than forty millions of dollars. By *These debts were of two kinds, foreign and domestick. The foreign debt amounted to near eight millions of dollars, and was due to indivi. duals in France—to the crown of France—to lenders in Holland and Spain. The domestick debt amounted to some more than thirty-four millions of dollars, and was due to persons who held loan office certifi. eates-to the officers and soldiers of the revolutionary army, &c. . the articles of confederation and union between the States, congress had the power to declare war, and borrow money, or issue bills of credit to carry it on ; but it had not the ability to dis- charge debts, incurred by the war. All that congress could do, was to recommend to the individual States to raise money for that pur- pose. - . . . . . . . % Soon after the war, the attention of congress was drawn to this subject; the payment of the national debt being a matter of justice to cre- ditors, as well as of vital importance to the pre- servation of the Union. It was proposed, therefore, by congress, to the States, that they should grant to that body the power of laying a duty of five per cent, on all foreign goods, which should be imported, and that the revenue arising thence should be applied to the dimi- mution of the publick debt, until it was extin- guished. * , To this proposal, most of the States assented, and passed an act, granting the power. But Rhode-Island, apprehensive that such a grant would lessen the advantages of her trade, de- clined passing an act for that purpose. Subse- quently, New-York joined in the opposition, and rendered all prospect of raising a revenue, in this way, hopeless. . . . § The consequence was, that even the interest of the publick debt remained unpaid. Certifi- cates of public debt lost their credit, and many of the officers and soldiers of the late army, who were poor, were compelled to sell these certifi- cates at excessive reductions. n III. While the friends of . na: mal government were making unavailing ef THE FEDERAL constrtution. 251 forts to fix upon a permanent revenue, which might enable it to preserve the national faith, other causes, besides the loss of confidence in the confederation, concurred to hasten a radi- cal change in the political system of the United Among these causes, the principal was the evil resulting from the restrictions of Great Bri- tain, laid on the trade of the United States with the West Indies; the ports of those islands being shut against the vessels of the United States, and enormous duties imposed on our most valuable exports. Had congress possesse - - - --> sessed the power, a remedy might have been found, in passing similar acts against Great Britain; but this power had not been delegated by the States to the congress. That thirteen independent sovereignties, always jealous of one another, would separately concur in any proper measures to compel Great Britain to relax, was not to be expected. The im- portance of an enlargement of the powers of congress was thus rendered still more obvious. Section IV. During this enfeebled and disor- ganized state of the general government, at- tempts were made, in some of the states, to maintain their credit, and to satisfy their credi- tors. The attempt of Massachusetts to affect this, by means of a heavy tax, produced an open insurrection among the people. In some parts of the State, the people convened in tumultuous assemblies—obstructed the sitting of courts, and finally, took arms in opposition to the l the State ent measures of Gov - onded by anar he WHALE 252 PERIOD vi.1783.1789. Establishment o dually subdued the spirit of opposition, and re. stored the authority of the laws. - - This rising of the people of Massachusetts is usually º Shays' insurrection, from one Daniel Shays, a captain in the revolutionary army, who headed the insurgents. 3. 1786, fifteen hundred insurgents assembled at Northampton, took possession of the court-house, and prevented the session of the court. Similar outrages occurred at Worcester, Concord, Taunton, and Springfield. In New-Hampshire, also a body of inen arose in September, and surrounding the general assembly, sitting at Exeter, held them prisoners for several hours, . In this state of civil commotion, a body of º the num- ber of four thousand, was ordered out by Massachusetts, to sup- port the judicial courts, and suppress the insurrection. This force was put under the command of General Lincoln. Ano- ther body of troops was collected by Gen. Shepherd, ne ng- field. After some skirmishing, the insurgents were dispersed; several were taken prisoners and condemned, but were ultimately pardoned. ” s : Section W. The period seemed to have arriv- ed, when it was to be decided whether the gene- ral government was to be supported or ab doned—whether the glorious objects of the re- volutionary struggle should be realized or lost. In January, 1786, the legislature of Virginia who were to meet such others, as might be ap- pointed by the other States, to take into consid. eration the sub de, and to provideº for * a uniform system of commercial relations, &c. resolution, ultimately, led to a proposition convention to consider the state of ates were % rhe federal constitution. 258 in Philadelphia, the succeeding May. Pre- viously to adjournment, it recommended to the several States, to appoint delegates for that meeting, and to give them power to revise the federal system. º % & Agreeably to the above recommendation, all the States of the Union, excepting Rhode-Island, appointed commissioners, who, on the 19th of May, assembled at Philadelphia. . --> : Of this body, Gen. Washington, one of the commissioners from Virginia, was unanimously elected president. The convention proceeded, with closed doors, to discuss the interesting sub- ject submitted to their consideration. Section WI. On the great principles which should form the basis of the constitution, not much difference of opinion prevailed. But, in reducing those principlesto practical details, less harmony was to be expected. . Such, indeed, was the difference of opinion, that, more than, once, there was reason to fear, that the conven- tion would rise, without effecting the object for which it was formed. Happily, however, it was at length agreed to sacrifice local interest on the altar of publick good, and on the 17th of Sep- tember, 1787, the FEDERAL Constitution was presented to congress, who, shortly after, sent it to the several States for their consideration. An abstract of this constitution, with its several subseq amendments, follows: it is extracted from Mr. Webster's Ele- ments of Useful Knowledge. . . . . . . . . Of the Legislature. *The legislative power of the United Btatesis vested in a congress, consisting of two houses or branches, * senate, and a house of representatives. The members of the house of representatives are chosen once in two years, ~ persons who are qualified kar's ri merous branches of the legislature, in each State. titled to a seat in this ho is house, a person must have attained to the & 3. N. ſº Hº ºf . º --M.--- ºsses ºn *** º § ige of twenty-five years even years, and be an chosen. % & , Of the Senate. “The senate consists of two senators from each State, chosen by the legislature for six years. The senate is divided into three classes, the seats of one of which are va- cated every second year. If a vacancy happens, during the recess of the legislature, the executive of the state makes a tem- porary appointment of a senator, until the next meeting of the legislature. A senator must have attained to the age of thirty years, been a citizen of the United States nine years, and be an , been a citizen of the United States for inhabitant of the State in which he is inhabitant of the State for which he is chosen. - Of the powers of the two Houses. “The house of repre- sentatives choose their own speaker and other officers, and have the exclusive power of impeaching public. officers, and originating bills for raising a revenue. The vice president of the United States is president of the senate; but the other offi cers are chosen by the senate. The senate tries all impeach- ments; each house determines the validity of the elections and qualifications, of its own members, forms its own rules, and keeps a journal of its proceedings. The members are privileg- ed from arrest, while attending on the session, going to, or re- turning from the same, except for treason, felony, or breach of “The Congress of the United *r to make and enforce all laws, which are ry for the general wel re–as to lay and collect taxes, s, and excises; borrow money, regulate commerce, esta. iform rules of naturalization, coin money, establish post and post-offices, promote the arts and sciences, institute ibunals inferiour to the supreme court, define and punish piracy, declare war, and make reprisals, raise and support armies, provide a navy, regulate the militia, and to make all of the lowers of Congr 8s. ower to make “No bill of attainder, or retrospective ; the writ of habeas corpus cannot be sus- *pt in cases of rebellion or invasion; no direct tax xcept according to a census of the inhabitants; no laid on exports, no money can be drawn from the less appr nriated by law 3. no . title of officer, without th or can any publick & he consen THE FEDERAL CONSTITUTION. 255 States is vested in a president, who holds his office for four years. To qualify a man for president, he must have been a citizen at the adoption of the constitution, or must be a native of the United States; he must have attained to the age of thirty-five years, and been fourteen years a resident within the United States. The president and vice-president are chosen by electors designated in such a manner as the legislature of each State shall direct. The number of electors, in each State is equal to the whole number of senators and representa- tives. - Of the powers of the President. “The president of the United States is commander in chief of the army and navy, and of the militia when in actual service. He grants reprieves and pardons; nominates, and, with the consent of the senate, ap- points ambassadors, judges, and other officers; and, with the advice and consent of the senate, forms treaties, provided two thirds of the senate agree. He fills vacancies in offices which happen during the recess of the senate. He convenes the con- gress on extraordinary occasions, receives foreign ministers gives information to congress of the state of publick affairs, an in general, takes care that the laws be faithfully executed. º the Judiciary. “The Judiciary of the United States consists of one supreme court, and such inferiour courts as the Congress shall ordain. The judges are to hold their offices du- ring good behaviour, and their salaries cannot be diminished during their continuance in office. The judicial power of these courts extends to all cases in law and equity, arising under the constitution, or laws of the United States, and under treaties; to cases of publick ministers and consuls; to all cases of admiralty and maritime jurisdiction; to controversies between the States, and in which the United States are a party; between citizens of different States; between a State and a citizen of another State, and between citizens of the same State, claiming under grants ºf different States; and to causes between one of the States or an American citizen, and a foreign State or citizen. ... Of Rights and Immunities. “In all criminal trials, except the United States, and adhering to their enemies giving them * son is restricted to the simple acts of levying war again aid and comfort; and no person can be convicted, but by two witnesses to the same act, or by confession in open court. A conviction of treason is not followed by a corruption of blood, to disinherit the heirs of the criminal, nor by a forfeiture of estate, apt dur life of the offender. . . g ate are e the seve - º ºš privileges and immunities Congress may admit new States into º 256 period v.1783.1789. EstablishMENT or union, and the national compact guarantees, to each State, are- publican form of government, together with protection from ſo- reign invasion and domestick violence.” % Section VII. By a resolution of the conven. tion, it was recommended that assemblies should be called, in the different States, to discuss the merits of the constitution, and either accept or reject it; and, that as soon as nine States should have ratified it, it should be carried into operation by congress. * . § To decide the interesting question, respecting the adoption or rejection of the new constitution, the best talents of the several States were as- 'sembled in their respective conventions. The fate of the constitution could, for a time, be scarcely conjectured, so equally were the parties balanced. But, at length, the conventions of eleven States” assented to, and ratified the con- Section VIII. From the moment it was settled that this new arrangement, in their political sys- tem, was to take place, the attention of all class- es of people, as well anti-federalists as federal- ists, (for, by these names, the parties for and against the new constitution were called.) was directed to General Washington, as the first president of the United States. Accordingly, on the opening of the votes, for President, at New- York, March 3d, 1789, by delegates from eleven States, it was found that he was unanimously elected to that office, and that John Adams was el resident. THE FEDERAL constitution. 25" Notts. Section IX ſtatuterg. The war of the revolution, as was observed in our notes on the last period, seriously affected the morals and manners of the people of the United States. The peace of 1783, however, tended, in a mea- sure to restore things to their former state. Those sober habits, for which the country was previously distinguished, began to return; busi- ness assumed a more regular and equitable cha- racter; the tumultuous passions, roused by the war, subsided; and men of wisdom and worth began to acquire their proper influence. The change wrought in the manners of the people, during the revolution, began, in this pe. riod, to appear. National peculiarities wore away still more ; local prejudices were further corrected, and a greater assimilation of the yet discordant materials, of which the population of the United States was composed, took place. Section X. ſteligiott. Methodism was introduced into the United States, during this eriod, under the direction of John Wesley, in England. This denomination increased rapidly in the Middle States, and, in 1789, they amount- ed to about fifty thousand. . . . During this period, also, the infidelity, which we have notic- ed, seems to have lost ground. Publick worship was more punc- tually attended, than during the war, and the cause of religion began again to flourish. " Section XI. QTraut auty Cominterce. The commerce of the United States, during the war of the revolution, as already stated, was nearly destroyed; but, on the return of peace, it revived. An excessive importation of goods immediately took place from º § 258 period vi.1785.11sq. Establishment of the imports, from England alone, amounted to eighteen millions of dollars, and in 1785, to twelve millions—making, in those two years, thirty millions of dollars, while the exports of the United States to England were only between eight and nine millions. On the average of six years posterior to the war, the extent of this period, the imports from Great Britain into the United States, were two millions, one hundred and nineteen thousand, eight hundred and thirty-seven pounds sterling; the exports nine hundred and eight thousand, six hundred and thirty-six ounds sterling, leaving an annual balance of five millions, three hundred and twenty-nine thousand, two hundred and eighty- four dollars in favour of Great Britain. .. & The commercial intercourse of the United States with other countries was less extensive, than with England, yet it was not inconsiderable. From France and her dependencies, the United States imported, in 1787, to the amount of about two millions, five hundred thousand dollars, and exported to the same, to the value of five millions dollars. . The trade of the United States with China commenced soon after the close of the revolutionary war. The first American vessel that went on a trading voyage to China, sailed from New-York, on the 22d of February, 1784, and returned on th: 11th of May 1785. In 1789 there were fifteen American ves. sels at Canton, being a greater number, than from any other na- on, except Great Britain. * During this period, also, the Americans commenced the long rica. The first of the kind, undertaken from the United States, was from Boston, in 1788, in a ship commanded by Capt. Ken- drick. The trade afforded great profits, at first, and since 1788, has been carried on from the United States to a considerable lery, which during the war, was suspended, re- : of peace. From 1787 to 1789, both inclu- ninety-one vessels were employed from the United States, A one thousand six hundredſ and eleven seamen. Nearly . of spermacity oil were annually taken, els of whale oil. . . . THE FEDERAL constitution, 259 years, the exports of produce raised in the Uni ted States were again considerable. Attention began to be paid to the culture of cotton, in the southern States, about the year 1783, and it soon became a staple of that part of the country. About the same time, agricultural societies be- gan to be formed in the country. Section XIII. 3 tº tº attºſ ſúaſtuttfätttittg. The excessive importation of merchandize from Great Britain, during this period—much of which was sold at low prices—checked the progress of manufactures in the United States, which had been extensively begun, during the war of the revolution. Iron works, however, for the con- struction of axes, ironing of carriages, and the making of machinery, &c. &c. were still kept up in all parts of the United States. Some coarse woollen and linen cloths, cabinet furniture, and the more bulky and simple utensils for domes- tick use, &c. &c. were manufactured, in New- England. £ Section XIV, 330ptilation. The population of the United States, at the close of this period, was nearly four millions. Section XV. 35?ſtttàtiott. Several colleges were established, during this period—one in Maryland, at Annapolis, called St. John's col- lege; a second, in 1785, at Abington, in the same state, by the Methodists, called Cokesbury college; a third, in the city of New-York; and a fourth, in Lancaster, Pennsylvania, in 1787 —The former, by the name of Columbia college, and the latter, by that of Franklin college. The North Carolina university was incorporated in 1789. The subject of education, during this period, 260 PERIOD vi.1753.1789. ESTABLISHMENT of seems to have attracted publick attention throughout the United States, and permanent in. stitutions, for the instruction of youth, were either planned, or established, in every section of the country. littlections. XVI. The history of the world furnishes no parallel to the history of the United States during this short period. At the commencement of it, they had but just emerged from akx g and distressing war, which had nearly exhausted the country, and imposed an accumulated debt upon the nation. They were united by a confederation inadequate to the purposes of govern- ment; they had just disbanded an army which was unpaid, and dissatisfied, and more than all, they were untried in the art of self-government. . *: 3 In circumstances like these, it would not have been strange had the people fallen into dissensions and anarchy, or had some bold, ambitious spirit arisen, and fastened theyoke of monarchy upon them. But a happier destiny awaited them. In this hour of peril, the same Providence, that had guided them thus far, still watched over them, and, as victory was granted them in the hour of battle, so wisdom was now vouchsafed in a day of peace. Those master spirits of the revolution, some of whom had recently retired from the camp to the enjoyment of civil life, were now called to devise the means of securing the inde- pendence which they had won. Perhaps they exhibited to the world a no less striking spectacle as the framers of our excch. sont constitution, than as victors over the arms of Britain. UNITED STATEs. atriot tºº. Distinguished by washington's ADMINISTRA- . . TION. Extending from the inauguration of President Washington, 1789, to the inauguration of John Adams, as president of the United States, Section I. On the 30th of April, 1789, Gen. Washington, in the presence of the firstcongress, under the Federal Constitution, and before an immense concourse of spectators, was inducted into the office of President of the United States, by taking the oath prescribed by the constitu- tion. w º . . .” . Intelligence of his election was communicated to Washington, while on his farm in Virginia. On his way to New-York, to enter upon the duties of his station, he received, in almost every place through which he passed, the highest expressions of affec- tion and respect, that a grateful people could pay. . . . . . . Soon after his arrival in New-York, a day was assigned for his taking the oath of office. On the morning of that day, publick prayers were offered in all the churches. At noon, a procession was formed, which escorted Washington, dressed on the occa- sion wholly in American manufactures, to Federal Hall. Here the oath prescribed by the constitution was administered to him, by the chancellour of the State of New-York. The ceremonies of the inauguration being concluded, Wash- ington entered the senate chamber, and delivered his first speech. In this, after expressing the reluctance with which he obeyed the call of his country. men, from repose and retirement, so ardently coveted, after a series of military toils, and the diffidence with which he entered upon an office, so full of responsibility, he pro- “It will be peculiarly improper to omit, in this first official 262 PERIOD VII....1789.1797. act, my ſervent supplications to that Almighty Being, who rules over the universe; who presides in the councils of nations,” &c. Thus did Washington, in the commencement of his ad- ministration, publickly appear on the side of religion ; nor was he ashamed to acknowledge, before the nation, his sense of de- pendence upon God, for wisdom and direction. Section II. Business of importance, in rela, tion to the organization and support of the new government, now pressed upon the attention of the president, and of congress. A revenue was to be provided; the departments of government were to be arranged and filled; a judiciary was to be established, and its officers appointed and provision was to be made for the support of publick credit. After a long discussion, congress agreed to raise a revenue for the support of government by impost and tonnage duties. Having next fixed upon, and arranged the several depart- ments of the government, the president, whose duty it was, proceeded to nominate the proper persons to fill them. In performing this ser- vice, he appears to have been actuated, simply, by a regard to the best good of the country. Mr. Jefferson was selected for the department. of State; Col. Hamilton was appointed secre- tary of the treasury; Gen. Knox secretary of war, and Edmund Randolph attorney general. At the head of the judiciary was placed Joh Jay, an 4. with him & were po .8% washington's ADMINISTRATION. 26s After a long and animated discussion of the subject, twelve new articles were agreed upon, which, when submitted to the respective State legislatures, were approved by three-fourths of them, and were thus added to the constitution. Congress adjourned on the 29th of Septem- ber. It was among their concluding acts, to direct the secretary of the treasury to prepare a plan for adequately providing for the support of the public credit, and to report the same at their next meeting. . Section III. During the recess of congress, Washington made a tour into New-England. Passing through Connecticut and Massachu- setts, and into New-Hampshire, as far as Ports- mouth, he returned by a different route to New- With this excursion, the president had much reason to be gra- tified. To observe the progress of society, the improvements in agriculture, commerce, and manufactures, and the temper, circumstances, and dispositions of the people—while it could not fail to please an intelligent and benevolent mind, was, in all respects, worthy of the chief magistrate of the nation. He was every where received with expressions of the purest affection, and could not fail to rejoice in the virtue, religion, happiness, and prosperity of the people, at the head of whose government he was placed. Section IV. The second session of the first congress commenced, January 8th, 1790. In ob to the resolution of the former con- gress, the secretary of the treasury, Mr. Hamil- n, made his report on the subject of main- In this report, he strongly recommende congress, as the only mode, in his opinion, in which the public credit would be sup #º 1. That provision be made for the full dis- 264 PERIOD villiºso. charge of the foreign debt, according to the precise terms of the contract. 2. That provision be made for the payment of the domestick debt, in a similar manner. 3 That the debts of the several States, created for the purpose of carrying on the war be assumed by the general government. . . . , The proposal for making adequate provision for the foreign debt was met, cordially and una. nimously; but, respecting the full discharge of the domestic debt, and the assumption of the State debts, much division prevailed in con- gress. After a spirited and protracted debate on these subjects, the recommendation of the secretary prevailed, and bills conformable thereto passed, by a small majority. The division of sentiment among the members of congress, in relation to the full, or only a partial payment of the domestick debt, arose from this. A considerable proportion of the origin- al holders of publick securities had found it necessary to sell them, at a reduced price—even as low as two or three shillings on the pound. These securities had been purchased by specu- fators, with the expectation of ultimately receiving the full amount. Under these circumstances, it was contended by some, that congress would perform their duty, should they pay to all holders of publick securities only the reduced market price. Others advocated a discrimination between the present holders of securities, and those to whom the debt was originally due, eral his report, Mr. Hamilton ably examined these se . #. ints, and strongly maintained the justice of paying to all lolders of securities, without discrimination, the full value of what appeared on the face of their tertificates. This he con- ice demanded, and for this, the public faith was e debts, the constitutional authority of the federa nt for this purpose was questioned; and the policy easure controverted. . . he several debts whic * to discharge, the pr washingtoN's ADMIN ISTRATION. 260 publick lands, lying in the western territory, were directed to be applied, together with the surplus revenue, and a loan of two millions of . which the president was authorized to borrow, at an interest of five per cent. This measure laid the foundation of publick credit upon such a basis, that government paper soon rose from two shillings and six pence to twenty shillings on the pound, and, inde , for a short time, was above par. Individuals, who had purchased certificates of public debt low, realized immense fortunes. A general spring was given to the affairs of the nation. A spirit of enterprise, of agriculture, and commerce, º prevailed, and the foundation was thus laid for that unrivalled prosperity which the United States, in subsequent years, enjoyed. Section W. During this session of congress, a bill was passed, fixing the seat of government for ten years at Phikadelphia, and, from and after that time, permanently at Washington, on the Potomac. . .” Section VI. On the 4th of March, 1791, VER- Mont, by consent of congress, became one of the United States. The tract of country, which is now known by the nº £ ame of Vermont, was settled at a much later period, than any other of the eastern states. The governments of New-York and Massa- chusetts made large grants of territory in the direction of Ver- mont; but it was not until 1724, that any actual possession wa taken of land, within the present boundaries of the State. In that year, Fort Durance was built, by the officers of Ma tºº.º. 3..."::" 266 PERIOD vii.1789.1797. ceived herself to have a better right to the territory, in conse- quence of the grant of Charles II. to his brother the duke of York. These states being thus at issue, the case was submitted to the English crown, which decided in favour of New-York, and confirmed its jurisdiction, as far as Connecticut river. In this decision New Hampshire acquiesced; but New-York per- sisting in its claims to land east of the river, actions of eject- ment were instituted in the courts at Albany, which resulted in favour of the New-York title. The settlers, however, deter- mined to resist the officers of justice, and under Ethan Allen, associated together to oppose the New-York militia, which were called out to enforce the laws. & … On the commencement of the revolution, the people of Ver- mont were placed in an embarrassing situation. They had no even a form of government. The jurisdiction of New-York being disclaimed, and allegiance to the British crown refused, every thing was effected by voluntary agreement. In January, 1777, a convention met and proclaimed that the district before known by the name of the New Hampshire grants, was of right a free and independent jurisdiction, and should be henceforth called New Connecticut, alias Vermont. The convention pro- ceeded to make known their proceedings to congress, and peti- tioned to be admitted into the confederacy. To this, New- York objected, and for a time, prevailed. Other difficulties arose with New Hampshire and Massachusetts, each of which laid claim to land within the present boundaries of the state. At the peace of 1783, Vermont found herself a sovereign and inde- pendent state de facto, united with no confederation and there- membarrassed by the debts that weighed down ther states. New-York still claimed jurisdiction over the state, but was unable to enforce it, and the state government was admin- istered as regularly as in any of the other states. Afte ormation of the federal constitution, Vermont again requested into the Union. The opposition of New-York was but in 1789 was finally withdrawn, upon the con- er the sum of thirty thousand dollars. ºrsy which had been carried on with washingtoN's ADMINISTRATION. 267 mended a tax on domestick spirits, to enable them to pay the interest. The discussion of the bill having been postponed to the third session, was early in that session taken up. The tax, contemplated by the bill, was opposed with great vehemence, by a majority of southern and western members, on the ground that it was un- necessary and unequal, and would be particu- larly burdensome upon those parts of the Union, which could not, without very great expense, procure foreign ardent spirits. Instead of this tax, these members proposed an increased duty on imported articles generally, a particular duty on molasses, a direct tax, or a tax on salaries, &c. &c. After giving rise to an angry and protracted debate, the bill passed, by a majority of thirty-five to twenty-one. . Section VIII. The secretary next appeared with a recommendation for a national bank. A bill, conforming to his plan, being sent down from the senate, was permitted to progress, un- molested, in the house of representatives, to the third reading. On the final reading, an unex- pected opposition appeared against it, on the ground that banking systems were useless, that the proposed bill was defective, but, especially, that congress was not vested, by the constitu. tion, with the competent power to establish a national bank. . & These several objections were met by ti supporters of the bill, with much strengt argument. After a debate of great length, ported with the ardour excited by the i ance of the subject, the bill was carried 10. Of - 268 ERIOD v.1789.1797. . A bill which had been agitated with so much warmth, in the house of representatives, the executive was now called upon to examine with reference to its sanction or rejection. The pre- sident required the opinions of the cabinet in writing. The se- cretary of state, Mr. Jefferson, and the attorney general, Mr. Randolph, considered the bill as decidedly unconstitutional. The secretary of the treasury, Mr. Hamilton, with equal deci sion, maintained the opposite opinion. A deliberate investiga tion of the subject satisfied the president, both of the constitu tionality and utility of the bill, upon which he gave it his signa ture, - - - à The bill which had now passed, with those relating to the fi mances of the country, the assumption of the state debts, the funding of the national debt, &c. contributed greatly to the com- plete organization of those distinct and visible parties, which, in their long and ardent conflict for power, have since shaken the United States to their centre. Af Section IX. While matters of high importance were occupying the attention, and party strife and conflicting interests were filling the coun- sels of congress with agitation, an Indian war opened on the north-western frontier of the States. Paeifick arrangements had been at- tempted by the president with the hostile tribes, without effect. On the failure of these, an of fensive expedition was planned against the tribes, northwest of the Ohio. . . The command of the troops, consisting of three hundred regulars, and about one thousand two hundred Pennsylvania and Kentucky mi- litia, was given to Gen. Harmar, a veteran officer of the revolution. His instructions re- quired him, if possible, w bring the Indians to ir settlements, on the waters of the Scioto, # § WASHINGTON'S ADMINISTRATION. 269 Chilicothe, he was routed with considerable loss. Upon the failure of Gen. Harmar, Major-Ge- neral Arthur St. Clair was appointed to succeed him. Under the authority of an act of congress, the president caused a body of levies to be rais- ed for six months, for the Indian service. . Section X. Having arranged the northwest- ern expedition, directing St. Clair to destroy the Indian villages, on the Miami, and to drive the savages from the Ohio, the president com: menced a tour through the southern States, simi- lar to that which he had made through the northern and central parts of the union, in 1789. The same expressions of respect and affection awaited him, in every stage of his tour, which had been so zealously accorded to him in the north. Here, also, he enjoyed the high satisfaction' of witnessing the most happy effects, resulting from the admi- mistration of that government over which he presided. Section XI. On the 24th of October, 1791, the second congress commenced its first session. Among the subjects that early engaged their attention, was a bill “for apportioning represen- tatives among the people of the several States, according to the first census.” After much dis- cussion, concerning the ratio that should be adopted, between representation and population, congress finally fixed it at one representative to each State, for every thirty-three thousand in- habitants. . e se The first bill fixed the ratio at one representative for thirty thousand inhabitants; but to this bill the not agree. A second bill was introduced, received by the president, that the army under Gen. St. Clair, in battle with the Indians, near the Miami, in Ohio, had been totally defeated on the 4th of the preceding month. ºn The army of St. Clair amounted to near one thousand five hundred men. The Indian force consisted of nearly the same number. Of the loss of the Indians, no estimate could be form- ed; but the loss of the Americans was unusually severe; thirty- eight commissioned officers were killed in the field, and five hundred and ninety-three non-commissioned officers and privates were slain and missing. Between two and three hundred offi- cers and privates were wounded, many of whom afterwards died. This result of the expedition was as unexpected, as un- fortunate; but no want either of ability, zeal or intrepidity, was ascribed, by a committee of congress, appointed to examine the causes of its failure, to the commander of the expedition... . . Section XIII. Upon the news of St. Clair's defeat, a bill was introduced into congress for raising three additional regiments of infantry, and a squadron of cavalry, to serve for three years, if not sooner discharged. This bill, al- though finally carried, met with an opposition more warm and pointed, from the opposers of administration, than any which had before agitated in the house. By those who opposed the bill, it was urged that the war with the Indians was unjust; that militia would answer as well, and even better than regular troops, and would be less expensive to support; that adequate funds could not be provided; and more a s addition of one regiment to the army after ano- intimation of monarchical designs, on the part of nistered the government. hand, the advocates of the bill contended, that that between the years 1783 hundr washington's ADMINISTRATION. 271 ber. The asperity which, on more than one occasion, had discovered itself in the course of debate, was a certain index of the growing ex- asperation of parties. With their adjournment, the conflicting feelings of members in a measure subsided; the opposition, however, to the admi- nistration, had become fixed. It was carried into retirement—was infused by members into their constituents, and a party was thus formed throughout the nation, hostile to the plans of government adopted by Washington, and his friends in the cabinet. . Section XV. On the first of June, 1792, KEN- Tucky, by act of congress, was admitted into the Union as a State. The country, now called Kentucky, was well known to the Indian traders, many years before its settlement. By whom it. was first explored, is a matter of uncertainty, and has given rise to controversy. In 1752, a map was published by Lewis Evans, of the country on the Ohio and Kentucky rivers; and it seems that one James Macbride, with others, visited this re- gion in 1754. No further attempt was made to explore the country until 1767, when John Finley of North Carolina, tra- velled over the ground on the Kentucky river, called by the In- dians, “the dark and bloody ground.” On returning to Caro- lina, Finley communicated his discoveries to Col. Daniel Boone, who in 1769, with some others, undertook to explore the couni try. After a long and fatiguing march, they discovered the beautiful valley of Kentucky. Col. Boone continued an inhabit ant of this wilderness until 1771, when he returned to his fa- "...º mily for the purpose of removing them, and forming a settlement in the new country. In 1773, having made the necessary pre- parations, he set out again with five families and forty men, from Powell's Valley, and after various impediments, re Kentucky river, in March 1775, where he commenced a n the years, 1778, 1779, and 1780, a considerable of persons emigrated to Kentucky; yet, in this latterye an unusually severe winter, the inhabitants were so dist that they came the determination of abandoning the cour ºr. tunately diverted from this step 272 PERIod vii.1789.1197. severely from the Indians, incited by the British government. In 1778, Gen. Clarke overcame the Indians, and laid waste their villages. From this time the inhabitants began to feel more secure, and the settlements were ex 'nded. In 1779, the legislature of Virginia, within whose limits this region lay, erect- ed it into a county. In 1782, a supreme ourt, with an attor- ney-general, was established within the district. In the years 1783, 1784, and 1785, the district was laid out into counties, and a great part of the country surveyed and patented. In 1785, , an attempt was made to form an independent State; but a ma- jority of the inhabitants being opposed to the measure, it was delayed until December, 1790, when it became a separate state. In 1792, as stated above, it was admitted into the Union. The growth of Kentucky has been rapid, and she has obtained a respectable rank and influence among her sister States. Section XVI. During the recess of congress, preparations were hastened by the president, for a vigorous prosecution of the war with the Indians; but such small inducements were pre- sented to engage in the service, that a sufficient number of recruits could not be raised to autho- rize an expedition against them the present year. As the clamour against the war, by the opposers of the administration, was still loud, the president deemed it advisable, while prepa-, rations for hostilities were advancing, to make another effort at negotiation, with the un- friendly Indians. The charge of this business was committed to Col. Harden and Maj. Free- man, two brave officers, and valuable men, who murdered by the savages. won X v11. O. §: ; ; ‘ess, in November, a motion was made e the military establishment, but it did I The debate on this subject was washington's ADMINISTRATION. 273 e treasury, Mr. Hamilton, of misconduct, In re- lation to certain loans, negotiated under his di- rection. In three distinct reports, sent to the house, the secretary offered every required explanation, and ably defended himself against the attacks of the opposition. Mr. Giles, and some others, however, were not satisfied: other resolutions were, therefore, offered, which, although re- jected, were designed to fix upon the secretary the reputation of an ambitious man, aiming at the acquisition of dangerous power. During these discussions, vehement attacks were made upon the secretary, in the publick prints. Hints also were suggested against the president himself; and although he was not openly accused of being the head of the federal party, of favouring their cause, or designing to subvert the liberties of his country, yet it was apparent that such suspicions were entertained of him. On the 3d of March, 1793, a constitutional period was put to the existence of this congress. The members separated with obvious symptoms of irritation; and it was not to be doubted that their efforts would be exerted to communicate to their constituents the feelings which agitated their bosoms. Section XVIII. The time had now arrived, 1793, when the electors of the States were again called upon to choose a chief magistrate of the Union, Washington had determined t hold himself from being again elected re y, and to retire from the cares of nted the declaration of his wishe 274 PERIou vii.1789.1797. vours of the president to terminate the Indian war, a treaty had been negotiated with the In- dians, on the Wabash; and through the inter. vention of the Six Nations, those of the Miamis had consented to a conference during the ensuing spring. Offensive operations were, therefore, suspended, although the recruiting service was industriously urged, and assiduous attention was paid to the discipline and prepa ration of the troops. . Section XX. The Indian war, though of real importance, was becoming an object of sccond- ary consideration. The revolution in France was now progressing, and began so to affect our relation with that country, as to require an ex- ertion of all the wisdom and firmness of the go- vernment. Early in April, also, information was received of the declaration of war by France, against England and Holland. This event excited the deepest interest in the United States. A large majority of the people, grateful for the aid that France had given us in our revolution, and devoted to the cause of li- berty, were united in fervent wishes for the suc- ºcess of the French republick.” At the same *The revolution in France commenced about the year 1789. It seems to have been hastened, or brought on, by the new ideas of freedom, which - had been imbibed by the French army in the United States, and thence º inated among the people of France, for a long time oppressed and ed by a despotick government. Unfortunately, the rev. fell hands of selfish and unprincipled men, who, in 1793, º . after, his family, washingtoN's ADMINISTRATION. 275 time, the prejudices against Great Britain, which had taken deep root during the revolution, now sprung forth afresh, and the voice of many was heard, urging the propriety of the United States making a common cause with France against Great Britain. A pressing occurrence had called Washing- ton to Mount Vernon, when intelligence arrived of the rupture between France and England. Hastening his return to Philadelphia, he sum- moned the attention of his cabinet to several questions respecting the course of conduct, pro- per for the United States to observe in relation to the belligerents. * . %. * . . . . . . ; Although sensible of the prejudices existing in the country against Great Britain, and of the friendly disposition which prevailed towards France, it was the unanimous opinion of the cabinet, that a strict neutrality should be ob- served by the United States towards the con- tending powers. The council was also unani- mous that a minister from the French Repub- lick should be received, should one be sent. In accordance with the advice of his ca he president issued his proclamation of neu- trality, on the 22d of April, 1793. This pro- clamation, being without legislative sanction, soon became the subject of loud invective. The opposition party, through the press, pronounced “a royal edict,” an assumption of po --> the part of the president, and a proof of ń. ision, instead of unbridled 276 PERíoD vii.1789.1797. duct of the executive as dishonourable, and an act of neutrality, as high ingratitude towards France, the firm and magnanimous ally of the United States, which had assisted in achieving the liberties of the country. Section XXI. In this state of things, the Re- publick of France recalled the minister of the crown, and appointed Mr. Genet to succeed him. His mission had for its object the enlist- ing of America in the cause of France, against Great Britain. Flattered by the manner in which he was received by the people, as well as by their professions of attachment to his coun- try, Mr. Genet early anticipated the accomplish- ment of his object.—Presuming too much upon this attachment, he was led into a series of acts infringing the neutrality proclaimed by the pre- sident. He also attempted to rouse the people against the government, because it did not se- cond all his views. At length, on the advice of his cabinet, the president solicited of the French Republick the recall of Mr. Genet, and the appointment of some one to succeed him. Monsieur Fauchet was appointed, and was .in- ‘ucted to assure the American government, tºr . ally disapproved of the conduct 3. He was received by the governour of that State, and French and Indian War. p. 116. holding courts of admiralty on them, of trying and condemning them, and of authorizing their sale. Upon a complaint of the Bri- tish minister, Mr. Hammond, the American cabinet unanimously condemned those proceedings, and agreed that the efficacy of the laws should be tried against those citizens, who had been con- cerned in them. Prosecutions were accordingly ordered and ac- tually commenced. º, . : § The decisions and conduct of the cabinet gave great umbrage to Genet, who had now been accredited as the minister of France. In his communications to the secretary of state, his dissatisfaction was expressed in strong terms, and the executive charged with holding opinions, and adopting a course diametri- cally opposed to the views and wishes of the American people. In language highly offensive and reprehensible, he demanded that those persons under arrest, by order of the government of the United States, should be released, “on the ground that they were acting under the authority of France, and defending the glorious cause of liberty in common with her children.” And at length, he incautiously avowed the purpose, should his de- mands not be complied with, of appealing from the president to the people. x The language and conduct of Genet made a deep impression on the officers of the administration; but happily, they preserv- ed, in all their communications with that gentleman, a becoming dignity, and continued to express a high respect and affection for his nation, and an earnest desire to promote its interests. On the meeting of congress, December, 1793, the proclama- tion of neutrality was approved by them, as well as the conduct Finding on most questions, arising between the French minis- ter and the government of the United States, a wide and an in- creasing difference of views, and perceiving no beneficial effects resulting from his continuance in that character, the cabir unanimously advised his recall. action XXII. 1794. On the last day. per, 1793, Mr. Jefferson, the sec signed his office, and was succeeded and Randolph, the then attorney-gen ; latter office was filled by William he session of con- N. d to provide a naval force adequate to the protection of the commerce of the United States, against the Al- gerine corsairs. The force proposed was to consist of six frigates, four of forty-four, and two of thirty-six guns. -: . This measure was founded upon the communications of the president, from which it appeared that the prospect of being able to negotiate a treaty of peace with the dey of Algiers was doubtful; that eleven American merchant vessels, and upwards of one hundred citizens had been captured by them; and that further preparations were making for a renewed attack upon un- protected vessels, belonging to the United States. . . Section XXIV. During this session of congress, a law passed, prohibiting the carrying on of the slave trade from the American ports. x: ; ; ; * England had been actively engaged in the slave trade nearly fifty years, when the first settlement was effected in Virginia. Slavery was early introduced into the American colonies, The first slaves, about twenty in number, were brought to Virginia, in 1619, by a Dutch ship. The importation of them gradually increased, and although principally bought by the southern planters, slaves were soon found, in great numbers, in all the colonies. In 1784, they amounted to six hundred thousand. In 1790, to six hundred and ninety-seven thousand six hundred and ninety-six. x A disgust towards this inhuman traffick appeared very early in the colonies; but it was countenanced and patronized by the English government, and thus introduced into, and fastened upon the country, without the power, on the part of the colonies, to arrest it. % . sº In Massachusetts, in 1645, a law was made, “prohibiting the buying and selling of slaves, except those taken in lawful war, or reduced to servitude by their crimes.” In 1703, the same colony imposed a heavy duty on every negro imported, and in a subsequent law on the subject, they called the practice, “ the unnatural and unaccountable custom of enslaving man- kind.” In Virginia, as early as 1699, attempts were made to repress the importation of slaves, by heavy duties. These, and other acts, show that the North American provinces would, if left to themselves, have put an end to the importation of slaves before the era of their independence. . . . * 3 & sland, Pennsylvania, and Massachusetts prohi t before the year 1789. The continental congress passed a reso- washingtoN's ADMINISTRATION. 279 fution against the purchase of slaves, imported from Africa, and exhorted the colonies to abandon the trade altogether. The third congress of the United States, as stated above, prohibited the trade, by law. Thus we see, in the United States, a very early and settled aversion to the slave trade manifesting itself, and before European nations had consented to relinquish it, several of the States had utterly prohibited it. - - Section XXV. At this session, also, several measures were adopted in anticipation of a war with Great Britain, growing out of her commer- cial restriction, which bore heavy, and operated most unjustly upon the U. States. Bills were passed for laying an embargo for thirty days– for erecting fortifications—for organizing the militia, and increasing the standing army. As an adjustment of differences, however, seemed desirable, Mr. Jay was appointed envoy extraor- dinary to the court of St. James, and succeeded in negotiating a treaty with Great Britain the following year. . . Among the offensive acts of the government of Great Britain, was an order of June, 1793, prohibiting the exportation of corn to France, and authorizing the capture of neutral vessels car- rying it thither. Under this order, many American vessels were captured, and carried into England. In November fol- towing, additional instructions were given by the British cabinet, to ships of war, and privateers, to bring into port, for trial, all ships laden with goods from France, or her colonies, and such as were carrying provisions, or other supplies, to either. To these causes of complaint, Great Britain had added another, viz. neglecting to deliver up the western posts accord ing to treaty. . . . % º, While measures were taking, in anticipation of war, the pre- sident received advices from England, that the order of Novem- ber had been considerably modified; that most of the merchant vessels, which had been carried into port for trial, would be re- leased; and that a dispositien for peace with the United States existed in the British cabinet. These advices opened to the president a prospect of restoring a good understanding between the two nations, and induced him & . º OD W.1789.1797, º Mr. jay e. by a majority often, . § To those opposed to the administration, no step could have been more unexpected, or disagreeable, than this decisive mea- sure of the president. Prejudices against Great Britain had risen to their height, and hostilities against her were loudly de- manded, as both just and necessary. It was not singular, there- fore, that for this act, the president should receive the severest censures of the opposition party, nor that all who favoured his efforts for peace should be included in the general denunciation. Section XXVI. The suspension of hostilities against the Indians in the northwest, in conse- quence of their consenting to a conference in the spring of 1794, has already been noticed This effort to conclude a treaty with them fail- ing, Gen. Wayne, who had succeeded Gen. St. Clair, engaged the Indians, August 20th, 1794, on the banks of the Miami, and gained a com- plete victory over them. . . . . . . . . . The American troops engaged in this battle did not exceed nine hundred; the Indians amounted to two thousand. In this decisive engagement, Gen Wayne lost one hundred and seven in killed and wounded, including officers. After the battle he proceeded to lay waste the whole Indian country. By means of this victory over the Miamis, a general war with the Six Na- tions, and all the tribes northwest of the Ohio, was prevented. Section XXVII. This year, 1794, was dis- tinguished by an insurrection in Pennsylvania, growing out of laws enacted by congress, in 1791, laying duties on spirits distilled within the United States, and upon stills. In August, the president issued his proclamation, commanding the insurgents to disperse. This not having the desired effect, a respectable body of militia was ordered out, under Gov. Lee, of Maryland, on whose approach the insurgents laid down their arms, solicited the clemency of the govern- § ment, and promised future submission to the From the time that duties were laid upon spirits distilled with wASHINGTON'S ADMINISTRATION. 281 in the United States, &c. combinations were formed, in the four western counties of Pennsylvania, to prevent their collection Numerous meetings were held at different times and places, at which resolutions were passed, and, in several instances, violences were committed upon the officers of the revenue. Eighteen of the insurgents were taken, and tried for treason, but not con- victed. & º Section XXVIII. 1795. January 1st, Col. Hamilton resigned the office of secretary of the treasury, and was succeeded by Oliver Wolcott, of Connecticut. Nearly at the same time, Ti- mothy Pickering succeeded Gen. Knox, in the department of war. ~ . Section XXIX. In June, Mr. Jay, having succeeded in negotiating a treaty with Great Britain, the senate was convened to consider its merits. After an elaborate discussion of it, that body advised to its ratification by a majority of twenty to ten. Notwithstanding the great op- position to it that prevailed among the enemies of Great Britain, the president gave it his sig- nature. Contrary to the predictions of many in the country, the treaty settled existing difficul- ties between the two nations, prevented a war, which previously seemed fast approaching, and proved of great advantage to the United States. The treaty, when published, found one party prepared for its condemnation, while the other was not ready for its defence. Time was necessary for a judicious and careful consideration of erits. X. In the populous cities, meetings were immediately called, and resolutions and addresses forwarded to the president, requesting him to withhold his assent. Upon the president, however, these had no oth §§ her effect, than to induce him to weigh still more care- the merits of the treaty. When, at length, he was s º utility, he signed it, although he thereby incurred the of a numerous portion of the citizens. º Y. In the course of the follow }. # s were concluded with th By the former treaty, American citizens, in cap- tivity in Algiers, were liberated, and by the lat- ter, the western frontiers of the United States were secured from savage invasion. A treaty with Spain soon after followed, by which the claims of the United States, on the important oints of boundary, and the navigation of the Mississippi, were fully conceded. Section XXXI. On the 1st of June, 1796, TENNEssee was admitted, by act of congress, into the Union as a State. Tennessee derives its name from its principal river. This name, in the language of the Indians, signifies a curved spoon, the curvature, to their imaginations, resembling that of the river Tennessee. The territory of Tennessee was granted in 1664, by Charles II. to the earl of Clarendon, and others, being included in the limits of the Carolinas. About the beginning of the next cen- tury, Carolina was divided into two provinces, and Tennessee fell to the lot of the northern province. Near the year 1754, fifty families were settled on the Cumberland river, where Nash- ville now stands; but they were dislodged by the savages soon after. In 1765, a number of emigrants settled themselves be- yond the present limits of North Carolina, and were the first of the colonists of Tennessee. By the year 1773, the inhabitants had considerably increased. When the constitution of North Carolina was formed, in 1776, that district sent deputies to the meeting. In the year 1780, a small colony of about forty fami- lies, under the direction of James Robertson, crossed the moun- tains, and settled on the Cumberland river, where they founded Nashville. In 1785, the inhabitants of Tennessee, feeling the inconveniencies of a government so remote as that in the capital of North Carolina, cndeavoured to form an independent one, to which they intended to give the name of the “ State of Frank- lin;” but differing among themselves, the scheme for the time was abandoned. In 1789, the legislature of North Carolina passed an act, ceding the territory, on certain conditions, to the Inited States. Congress, in the following year, accepted the ision, and by another act, passed on the §§ of May, 1790, ded for its government under the title of “The territory of the United States, south of the O 1796 pras "assed an act enabling the people to form a state constitution which having been adopted and approved, Tennessee was ac- knowledged as a sovereign state in the union. - Section XXXII. On the meeting of congress in 1796, resolutions were passed to carry into effect the treaties negotiated the preceding year. On the subject of the treaty with Great Britain, the liveliest sensibility still prevailed. After a . spirited and protracted debate of seven weeks, on the subject of making the necessary arrange- ments for this treaty, resolutions to that effect passed the house by a majority of only three. Section XXXIII. As the time for a new election of the chief magistrate of the Union approached, Gen. Washington signified his in- tention to retire from publick life. Wishing to terminate his political course with an act suit- able to his own character, and permanently. useful to his countrymen, he published a vale- dictory address to the people of the United States, fraught with maxims of the highest po- litical importance, and with sentiments of the warmest affection for his country. . In February, 1797, the votes for his successor were opened, and counted in the presence of both houses of congress. The highest number appearing in favour of Mr. Adams, he was de- clared to be elected president of the United States, for the four years ensuing, commencing on the 4th of March. Mr. Jefferson succeeded Mr. Adams in the vice-presidency. Notts. :: º Sectº n y Ö KXIV. ºf amut tºº, -- mark, during this peri period, no very distinct 284 PERIOD VII.1789.1797. change in the manners of the people of the United States, except that the introduction of French philosophy seems to have affected, in some degree, the sober habits and strict mora. lity of the people, which, although relaxed by the war, had now begun to resume their in fluence. & Section XXXV. it eligiott. At the close of the preceding period, we observed that reli- gion had revived, in a degree, from the injuries it suffered during the revolutionary war; and we might have expected, that under the auspi- ces of a wise and settled government, conducted by a practical christian, like Washington, it would have acquired a still more commanding influence. Such, however, was not the fact. As the people of the United States heartily espoused the cause of the revolution in France, and sympathized with that people, in their strug- gle for freedom, it was but too natural, that the sentiments of the revolutionists, on other than political subjects, should be imbibed. As the French revolutionists were almost universally deists, or atheists, these sentiments were exten- sively spread over the United States. , For a time, the boldness of the enterprises, the splendour of the victories, and the importance of the conquests, achieved by the French republick, promoted the extension of French infi- delity in the United States. “Most eyes,” says Dr. Dwight, “were disabled from seeing the nature of the purposes, which the revolutionists had in view, and of the characters which were exhibited on this singular stage. In the agitation and amaze- ment excited in all men, few retained so steady opticks as to discern, without confusion, the necessary consequence of this stupendous shock.” . . . . . . . Infidelity was also greatly extended, at this time, by the w ings of Paine, Godwin, and others, which were industriously WASHINGTON'S ADMINISTRA – 285 irgulated through the country.” The perspicuous and simple style of Paine, his keen powers of ridicule, directed against the Bible, and above all, the gratitude which multitudes felt for the aid his pen had given to our revolution, contributed to impart to him a peculiarly powerful influence. His vicious life, how- ever, and the horrible enormities, committed by the French revolutionists, gave such a fearful comment upon their princi- ples, as at length, in a great measure, to bring them into dis- credit, and to arrest their growing influence. º ...Section XXXVI, grant and Commertt. These flourished, during this period, beyond all former example. In 1797, the exports of the United States, of all kinds, amounted to fifty- six millions, eight hundred and fifty thousand, two hundred and six dollars. The imports amounted to seventy-five millions, three hun- dred and seventy-nine thousand, four hundred and six dollars. Our vessels visited every part of the world, and brought wealth and luxuries from every §§ : • * . Section, XXXVII. Žigritulture. Aside from the importance of agriculture, as furnish- ing us with the greatest portion of our food, it began now to derive greater consequence, as furnishing materials for our manufactures, and, still more, as contributing largely to our exports. In 1796, it was estimated that three-fourths of the inhabitants of the United States, if not a greater proportion, were employed in agricultu- ral pursuits. § rts auty ſtiamutat- circul Section XXXVIII, a tuttg. During this period, manufactures at- tracted the attention of government. Mr. Ha- milton, secretary of the treasury, made a report to congress, on the subject, in which he set forth .." Godwin's Political Justice, and Paine's Age of Reason, powerfully ºed on the tide of infidelity. An enormous edition of the latter publica. d in France, and sent to America, to be sold for a few d where it could not be sold, it was given away. lon was printe º º . Fo aly : s their importance to the country, and urged the policy of aiding them." Since that time, the re- venue laws have been framed, with a view to the encouragement of manufactures, and their pro- motion has been considered as a part of the set- tled policy of the United States. Although the flourishing state of commerce commanded the attention, and absorbed the capital of the coun- try, in some degree, to the exclusion of other objects, still manufactures made considerable progress. - Section XXXIX. 33 opulation. The in- habitants of the United States, at the close of this period, amounted to about five millions. Section XL. jºutation. The adoption of the federal constitution placed the political af. fairs of the United States on a permanent basis, and since that period, learning has flourished. In 1791, the university of Vermont was established at Bur- lington; Williams’ College, Massachusetts, in 1793; Union College, at Schenectady, New-York, and Greenville College, Tennessee, in 1794; Bowdoin College, at Brunswick, in Maine, 1795. An historical society was formed in Massachusetts, in 1791, and incorporated in 1794. It has published twelve vo- lumes of documents, designed to illustrate the past and present state of the country. " - itettertions. XLI. A short time since, we were occupied in considering the United States struggling for independence, under Washing- ton, as a leader of their armies. Under his guidance, we saw them triumpn, and become a free nation. We have also seen them, with Washington at the head of the convention, forming our excellent constitution. We now see them with Washington their chief magistrate, taking their place among the sovereign- ties of the earth, and launching forth on the full tide of success. ful experiment. our constitution; established our govern º º reward does he ask for services like these? . oes he ask washington's ADMINISTRATION, 287 a diademiº Does he lay his hand upon our national treasury P Does he claim to be emperor of the nation that has risen up un- der his auspices P No–although “first in war—first in peace —first in the hearts of his countrymen,”—he sublimely retires to the peaceful occupations of rural life, content with the honour of having been instrumental in achieving the independence, and securing the happiness of his country. 2. 3. There is no parallel in history to this By the side of Wash- ington, Alexander is degraded to a selfish destroyer of his race; Caesar becomes the dazzled votary of power; and Bonaparte, a baffled aspirant to universal dominion. Washington has been the theme of eulogy in every nation. “His military successes,” it has been well said, “were more solid than brilliant, and judgment, rather than enthusiasm, regu- lated his conduct in battle. In the midst of the inevitable dis- order of camps, and the excesses inseparable from civil war, humanity always found a refuge in his tent. In the morning of triumph, and in the darkness of adversity, he was alike serene; at all times tranquil as wisdom, and simple as virtue. After the acknowledgment of American Independence, when the una- nimous suffrages of a free people called him to administer their government, his administration, partaking of his character, was mild and firm at home; noble and prudent abroad.* . * Inchiquin's Letters. UNITED STATEs. 33triotſ ºff}}{{. distinguished For Adams' ADMINISTRATION Extending from the inauguration of President Adams, 1797, to the inauguration of Thomas Jefferson, as president of the United States, Section I. On the 4th of March, 1797, Mr. Adams, in the presence of the senate, of the officers of the general and state governments, and a numerous concourse of spectators, took the oath of office, as president of the United States. . ::. . . . . . . . . . . . The condition of the country, at the close of Washington's administration, and the com- mencement of Mr. Adams', was greatly im- proved from that of 1789, the period at which the former entered upon his office. . At home, a sound credit had been established; an immense floating debt had been funded in a manner perfectly sausfactory to the creditors, and an ample revenue had been provided, Those difficulties, which a system of internal taxation, on its first introduction, is doomed to encounter, were completely re- * , i.” and the authority of the government was firmly estab- ished. - . Funds for the gradual payment of the debt had been provided; a considerable part of it had actually been discharged; and hat system which is now operating its entire extinction, had been matured and adopted. The agricultural and commercial wealth of the nation had increased beyond all former example, le numerous tribes of Indians, on the west, had been taught N. by rms and by justice, to respect the United States and to cºn º § : º *. Meeting of Arnold and Andra. p. 221. ADAMs ADMINISTRATION. 289 Abroad, the differences with Spain had been accommodated. The free navigation of the Mississippi had been acquired, with the use cf New-Orleans, as a place of deposit for three years, and afterwards, until some equivalent place should be desig. nated. x - . . . . Those causes of mutual exasperation, which had threatened to involve the United States in a war with the greatest maritime and commercial power in the world, had been removed; and the military posts which had been occupied within their terri tory, from their existence as a nation, had been evacuated. Treaties had been formed with Algiers and Tripoli, and no captures appear to have been made by Tunis; so that the Mediterranean was opened to American vessels. g This bright prospect was, indeed, in part, shaded by the dis- contents of France. But the causes of these discontents, it had been impossible to avoid, without surrendering the right of self. government. Such was the situation of the United States at the close of Washington's, and the commencement of Adams' admi- mistration. . 3. Section II. Just before Washington retired from office, learning that France meditated hos- tilities against the United States, by way of de. predations on her West India commerce, he had recalled Mr. Monroe, then minister to that court, and despatched Gen. C. C. Pinckney, minister plenipotentiary, to adjust existing differences. Immediately upon succeeding to the presi- dency, Mr. Adams received intelligence that the French republick had announced to Gen. Pinck- ney its determination “not to receive another minister from the United States until after the redress of grieve ºces,” &c. On the receipt of this intelligence, the pre- sident issued his proclamation to convene con. gress on the 15th of June. In his speech on that occasion, having stated the indignity offer- ed the United States by France, in refusing to of a high-minded and independent American, urged congress “to repel this indignity of the . 25 . ...& 2 0 PERIOD VIII.i.1797.1801. French government, by a course which shall convince that government and the world that we are not a degraded people, humiliated under a colonial spirit of fear and a sense of inferiori- ty, fitted to be the miserable instruments of fo- reign influence, and regardless of national ho- nour, character and interest.” Notwithstanding this language, the president still retained a desire for peace. Upon his re- commendation, three envoys extraordinary, C. C. Pinckney, Elbridge Gerry, and John Mar- shall, were appointed to the French republick, to carry into effect the pacifick dispositions of the United States. Section III. For a considerable time, no cer- tain intelligence reached the country respecting the negotiations at Paris. At length, in the winter of 1798, letters were received from the American envoys, indicating an unfavourable state of things; and in the spring despatches arrived, which announced the total failure of the mission. - Before the French government would acknowledge the envoys, money, by way of tribute, was demanded in explicit terms of the United States. This being refused, an attempt was next ade to excite the fears of the American ministers for their coun- try and themselves. The immense power of France was paint- ed in glowing colours, the humiliation of the house of Austria was stated, and the conquest of Britain was confidently antici. pated. In the friendship of France alone, they were told, could America look for safety. During these transactions, occasion was repeatedly taken to insult the American government; open war was continued to be urged by the cruisers of France on American commerce; flag of the United States was a sufficient justification apture and condemnation of any vessel, over 1 it :::::... º. W. Perceiving further ain, congress now proceed ADAMS' ADMINISTRATION. 291 adoption of vigorous measures for retaliating injuries which had been sustained, and for re- pelling still greater injuries which were threat- ened." Amongst these measures was the aug- mentation of the regular army. A regiment of artillerists and engineers was added to the per- manent establishment, and the president was authorized to raise twelve additional regiments of infantry, and one regiment of ca- valry. He was also authorized to appoint officers for a provi- sional army, and to receive and organize volunteer corps. By the unanimous consent of the senate, Gen. Washington was appointed lieutenant-general and commander in chief of all the armies raised, or to be raised, in the United States. . . Section W. While preparations were thus making for war, indirect pacifick overtures were communicated by the French government to the president, and a willingness expressed, accommodate existing differences on reasonable Solicitous to restore that harmony and good understanding, which had formerly existed between the two countries, the president listened to these overtures, and appointed three envoys, Oliver Ellsworth, chief justice of the United States, Patrick Henry, then late governour of }. ginia, and William Wans Murray, minister at he Hague, to discuss and settle, by treaty, all controversies between the United States and France, . . On the arrival of these envoys at Paris, th found the government in the hands of Bona used nºrth two 1800, soon after which, the provisional army in America was, by order of congress, disbanded. Section WI. On the 14th of December, 1799, Gen. Washington expired at his seat, at Mount Vernon, in Virginia, leaving a nation to mourn his loss, and to embalm his memory with their tears. x The disease, of which Gen. Washington died, was an inflam matory affection of the windpipe, occasioned by an exposure to a light rain, while attending, the day before, to some improve ments on his estate. , . The disease at its commencement was violent, and medical skill was applied in vain. Respiration became more and more contracted and imperfect, until half past eleven o’clock on Sa- turday night, when retaining the full possession of his intellect, he expired without a groan. º Believing at the commencement of his complaint, that its con- clusion would be mortal, he economized his time in arranging, with the utmost serenity, those few concerns which required his attention. To his playsician, he expressed his conviction that he was dying; “but,” said he, “I am not afraid to die.” On Wednesday, the 18th of December, his body was deposit ed in the family vault, attended with military honours, and suit. able religious services. . On the arrival of the news of his death at Philadelphia, Mon- day, congress immediately adjourned. On the day succeeding, resolutions were adopted expressive of the grief of the members, and a committee was appointed to devise a mode by which the national feelings should be expressed. On the melancholy occasion, the senate addressed to the pre- sident, a letter, in which they say; “Permit us, sir, to mingle our tears with yours. On this occasion it is manly to weep. To lose such a man, at such a crisis, is no common calamity tº the world. Our country mourns a father. The Almighty dis; sposer of events has taken from us our greatest benefactor an ornament. It becomes us to submit with reverence to Him whº patriotick pride we review the life of Washin m with those of other countries who hav ADAMS'. ADMINISTRATION. 293 ed the intemperance of their ambition, and darkened the splen- dour of victory. - … . . . . . “The scene is closed; and we are no longer anxious lest misfortune should sully his glory. He has travelled on to the end of his journey, and carried with him an increasing weight of honour. He has deposited it safely where misfortune cannot tarnish it; where malice cannot blast it. Favoured of heaven, he departed without exhibiting the weakness of manity; mag- Hanimous in death, the darkness of the gravi ould not obscure his brightness.” f : - The committee, appointed to devise sºme mode by which to ex- press the national feelings, recommenſ' that a marble monument beerected by the United States, attl.e. ty of Washington, to com- memorate the great events of Washington’s military and politi- cal life; that a funeral oration be delivered by a member of congress; that the president be requested to write a letter of condolence to Mrs. Washington; and that it be recommended to the citizens of the United States, to wear crape on the left arm for thirty days. i These resolutions passed both houses unanimously. The whole nation appeared in mourning. The funeral procession at the city of Washington was grand and solemn, and the elo- quent oration, delivered on the occasion by Gen. Henry Lee, was heard with profound attention, and with deep interest. Throughout the United States, similar marks of affliction were exhibited. Funeral orations were delivered, and the best talents devoted to an expression of grief, at the loss of “the man, first in war, first in peace, and first in the hearts of his fel- fow-citizens.” -, tion passed in congress in 1790, the seat of go- vernment was transferred from Philadelphia to the city of Washington, in the District of Co- The District of Columbia is a territory of ten miles square It is about three hundred miles from the sea, at the head of ti water on the Potomac, which runs through it diagonally, the centre. It was ceded, in 1790, to the United Mar firginia, and it is under the immedi new election, it had been pretty certainly pre- dicted that he could not be re-elected. His administration, through the whole course of it, had been the subject of much popular clamour, especially by the democratick party. But the measures which most excited the opposition of that party, and which were most successfully employed to destroy the popularity of Mr Adams' administration, and to place the go- vernment in other hands, were several laws passed during his presidency, among which were the “Alien” and “Sedition” laws. . . . By the “alien law,” the president was authorized to order any alien, whom “he should judge dangerous to the peace and safety of the United States, &c. to depart out of the territory, within such time” as he should judge proper, upon penalty of being “imprisoned for a term not exceeding three years,” &c. The design of the “sedition law” so called, was to punish the abuse of speech, and of the press. It imposed a heavy pe- cuniary fine, and imprisonment for a term of years, upon such as should combine or conspire together to oppose any measure of government; upon such as should write, print, utter, publish, &c. “any false, scandalous, and malicious writing against the government of the United States, or either house of the congress of the United States, or the president, &c.” These acts, together with others for raising a standing army, and imposing a direct tax and internal duties, with other causes, so increased the opposition to Mr. Adams' administration, as to prevent his re-election, and greatly to weaken the strength of that party to whom he owed his elevation to the presidency. * > - Section IX. The strife of parties, during the term of electioneering, was spirited. On can- und that Mr. Jefferson, and Mr. Burr seventy-three votes, Mr. Adams sixty- ADAMS' ADMINISTRATION. 295 greatest number of votes should be president, and Mr. Jefferson and Mr. Burr having an equal number, it became the duty of the house of re- presentatives, voting by States, to decide be: tween these two Gentlemen. The ballot was taken for several days in suc. cession, February, 1801, before a choice was made. The federalists generally supported Mr. Burr ; the democratick party Mr. Jefferson. At length, after much political heat and party ani- mosity, the choice fell upon the latter, who was declared to be elected president of the United States for four years, commencing March 4th, 1801. Mr. Burr was elected vice-president. * Notts. Section X, ſºammerg. The manners of the people of the United States underwent no marked change during this period. - - -- Section XI. ittiigiott. Although infideli- ty does not seem to have made much progress in the United States, during this period, it was evident that it had taken deep root in many minds. Infidels, however, were less confident, and less ready to avow their sentiments. They stood abashed before the world, at the fearful and blood-chilling horrours which their principles had poured out upon France. Their doctrines were, at the same time, powerfully refuted by the ablest men both in Eng- land and America. At length, they ceased to make proselytes, spoke favourably of the Christian religion, generally admitted. that it was absolutely necessary to good government; and er-, tour, with regard to religion, assumed a new form. owards the close of this period, a revival of relig Angland, and seems to have been the be ls which have since overspread the sects which had before regarded “revi 296 PERIOD will...1197.1801. ligion” with suspicion or aversion, became convinced of the utility and began to promote them. -- Section XII. Crant artu Coutnutrite, Trade and commerce were still prosperous, and the remarks made in respect to them, under pe- riod VII. apply to them during this period. The exports, in 1801, were ninety-three millions, twenty thou- sand five hundred and seventy-three dollars, the imports, one hundred and eleven millions, three hundred and sixty-three thou- sand five hundred and eleven dollars. Section XIII. Žigricultitre. Agriculture still continued to flourish. a. * Section XIV. 3rts and jūamutatittres. The general remarks on the preceding period, relative to this subject, apply, without material alteration to this period. . 3. Section XV. 3.}opulation. The number of inhabitants, at the close of this period, was not far from five millions, five hundred thou- sand. . ...º. g - Section, XVI. 330tttation. We have no- thing particular to observe in relation to educa- tion. Publick and private schools, however, were multiplied as the people increased, and as new settlements were made. ... . . . . . . . In 1798, a college was founded at Lexington, Kentucky, call ed the Transylvania University. Middlebury college, in Ver. mont, was founded in 1800. At the commencement of the 18th century, there was, in New-England but one college completely founded, but now there were six; in the colonies south of Con. necticut, there was only one, but now there were fifteen or six UNITED STATES. aperiod ºx. ristinguished for JEFFERson's sourismation . Extending from the inauguration of President Jefferson, 1801, to the inauguration of James Madison as president of the United States, in 1809. × . Section I. On the 4th of March, 1801, Mr. Jefferson agreeably to the constitution, was regu- larly inducted into the office of president of the United States. At the time of his inauguration, Mr. Jefferson delivered an address, expressive of his political opinions, and the principles by which he designed to shape his administration. These were “Equal and exact justice to all men, of whatever state or per- ... suasion, religious, or political: peace, commerce, and honest friendship, with all nations, entangling alliances with none:— the support of the State governments in all their rights, as the most competent administrations for our domestick concerns, and the surest bulwarks against anti-republican tendencies:– the preservation of the general government in its whole constitu- tional vigour, as the sheet anchor of our peace at home, and safety abroad:—a jealous care of the right of election by the people, a mild and safe corrective of abuses which are lopped by the sword of revolution where peaceable remedies are unpro- vided:—absolute acquiescence in the decisions of the majority, the vital principle of republicks, from which is no appeal but to force, the vital principle and immediate parent of depotisms a well disciplined militia, our best reliance in peace, and fo first moments of war, till regulars may relieve them:—the si macy of the civil over the military authority:-econ publick expense, that labour may be lightly burthene nest payment of our debts, and sacred preservation of the k faith:—encouragement of agriculture and e land-maid:—the diffusion of information and arraignment 298 PERIOD Ix. 1801-1800. of all abuses at the par of publick reason:—freedom of religion. —freedom of the press:–and freedom of person, under the pro tection of the Habeas Corpus, and trial by juries impartially selected.”—“These principles,” added Mr. Jefferson, “should be the creed of our political faith; and should we wander from them in moments of errour or of alarm, let us hasten to retrace our steps, and to regain the road which alone leads to peace, li- berty, and safety.” # Section II. The commencement of Mr. Jef. ferson's administration was marked by a re- moval, from responsible and lucrative offices, of a great portion of those whose political opinions were opposed to his own, on the ground that most of the offices at the disposal of the govern- ment, had been exclusively bestowed on the ad herents of the opposite party. : In a reply to a remonstrance of merchants of New-Haven, against the removal from office of a federal collector of that port, and the appointment of a gentleman of opposite politicks, the president formally assigned this as the reason of the course he adopted. § “It would have been to me,” said he in that reply, “a cir cumstance of great relief, had I found a moderate participation of office in the hands of the majority, (the democratick party.) I would gladly have left to time and accident to raise them to their just share. . But their total exclusion calls for prompter correctives. I shall correct the procedure; but that done, re- turn with joy to that state of things, when the only question concerning a candidate shall be, Is he honest? Is he capable? Is he faithful to the constitution?” sº Section III. Congress met on the 8th of De- cember. In his speech at the opening of the session, the president recommended the aboli- tion of the internal taxes—the repeal of the act passed towards the close of Mr. Adams' admi- mistration, reorganizing the United States courts, and erecting, sixteen new judges—and in enlargement of the rights of naturalization. JEFFERson's ADMINISTRATION. 299 the president, notwithstanding the opposition, prevailed, and bills in accordance therewith were passed. * a . The internal taxes, from the time of their establishment, had been extremely unpopular, with the party, which had elevated Mr. Jefferson to the presidency. It was a favourite measure, therefore, of his, to procure their abolition The national judicial establishment originally consisted of a supreme court, with six judges, who twice a year made a tour of the United States in three circuits. Under this arrangement, great inconveniences were experienced by the court, the bar, and the suitors. The new arrangement in the judicial system, and the increase of judges at the close of Mr. Adams' term, had excited, in a large portion of the citizens, the hope of a more prompt and impartial administration of justice. To that portion of the community the repealing act was a painful disap- pointment. . . Section IV. In 1802, Ohio was admitted by act of congress, as an independent state into the Union. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . The state of Ohio derived its name from the river Ohio, hich sweeps the southeastern border of the state. Until 1787, it was inhabited only by Indians, a few Mora- vians, and trespassers on lands belonging to the publick. By wirtue of her charter, the territory was claimed by Virginia, and by her, although the original charter of Connecticut, ex- ing west to the Pacific Ocean, included a great part of it. In 1781, the legislature of Virginia ceded to the United States all her rights to the territory northwest of the river Ohio, excepting some few military tracts. In 1788, the first settlement was begun at Marietta, under General Rufus Put- nam, from New-England. It had been, the year before, erect- into one district, including the present territories of Michigan '95, the settlement of Ohio was "... tal But at that time, a general pe ing effected by General Wayne, lation of the territory rapidly in rope, and still more from New-Er 300 PERIOD IX.1801.1809. This was the death of Gen. Hamilton, who fell in a duel with Col. Burr, the vice-president of the United States. . Section VI. Mr. Jefferson's first term of of fice ending this year, a new election took place, at which he was re-chosen president, and on the 4th of March again took the oath of office. George Clinton of New-York, was elected vice- president. x - Section VII. During the year which com- menced the second of Mr. Jefferson's presidency, a war, which had been continued for several years between the United States and Tripoli, was concluded, and a treaty of peace negotiated by Col. Lear, between the two countries, by which the Tripolitan and American prisoners were exchanged, and the sum of sixty thousand dollars given to the pacha. º * The history of this war deserves a place in these pages. The commerce of the United States had been long annoyed by the Tripolitan cruisers—many merchantmen had been taken, and their crews imprisoned and cruelly treated. - * As early as 1803, a squadron under Com. Preble had been sent to the Mediterranean, to protect the American commerce, and to bring the corsairs to submission. During the same year, Capt. Bainbridge, in the Philadelphia, joined Com. Preble, and in chasing a cruiser into the harbour of Tripoli, grounded his vessel, and he and his crew were taken prisoners. . . ." Shortly after the surrender of the Philadelphia, the Tripoli- tans got her afloat, and warped her into the outward harbour In this situation, Lieutenant, afterwards Commodore, Decatur, conceived the bold plan of attempting to set her on fire. He had the day before captured a small xebec, laden with fruit I ºnterprize, which he commanded, an old pilot, whounderstood the Tripolitan language, he suggested his plan to Commodore Preble, who approved of it. He would accept of only twenty , although a much greater number volunteered, and but on: bottom of the xebec, on the approach of night, he Philadelphia, taking with him the old pilot. g the frigate, the xebec was hailed, when the pi º swered that he had lost his cable and anchor, and begged the crew refused, but said he might make fast to their stern haw- ser, until they sent a boat to the admiral for leave. . . . . As the boat put off for the shore, Lieutenant Decatur, with his brave companions, leaped on board the frigate, and in a few minutes swept the deck of every Tripolitan. Of fifty, not one reached the shore. The frigate was now set on fire, and while the flames rose, to spread consternation among the Tripolitans, they served to lighten the way for the heroick Decatur and his band to go back in safety to the American squadron. Of the party, not one was killed, and but one wounded. This was a seaman who saved the life of his commander. In the first des- perate struggle on board the Philadelphia, Decatur was disarm- ed, and fell. A sabre was already lifted to strike the fatal blow, when this seaman, observing the perilous situation of his officer, reached forward, and received the blow of the sabre on his art . In consequence of the burning of the Philadelphia, the suffer- ings of Commodore Bainbridge and his crew, as well as those of other Americans in captivity at Tripoli, were greatly increased. The accounts of their sufferings, transmitted to the United States, excited the sympathy of all classes, and a general cry for exertions to effect their deliverance was heard from all parts of It happened that some time before this, the then reigning bashaw of Tripoli, Jussuf, third son of the late bashaw, had murdered his father and eldest brother, and proposed to murder d, in order to possess himself of the throne. But the isting of seamen from the American amet, with incredible toil and suffering, pass- 1 the rca, and took possession of Derne, the capital of a large province belonging to the kingdom of Tripoli. The forces of Eaton were now so much increased, and the cause of Hamet had become so popular, that the prospect was flattering of his being able to reduce the city of Tripoli, and of effecting the liberation of the captives without ransom. º The successes of Eaton struck the usurper Jussuf with terrour. "rembling for his fate in this juncture, he proposed to Mr. Lear, the consul-general of America, then in the Mediterranean, . ºcess of Eaton and Hamet, and . a treaty ensued. . Eaton. Hamet were consequently arrested in the prosecution of ir purpose, and the unfortunate exile failed of his promised restoration to the throne. . . . . S. . . .” --- - - In 1805, Hamet visited the United States with the expectation of obtaining some remuneration for his services, from America, and for her failure in fulfilling her stipulations to him by Gen. Eaton. A proposition to this effect was brought before con- gress, but after much discussion was rejected. Section VIII. During this year, 1805, Michi- GAN became a distinct territorial government of itory, when first dis overed by the w h tes, ~ ed by the Hurons, a tribe of Indians, many of wh onverted to Christianity by the Jesuit Missionaries in was erected into a distinct territorial gov Section IX. In the autumn of 1806, a project was detected, at the head of which was Col. Burr, for revolutionizing the territory west of the Alle- ghanies, and of establishing an independent empire there, of which New-Orleans was t the capital, and himself the chief. Towa the accomplishment of this scheme, which it templation, the skilful cumming and intrigue of Col. Burr were directed. Happily, º government, being apprised of his designs, ar rested him, while as yet he had few adherents, brought to trial at Richmond on a charg treason committed within the district of V ginia; but no overt act being proved agai liºn n t hat State, he was released. In addition to this project, Col. Burr had formed which, in case of failure in the first, might be carried * - e. . º 44 # 304 PERIOD IX.1801.1800. characters. He also seduced good, well-meaning citizens, some by assurancesthat he possessed the confidence of the government, and was acting under its secret patronage; and others by offers. of land in Bastrop’s claim in the Washita.” Section X. 1806. To understand the sub- sequent political history of the United States, and those measures of government which were taken in relation to foreign powers, it is neces- sary to glance at the state of the European na- tions, at this period—particularly that of Eng- land and France. These two countries were now at war with each other, and in their con- troversies had involved most of the continental powers. Towards the belligerents, America was endeavouring to maintain a neutrality, and peaceably to continue a commerce with them. it was hardly to be expected, however, that jealousies would not arise between the contend- ing powers in relation to the conduct of America, and that events would not occur, calculated to injure her commerce, and disturb her peace. In addition to these circumstances, a contro- versy had long existed, and continued to exist, between the United States and Great Britain, in respect to the right of searching neutral ships, and impressing seamen. Great Britain claimed it as among her prerogatives to take her native born subjects, wherever found, for her navy, and of searching American vessels for that purpose. As yet no adjustment of this controversy had effected. Notwithstanding the remon- JEFFEnson's ADMINISTRATION. pressed into the British service some thousands vernment issued an order in council, declaring the ports and rivers from the Elbe, a river in Germany, to Brest, a town of France, to be in a state of blockade. By this order, American vessels, trading to these and intervening ports, were liable to seizure and condemnation. Bonaparte issued his celebrated decree at Ber- lin, called the “Berlin decree,” by which all the Britis % Islands were § de clare d to be in § a was prohibited. This decree violated the treaty between the United States and France, and the The following are the principal articles of that decree, 1. The British Islands are in a state of blockade. 2. All commerce and correspondence with them is prohi ed. . . . . . . 3. No vessel coming directly from England, or her colonies, or having been there since the publication of this decree, shall be admitted into any port: ºš. ment in an order of council, iss 306 PERIOD IX.1801.1 3. was to injure American commerce, and to in volve her in a controversy with both, an event occurred which filled the American people with indignation, and called for immediate executive notice. This was an attack upon the American frigate Chesapeake, Commodore Barron, off the capes of Virginia, by the British frigate Leop- pard of fifty guns. The attack was occasioned by the refusal of Commodore Barron to surren- der several seamen, who had deserted from the British armed ship Melampus, a short time pre- vious, and had voluntarily enlisted on board the Chesapeake. After crippling the American fri- gate, which made no resistance, the commander of the Leopard took from her the seamen in question, two of whom had been proved to be American citizens. .x. §2. 3. . . . . " . The persons who deserted from the Melampus, then lying in Hampton roads, were William Ware, Daniel Martin, John Stra- chan, John Little, and Ambrose Watts. Within a month from their escape from the Melampus, the first three of these desert- ers offered themselves for enlistment, and were received on d the Chesapeake, then at Norfolk, Virginia, preparing for The British consul at Norfolk, being apprized of this circum- stance, wrote a letter to the American naval officer requesting these men to be returned. With this request the officer refusing to comply, the British agent lost no time in endeavouring to rarmen. order from government for their surrender. In con- ... of this application, the secretary of the navy ordered examination into the characters and claims of the men in The required examination resulted in proof that artin an an, were natives of America. The , or notarial certificates of their being chan had no protection, but asserted JEFFERson's ADMINISTRATION. 307. one of which, the Leopard, Captain Humphreys, weighed an- chor, and in a few hours came along side the Chesapeake, "A British officer immediately came on board, and demanded the deserters. To this, Capt. Barron replied, that he did not Know of any being there, and that his duty forbade him to al- low of any muster of his crew, except by their own officers. During this interview, Barron noticed some proceedings of a hostile nature on board the adverse ship, but he could not be persuaded that any thing but menace was intended by them. After the British officer departed, he gave orders to clear his gun deck, and after some time, he directed his men to their quarters, secretly, and without beat of drum: still, however, without any serious apprehensions of an attack. * * : * , Before these orders could be executed, the Leopard com- menced a heavy fire. This fire unfortunately was very destruc- tive. In about thirty minutes, the hull, rigging, and spars of the Chesapeake were greatly damaged, three men were killed and sixteen wounded; among the latter was the captain him- self. Such was the previous disorder, that during this time, the utmost exertions were insufficient to prepare the ship for action, and the captain thought proper to strike his colours. The British captain refused to accept the surrender of the Chesapeake, but took from her crew, Ware, Martin, and Stra- chan, the three men formerly demanded as deserters, and a º John Wilson, claimed as a runaway from a merchant. Section XV. Such was the agitation of the publick mind, in consequence of this outrage committed on the Chesapeake, that the presi- dent conceived himself required to notice the transaction, and by some decisive publick act, to show how deeply America conceived herself to be wounded. Accordingly, on the 2d of July, the president issued his proclamation, ordering all British armed vessels to leave the wa rif the United States, and forbidding them to satisfaction for the attack on t 308 PERIOD ix. 1801.1809. ? & N.- -W * of the American government, pertaining to the attack on the Chesapeake, and was required to demand reparation for that attack, and, as an assential part of that reparation, security against future impressments from American ships. The British minister, Mr. Canning, however, protested against conjoining the gene- ral question concerning the impressment of persons from neutral merchant ships, with the particular affray between the Leopard and the Chesapeake. % º, As Mr. Monroe was not authorized to treat these subjects separately, further negotiation between these two ministers was suspended, and Mr. Rose was appointed, by the British government, as a special minister to the United States, empowered to treat concerning the par- ticular injury complained of, but not to discuss the general question of impressing persons from merchant ships. * . . . . . .º taking in England, in relation to the affair of the Chesapeake, congress, which had been sum- moned before the regular time, by proclamation r º: president, met on the 27th of October. In his message to congress at this time, the presidententered y into the state of our relations with Great Britain—informed reaty which had been negotiated with the British go- by Messrs. Monroe and Pinckney—but which he l, principally because it made no sufficient provision subject of impressments—stated the affair of the attack hes te—his proclamation to British armed vessels waters of the United States—his instructions to the inister at London, in relation to reparation expected government, and his expectation of speedily hear- he result of the measures which had been fr * British JEFFERson's ADMINISTRATION. 309, government for the Berlin decree of November, 1806. By these orders in council, France and her allies; all nations at war with Great Britain, and all places from which the British flag is ex- cluded, were declared to be under the same re- strictions in point of trade and navigation, as if the same were in a state of blockade. . . . . . . Section XVIII. Before the arrival of Mr. Rose, congress was sedulously employed in con- sidering the state of the nation, and in making provision for putting the country in a posture of defence. Acts passed, appropriating one mil- lion of dollars to be employed by the presi- dent in equipping one hundred thousand of the national militia; eight hundred and fifty-two. thousand five hundred dollars, for building one hundred and eighty-eight gun-boats; one mil- lion of dollars, for building, repairing, and com- pleting fortifications, and for raising six thou- sand six hundred men, infantry, riflemen, artil- lery, and dragoons, as an addition to the stand- ing army. On the 22d of December, an act passed, laying an embargo on all vessels within the jurisdiction of the United States. Section XIX. On the 17th of December, Bo- rte, by way of retaliating the British orders council, issued a decree, called “the Milan deeree,” declaring every vessel denationalized which shall have submitted to a search by a r countries, occupied by Bri of complaint, so long as the president's procla- mation of July 20, exeluding British armed ves- sels from the waters of the United States, should be in force. gº For a time, the president refused to annul this proclamation till the atonement was not only solemnly offered, but formally accepted; but in order to elude this difficulty, he finally agreed to revoke his proclamation, on the day of the date of the act, or treaty, by which reparation should be made for the recent violence. This conces- ision, however, was built on two conditions; first, the terms of reparation which the minister was charged to offer, must be previously made known; and, secondly, they must be such as by the president should be accounted satisfactory. But as the British minister declined to offer, or even to mention, the redress of which he was the bearer, till the American proclamation was recalled, and the president deeming its recall inexpedient, the controversy, for the present & closed. The controversy respecting the Chesapeake was finally ad justed in November, 1811, at which time the British mini be made for those who suffered in the attack, and for t s of the seamen that fell. To these propositions tº in xxi. The di le by congress. Accordingly, % ngress interdicted, by law, ide and intercourse with France and Eng- Section XXII. Mr. Jefferson’s second term of office expired on the 3d of March. Having previously declined a re-election, James Madi- son was chosen president, and George Clinton vice-president. States for some years, began to hal ; effect upon society. It interrupted, to extent, the general harmony, and even re- ed the intercourse of friends and neigh- . The strife for power, also introdu- no , and political duplicity lost ºr re. p * ºº: º, . alº º §. ... ::::::::::::: its deformity. These things me ſººn rerº ºdº ºri sion, whic º used . pC in 312 ~ & fidelity, and to check the tide of pollution whic was invisibly spread over the land. Section XXV. Craut and Committre, Trade and commerce made great advances about the year 1803. The European powers being involved in war, and the United States re- maining neutral, our vessels carried to Europe, not only the produce of our own country, but also the produce of other countries. This is usually called the carrying trade, and was very profitable to the country. * . . . . . In 1805, 6, and 7, our average annual exports amounted to one hundred and two millions, five hundred and sixty-seven thousand, four hundred and fifty-four dollars, of which forty-four millions, eight hundred and sixty-three thousand, five hundred and seventeen dollars, were for domestick produce, and fifty- seven millions, seven hundred and one thousand, nine hundred and thirty-seven dollars, for foreign produce. The annual average of imports during these three years, amounted to about one hundred and forty millions of dollars; a large proportion of the articles, forming this amount, were re-exported to the West Indies, South America, and elsewhere. ** After the year 1807, the commercial restrictions laid by ld England, began to curtail our trade, and the em. mposed at the close of the same year, by our own govern. terrupted it still more esentially. Tº section XXVI. agriculture. Agriculture during a part of this period, received great en: being involved in contentions, the people had little leisure there to cultivate the soil; they were therefore supplied from other countries, * - sº d States furnished them with a hen the commercial ruſ te JEFFERson's ADMINISTRATION. 313 z gº to Spain. Great attention was paid to the breeding of them, and they are now numerous in the United States. Section XXVII. 3rts amū jūatttitate titres. Arts and manufactures still progressed. Section XXVIII. 3}opulation. The popu- lation of the United States, at the close of Mr. Jefferson's administration, was about seven mil- lions. . 2. Section XXIX. 35utttation. The enlightened views respecting the importance of general in- formation, entertained before, continued to pre- vail, New literary and scientifick publications were commenced; more enlightened methods of instruction were adopted; academies were multiplied; colleges founded; and theolog seminaries liberally endowed. : A theological seminary was founded at Andover, Massachu. setts, in 1808. The amount, which has been contributed for its permanent use, and which was given by six families, is more than three hundred thousand dollars. This sum includes the permanent fund, library, and publick buildings. In 1822, the officers were four professors, and the number of students, one hundred and thirty-two. The library contains about five thou- sand volumes. A majority of the students are supported in whole, or in part, by charity. 27 UNITED STATES. distinguished for MADison's ADMINISTRATION, AND THE LATE war witH GREAT BRITAIN, Eatending from the inauguration of President Madison, 1809, to the inauguration of James Monroe, as president of the United States, 1817, Section I. On the 4th of March, 1809, Mr. Madison was inducted into the office of president of the United States, according to the form pre- scribed by the constitution. . . The situation of the United States, on the accession of Mr. Madison to the presidency, was in several respects gloomy and critical. The two great powers of Europe, France and England, were still at war, and were continuing to array against each other the most violent commercial edicts, both in contravention of the laws of nations, and of their solemn treaties; and calculated to injure and destroy the com- merce of nations desirous of preserving a neu- trality. America was also further suffering un- der the restrictions of commerce, imposed by her own government. Every effort to secure the due observance of her rights, by the con: tending powers, had hitherto failed, and the sad alternative was presenting itself to the American gn and domestick restrictions, or to take up MADison's ADMINISTRATION. sis arms, and risk the consequence of a war with the belligerents. # . - Section II. Previously to the adjournment of the last congress, under Mr. Jefferson, an act passed, as already noticed, 1st of March, re- pealing the then existing embargo, and inter- dicting commercial intercourse with France and Great Britain. Should either of these powers, however, revoke their edicts, the president was authorized to renew the intercourse. April 18th, the British minister, Mr. Erskine, informed the secretary of state, Mr. Smith, that his majesty’s government, considering the non- intercourse act, passed March 1st, as having produced an equality in the relations of the two belligerent powers with respect to the United States, would be willing to rescind the orders in council of January and November, 1807, so far as it respected the United States, provided the president would issue a proclamation for the renewal of intercourse with Great Britain. This proposal was readily accepted. The British minister, in consequence of this acceptance, stat- ed himself authorized to declare that the above orders in council would be withdrawn as it re- spected the United States, on the succeeding 10th of ine. A proclamation by the president on after followed, renewing the intercourse T his event produced the highest satis o any tion III. Early in September, Mr. J. • won rrived at Washington, as successor of Mr Erskine. A correspondence was soon com- menced between this minister and the secretary of state, which, after continuing several weeks, without adjusting any differences between the two countries, was suddenly closed, by the pre- sident, on account of an alleged insult on the part of Mr. Jackson. . 3. "In the course of correspondence with the secretary, Mr. Jackson had repeatedly asserted that the American executive could not but know from the powers exhibited by Mr. Erskine, that in the above stipulations he had transcended those powers, and was therefore acting without the authority of his govern ment. This was deemed by the executive equivalent to a de claration, that the American government did know that Mr Erskine was exceeding his powers. The British minister de- nied the legitimacy of such an inference—but the executive, re garding his language as reflecting upon the honour and integrity of the American government, closed the correspondence—soon after which, Mr. Jackson was recalled, but without the censure of his government. --> * > .3׺ … Section IV. 1810. On the 23d of March, Bo- “Rambouillet decree,” designed to retaliate th act of congress, passed March 1st, 1809, which forbade French vessels entering the ports of the United States. By the above decree, all Ame. rican vessels and cargoes, arriving in any of the ports of France, or of countries occupied by French troops, were ordered to be seized and arte issued a decree, usually called the 1st of May, congres MADison's ADMINISTRATION. 317 its edicts before the third of March, 1811, so that they should cease to violate neutral com- merce, of which fact the president was to give notice by proclamation, and the other nation should not, within three months after, pursue a similar step, commercial intercourse with the former might be renewed, but not with the latter. 3. Section WI. In consequence of this act of the American government, the French minister, the Duke of Cadore, at Paris, informed the Ameri- can minister, Mr. Armstrong, then in France, that the Berlin and Milan decrees were revoked, and that, from and after the 1st of November, they would cease to have effect. But, at the same time, it was subjoined, that it was “un- derstood, that, in consequence of this declara- tion, the English shall revoke their orders in council, &c.” About the same time it was an- nounced that the Rambouillet decree had also § been rescinded. Although the condition subjoined to the Duke of Cadore's declaration rendered it doubt- ful whether the Berlin and Milan decrees would in fact cease to take effect after the 1st of No- vember, the president issued his proclamation on the 2d of that month, declaring that those decrees were revoked, and that intercourse be- tween the United States and France might be renewed. . . . Section VII. While the affairs of America, in ion to the belligerents, were in this posture, appy engagement took place, May 1811, he American frigate President, com- R....1809..., 1817. ham The attack was commenced by the vessel, without provocation, and, in the rencontre, suffered greatly in her men and rig- A court of inquiry was ordered on the conduct of Captain Rogers, which decided that it had been satisfactorily proved to the court, that Capt. Rogers hailed the Little Belt first—that his hail was not satisfactorily answered—that the Little Belt fired the first gun—and that it was without previous provoca- tion or justifiable cause, &c. &c. . f Section VIII. Congress was assembled by proclamation on the 5th of November. In his message at the opening of the session, the pre- sident indicated the expectation of hostilities with Great Britain at no distant period, since her orders in council, instead of being with- drawn, were, when least to have been expected, put into more rigorous execution. . “I must now add,” continues the president in his message, “that the period has arrived which claims from the legislative guardians of the national rights, a system of more ample pro- vision for maintaining them.”—“With” such full “evidence of the hostile inflexibility” of Great Britain, “in trampling on rights which no independent nation can relinquish, congress will feel the duty of putting the United States into an armour and an attitude demanded by the crisis, and corresponding with the national spirit and expectations.” On the 29th, the committee on foreign rela- tions presented their report, in which, adopting the language of the president's message, they strongly recommended, “That the United States be immediately put into an armour and attitude demanded by the crisis, and corres- ponding with the national spirit and expecta- MADison's ADMINISTRATION. 310 Amunicated to congress an official account of the battle of “Tippacanoe”—near a branch of the Wabash—fought November 7th, between an army under Gen. Harrison, governor of the In- diana territory, and a large body of Indians, in which the latter were defeated. The attack was commenced by the Indians about four o'clock in the morning, while the army of Harrison were in a measure unprepared. But notwithstanding this disadvantage, after a hard fought action, the Indians were repulsed with a loss of nearly seventy killed, and upwards of a hundred wounded. The loss of the Americans was severe, being, according to offi cial return, one hundred and eighty-eight in killed and wounded. Section X. During the following year, 1812, LouisianA was admitted into the union as a so- vereign state. . . Until the year 1811, Louisiana comprehended that vast tract of country which was ceded to the United States by France, in 1803. At that time, however, the Territory of Orleans, which was then a distinct territorial government, assumed the name of Louisiana, and was admitted the following year as a state into the Union; since which time, the remaining portion of original Louisiana has received distinct denominations. : Louisiana was first discovered in 1541. by Ferdinand de Soto. In 1683, Monsieur de la Salle, an enterprising Frenchman, sailed up the Mississippi a considerable distance, and named the country Louisiana, in honour of Louis XIV. A French settlement was begun in 1699, by M. d’Ibberville, in Lower uisiana, near the mouth of the river Perdido. The progress f the colony was slow. In 1712, although twenty-five hundred migrants had arrived, only four hundred whites and twenty ne- groes were alive. . º About this time, the French government made a grant of the country to M. de Crozat for a term of ten years; but after five years he relinquished his patent to the Mississippi company in the same year, 1717, the city of Orleans was founded. By the treaty of 1763, all Louisiana east of the Mississip- ince in that quarter. About the same t of France west of the Mississippi were sec sic s . pain. , ppi received the west Fiorida."on the breaking. 320 PERIOD x.1809.1817. ary war, Spain, after considerable hesitation, took part with the United States, incited, probably, by the hope of regaining her possessions east of the Mississippi. In 1779, Galvoy, the go- vernour of Louisiana, took possession of Baton Rouge; and the other settlements of the English in Florida surrendered succes- sively. By the treaty of 1783, the Mississippi was made the western boundary of the United States from its source to the 31st degree of latitude, and following this line to the St. Mary's, By a treaty of the same date, the Floridas were ceded to Spain , without any specifick boundaries. This omission led to a con- troversy between the United States and Spain, which nearly terminated in hostilities. By a treaty with Spain, however, in 1795, boundary lines were amicably settled, and New-Orleans was granted to American citizens as a place of deposit for their effects for three years and longer, unless some other place of equal importance should be assigned. No other place being as- signed within that time, New-Orleans continued to be used as before. %. . . . . . In 1800, a secret treaty was signed at Paris, by the plenipo- tentiaries of France and Spain, by which Louisiana was guaran- teed to France, and, in 1801, the cession was actually made. At the same time, the Spanish intendant of Louisiana was in- structed to make arrangements to deliver the country to the French commissioners. In violation of the treaty of Spain with the United States, the intendant, by his proclamation of Octo- ber, 1802, forbade American citizens any longer to deposit merchandize in the port of New-Orleans. Upon receiving in- telligence of this prohibition, great sensibility prevailed in con- gress, and a proposition was made to occupy the place by force; but after an animated discussion the project was relinquished, and negotiations with France were commenced by Mr. Jeffer. son, for the purchase of the whole country of Louisiana, which ended in an agreement to that effect, signed at Paris, April 30th, 1803, by which the United States were to pay to France fifteen millions of dollars. Early in December, 1803, the commission- ers of Spain delivered possession to France; and on the 20th of the same month, the authorities of France duly transferred the country to the United States. Congress had provided for this event, and under their act, William C. C. Claiborne was appointed governour. By an act of March, 1804, that part of the ceded country which lay south of the parallel of thirty-three degrees was separated from the rest, and called the Territory of Orleans. In 1811, this district was erected into a state, and in 1812, was admitted into the Union by the name of Louis $477t. 3:. . . . . . . . . . . . .%. ...& . . ; ź of the United States, agreeably to a recommen- dation of the president. This measure, it was aderstood, was preparatory to a war with Great Britain, which the executive would soon urge upon congress to declare. N. Section XII. On the 4th of June, 1812, a bill. declaring war against Great Britain, passed the house of representatives, by a majority of seven- ty-nine to forty-nine. After a discussion of this bill in the senate till the 17th, it passed that body also, by a majority of nineteen to thirteen, and the succeeding day, 18th,” received the sig- nature of the president. . . The principal grounds of war was set forth in a message of the president to congress, June 1st, and was further explained by the committee on foreign relations in their report on the subject *The following are the orders in council, French decrees, and the con- sequent acts of the American government, with their respective dates, pre- 1806, May 16th, British blockade from the Elbe to Brest. 3. 06, M º “ Nov. 21st, Berlin decree. 1807, Jan, 6th, British order in council prohibiting the coasting trad « Nov. 11th, The celebrated British orders in council. § “ Dec. 17th, Milan decree. … ...“ Dec. 22d, American embargo. & 1809, March 1st, Non-intercourse with Great Britain and France, esta- ..." iii.; by.….” " " " " ' " ` “ April 10th, Mr. Erskine's negotiation, which opened the trade ... with England. __" June 19th, Non-intercourse with Great Britain. § 1810, March 18th, Rambouillet decree, . . . . “ it, Act of congress conditionally opening the trade with France. ent's proclamation declaring the French de 322 * PERIOD X....1809....1817. of the message, were summarily—The impress. ment of American seamen by the British; the blockade of her enemies’ ports, supported by no adequate force, in consequence of which, the American commerce had been plundered in every sea, and the great staples of the country cut off from their legitimate markets, and the British orders in council. ; On these grounds, the president urged the declaration of war, In unison with the recommendation of the president, the com. mittee on foreign relations concluded their report as follows: “Your committee, believing that the freeborn sons of America are worthy to enjoy the liberty which their fathers purchased at the price of much blood and treasure, and seeing by the mea- sures adopted by Great Britain, a course commenced and per- sisted in, which might lead to a loss of national character and independence, feel no hesitation in advising resistance by force, in which the Americans of the present day will prove to the enemy, and the world, that we have not only inherited that li. berty which our fathers gave us, but also the will and power to maintain it. Relying on the patriotism of the nation, and cons fidently trusting that the Lord of Hosts will go with us to battle in a righteous cause, and crown our efforts with success—your committee recommend an immediate appeal to arms.” Against this declaration of war, the minority in the house of representatives, among which were found the principal part of the delegation from New-England, in an address to their consti. tuents, solemnly protested, on the ground that the wrongs of which the United States complained, although in some respect; grievous, were not of a nature, in the present state of the world, to justify war, or such as war would be likely to remedy. On the subject of impressment, they urged that the question between the two countries had once been honourably and satisfactorily settled, in the treaty negotiated with the British court by Messrs. Monroe and Pinckney, and although that treaty had not been ratified by Mr. Jefferson, the arrangements might probably again be made. In relation to the second cause of war—the blockade of her enemies’ ports without an adequate force—the minority replied that this was not designed to injure the commerce of the United States, but was retaliatory upon France, which had taken the lead in aggressions upon neutral rights. In ..";J. as the repeal of the French decrees had been official nounced, it was to be expected that a revocation of the or souncil would soon follow. e º MADISON'S ADMINSITRATION. 323. In conclusion of the protest, the minority spoke as follows: , “The undersigned cannot refrain from asking what are the United States to gain by this war? Will the gratification of some privateersmen compensate the nation for that sweep of our legitimate commerce by the extended marine of our enemy, which this desperate act invites? Will Canada compensate the middle States for New-York; or the western States for New- Orleans? Let us not be deceived. A war of invasion may in- vite a retort of invasion. When we visit the peaceable, and to us innocent colonies of Great Britain with the horrours of war, can we be assured that our own coast will not be visited with like horrours. . x “At a crisis of the world, such as the present, and under im- pressions such as these, the undersigned could not consider the war into which the United States have in secret been precipi- ated, as necessary, or required by any moral duty, or any poli- tical expediency.” . º As a difference of views respecting the war, which had now been declared, prevailed in congress, so the country generally was divided into two opposite parties respecting it. The friends of the administration universally commending, and its opposers as extensively censuring and condemning the measure. By the former, the war was strenuously urged to be unavoidable and just; by the latter, with equal decision, it was pronounced to be impolitick, unnecessary, and unjust. ... . . Section XIII. The military establishments of the United States, upon the declaration of war, were extremely defective. Acts of congress permitted the enlistment of twenty-five thousand men, but few enlisted. . The president was au. thorized to raise fifty thousand volunteers, and to call out one hundred thousand militia, for the purpose of defending the sea-coast and the fron- tiers. But the want of proper officers was now felt, as the ablest revolutionary heroes had paid : 3. # the debt of nature. Such was the situation of things at the commencement of hostilities. 3. * XIV. August 16th, Gen. Hull, go. bout two thousand five hundre it, with a view of putting an end dian hostilities in that country, surrendered hi army to Gen. Brock, without a battle, and with it the fort at Detroit. tº The sensations produced by this occurrence throughout the United States, and particularly in the western country, can scarcely be described. So entirely unprepared was the publick mind for this extraordinary event, that no one could believe it to have taken place until communicated from an official source. In his official despatch, Hull took great pains to free his con- duct from censure. Among the reasons for his surrender, and those which determined him to that course, he assigned the want of provision to sustain the siege, the expected reinforcements of the enemy, and the savage ferocity of the Indians, should he ul timately be obliged to capitulate. The government, however, not being satisfied with his excuses ordered a court martial, before which he was charged with treal son, cowardice, and unofficerlike conduct. On the first charge the court declined giving an opinion : on the two last he was sentenced to death; but was recommended to mercy in conse- quence of his revolutionary services, and his advanced age, The sentence was remitted by the president; but his name was, ordered to be struck from the rolls of the army. , , º, Section XV. About the middle of Augu that series of splendid naval achievements, fº which this war was distinguished, was con menced by Capt. Isaac Hull, of the United States' frigate Constitution, who captured the British frigate Guerriere, commanded by Capt. Dacres. e The American frigate was superiour in force only by a few guns, but the difference bore no comparison to the disparity the conflict. The loss of the Constitution was seven ki and seven wounded, while that on board the Guerriere was fifteen killed, and sixty-three wounded, among the latter was Capt. Dacres. The Constitution sustained so little injury that ready for action the succeeding day. But the British § so much damaged that she was set on fire and burnt. *XVI. Upon the declaration of war; ntion of the American general was turne isand me were collecte nada line. Skilful officers of the navy vessels on Lake Erie, Ontario, and Champlain, if !. to gain the ascendency there, and to aid the operations of the American forces. The American troops were distributed into three divisions—One under Gen. Harrison, called the North Western army; a second un- der Gen. Stephen Van Rensellaer, at Lewis- town, called the army of the Centre; and a third under the commander in chief, Gen. Dear- orn, in the neighbourhood of Plattsburg and Greenbush, called the army of the North. Section XVII. Early on the morning of the 13th of October, 1812, a detachment of about one thousand men, from the army of the Centre, crossed the river Niagara, ...} sº . attacked the British on Queenstown heights. This detach. ment, under the command of Col. Solomon Van Rensellaer, succeeded in dislodging the ene- n the American side, as was expected, they ltimately repulsed, and were obliged to Iring the engagement. * * i. - the * h rrassment was experienced by the boat ell as by the shot of the enemy, in Apprºl oDX.1809.1817. and militia—the British by the forty-ninth regiment, consis f six hundred regulars, under Gen. Brock. Upon this, the flict was renewed, in which Gen. Brock, and his aid, Captain M’Donald, fell almost in the same moment. After a desperate engagement, the enemy were repulsed, and the victory was thought complete. * . . . . ; # Gen. Van Rensellaer now crossed over, for the purpose of fortifying the heights, preparatory to another attack, should the repulsed enemy be reinforced. This duty he assigned to Lieut. Totten, an able engineer. . But the fortune of the day was not yet decided. At three o'clock in the afternoon, the enemy, being reinforced by several hundred Chippewa Indians, rallied, and again advanced, but were a third time repulsed. At this moment, Gen. Van Ren- sellaer, perceiving the militia on the opposite side embarking but slowly, hastily recrossed the river, to accelerate their move- ments. But what was his chagrin, on reaching the American side, to hear more than twelve hundred of the militia positively refuse to embark. The sight of the engagement had cooled that ardour which, previously to the attack, the commander in chief could scarcely restrain. While their countrymen were nobly * victory, they could remain idle spectators of the scene. All that a brave, resolute, and benevolent com- mander could do, Gen. Van Rensellaer did—he urged, entreat- ed, commanded, but it was all in vain. Eight hundred British soldiers, from Fort George, now hove in sight, and pressed on to renew the attack. The Americans, for a time, continued to struggle against this force, but were finally obliged to surrender themselves prisoners of war. 3- - The number of American troops killed amounted to about sixty, and about one hundred were wounded. Those that sur. endered themselves prisoners of war, including the wounded, r were about seven hundred. The loss of the British is unknown, nut it must have been severe. . . . . . . . ugh the issue of this battle was unfortunate, seldom has American valour shone more conspicuously, or a victory beet relinquished with more reluctance. Had but a small part of th * en” passed over at the critical moment, when urged by their brave commander, revolutionary history can tell of few pture of the brig Frolick, of twenty-two guns, by the sloop of war Wasp. Captain Jones had returned from France two weeks after the declaration of war, and on the 13th of October, again put to sea. On the 17th, he fell in with six merchant ships, under convoy of a brig, and two ships, armed with sixteen §. " he brig, which proved to be the Frolick, Capt. Whinyates, di p- ped behind, while the others made sail. At half past eleven, the action began by the enemy’s cannon and musketry. In five minutes, the main-top-mast was shot away, and falling down, with the main-top-sail yard across the larboard fore and fore- top-sail, rendered her head yards unmanageable, during the rest of the action. In two minutes more, her gaff, and mizen top-gallant-mast were shot away. The sea being ex- ceedingly rough, the muzzles of the Wasp's guns were some- The English fired as their vessel rose, so that their shot was either thrown away, or touched only the rigging of the Ameri- cans; the Wasp, on the contrary, fired as she sunk, and ever, time struck the hull of her antagonist. The fire of the Frulick was soon slackened, and Captain Jones determined to board her. As the crew leaped on board the enemy's vessel, their surprise can scarcely be imagined, as they found no person on deck, except three officers and the seaman at the wheel. The deck was slippery with blood, and presented a scene of havock and ruin. The officers now threw down their swords in sub- mission, and Lieut. Biddle, of the Wasp, leaped into the rig- ging, to haul down the colours, which were still flying. Thus, in forty-three minutes, ended one of the most bloody conflicts recorded in naval history. The loss, on board the Frolick, was thirty killed, and fifty wounded; on board the Wasp, five were killed, and five slightly wounded. The Wasp and Frolick oth captured the same day, by a British seventy-fou, the , Capt. Beresford. . . XIX. The above splendid achieve- apt. Jones was followed on the 25th re, by Commodore Decatur, o nian off the Weste rest e ass, m loun - s2s PERIOD x.1809.1817. don an lost thirty-six killed, and sixty-eight wounded: on board the United States, seven only were killed, and five wounded. The British frigate lost her main-mast, main-top-mast, and main-yard, and was injured in her hull. The United States suffered so little, that a return to port was unnecessary. An act of generosity and benevolence on the part of our brave tars, of this victorious frigate, deserves to be honourably recorded. The carpenter, who was unfortunately killed in the conflict with the Macedonian, had left three small children to the care of a worthless mother. When the circumstance be came known to the brave seamen, they instantly made a contri bution amongst themselves, to the annount of eight hundred dol lars, and placed it in safe hands, to be appropriated to the edu cation and maintenance of the unhappy orphans. & º Section XX. December 29th a second naval victory was achieved by the Constitution, then commanded by Com. Bainbridge, over the Java, a British frigate of thirty-eight guns, but carrying forty-nine, with four hundred men, commanded by Capt. Lambert, who was mor- tally wounded. This action was fought off St. Salvador, and continued nearly two hours, when the Java struck, having lost sixty killed and one hundred and twenty wounded. The Constitution had nine men killed, and twenty-five wounded. On the 1st of January, the commander, finding his prize incapable of being brought in was obliged to burn her. < Section XXI. Thus ended the year 1812. With the exception of the naval victories alrea: dy mentioned, and some others of the same kind, equallv honourable to America, nothing important was achieved. Neither of the armies destined for the invasion of Canada had obtain- 3d any decisive advantage, or were in posses. of any post in that territory. Further pre- . Naval armaments were collecting on the ; and the soldiers, in their winter Madison's ADMINISTRATION. 329 Section XXII. 1813. January 22d, a bloody action was fought at the river Raisin, between a detachment from the north-western army, ex- ceeding seven hundred and fifty men, under Gen. Winchester, and a combined force of Bri- tish and Indians, amounting to one thousand five hundred men, under Gen. Proctor. Many of the Americans were killed and wounded. Among the latter was Gen. Winchester. The remainder, on surrendering themselves prison- ers of war, were nearly all inhumanly massa- cred by the Indians, contrary to the express sti- pulations of Gen. Proctor. * . . . . . . . The station of General Harrison, the commander of the north- western army, was at this time at Franklinton. General Win- chester was stationed at Fort Defiance, half way between Fort Wayne, on the Miami, and Lake Erie, with eight hundred troops, chiefly young men, of the first respectability, from Ken- tucky. Learning that a body of British and Indians was about to concentrate at Frenchtown, on the river Raisin, he sent a de- tachment to protect that place. Before the arrival of the de- tachment, Frenchtown was occupied by a party of the enemy à but they were dislodged after a severe engagement, in which the Americans had twelve killed, and fifty-five wounded. . . On the 20th, General Winchester joined the detachment at Frenchtown, with the remainder of his troops, and, on the 22d, the battle of Raisin was fought. After a desperate conflict, in which many on both sides were killed, the Americans surren- dered, with the express stipulation of being protected from the rary, however, to these stipulations, the savages v indulge their full thirst for blood. The tomahawk ssly buried in many a bosom, and the scalping knife y tore the crown from many a head. the remains of these brave youth , beat by the storms of Heaven, forest, until the ensuing autumn; tain James Lawrence, and the Britisl war Peacock, Captain William Peake, off Sout America. This action lasted but fifteen minutes, when the Peacock struck. ºr On her surrendering, a signal of distress was discovered, on board the Peacock. She had been so much damaged, that, al- ready, she had six feet of water in her hold, and was sinking fast. Boats were immediately despatched for the wounded, and every measure taken, which was practicable, to keep her afloat until the crew could be removed. Her guns were thrown overboard, the shot holes were plugged, and a part of the Hornet's crew, at the imminent hazard of their lives, laboured incessantly to rescue the vanquished. The utmost efforts of these generous men were, however, vain; the conquered vessel sunk in the midst of them, carrying down nine of her own crew and three of the Americans. With a generosity becoming them, the crew of the Hornet divided their clothing with the prisoners, who were left destitute by the sinking ship. In the action the Hornet re- ceived but a slight injury. The killed and wounded, on board the Peacock, were supposed to exceed fifty. Section XXIV. On the 4th of March, 1813, Mr. Madison entered upon his second term of office, as president of the United States; having been re-elected by a considerable majority, though De Witt Clinton, of New-York, was sup- ported by the federal electors. George Clinton was elected vice president: he died, however, soon after, and Elbridge Gerry succeeded him. Section XXV. It having been communicated to the American government, that the emperour of Russia was desirous of seeing an end put to the hostilities between Great Britain and Ame. rica, and had offered to mediate between the two countries, Messrs. Albert Gallatin, James A. Bayard, and John, Quincy Adams, were, n the spring, 1818, appointed commis o, Russia, to meet such comm | T º º . troops to Halifax * considerable pre parations for the defence of Canada. Similar preparations had been urged by the American government, with the hope of completing the conquest of that territory, before the close of another campaign. # About the middle of April, the commander in chief, Gen. Dearborn, determined to attack York, the capital of Upper Canada, the great depository of British military stores, whence the western ports were supplied. Accordingly, on the 27th, a successful attack was made, and York fell into the hands of the Americans, with all its stores. The command of the troops, one thousand seven hundred, de- tached for this purpose, was given to Gen. Pike. On the 25th, the fleet under Commodore Chauncey, moved down the lake, with the troops from Sackett's Harbour, and, on the 27th, arriv- ed at the place of debarkation, about two miles westward from York, and one and a half from the enemies’ works. The Bri- tish consisting of about seven hundred and fifty regulars, and five hundred Indians, under Gen. Sheaffe, attempted to oppose the landing, but were thrown into disorder, and #. to their gar- rison. Gen. Pike, having formed his men, proceeded towards the enemies' fortifications. On their near approach to the barracks, about sixty rods from the garrison, an explosion of a magazine took place, previously prepared for the purpose, which killed * : one hundred of º Americans, among whom was the gal lant Pike, Pike lived to direct his troops, for a moment thrown into dis- order, “to move on.” This they now did under Col. Pearce; and, proceeding towards the town, took possession of the barracks. * ***… t, they were met by the officers of the Canada of capitulation. At four o'clock the º Section XXVII. During the remainder of spring, the war continued along the Can line, and on some parts of the sea N. board; but nothing important was achieved by either power. The Chesapeake Bay was blockaded by the British, and predatory excursions, by their troops, were made at Havre De Grace, George- town, &c. Several villages were burnt, and much property plundered and destroyed. To the north of the Chesapeake, the coast was not exempt from the effects of the war. A strict blockade was kept up at New-York. The American frigates United States and Macedo- nian, and the sloop Hornet, attempted to sail on a cruise from that port, about the beginning of May, but were prevented. In another attempt, they were chased into New-London harbour, where they were blockaded by a fleet under Commodore Hardy, for many months. Fort George, in Canada, was taken by the Americans. Sackett's Harbour was attacked by one thou- sand British, who were repelled with considera- Section XXVIII. On the first of June, the American navy experienced no inconsiderable loss, in the capture of the Chesapeake, by the British frigate Shannon, off Boston harbour—a loss the more severely felt, as on board of her fell several brave officers, among whom was her commander, the distinguished and lamented Capt. Lawrence. …, crew, chiefly enlisted for the occasion, as that of the Chesapeake had mostly been discharged, on the 1st of June, he sailed out c the harbour. The Shannºn, observing the Chesapeake put to sea, imme-. diately followed. At half past five, the two ships engaged. By the first broadside, the sailing master of the Chesapeake was killed, and Lieut. Ballard mortally wounded: Lieut. Brown and Capt. Lawrence were severely wounded, at the same time. A second, and third broadside, besides adding to the destruction of her officers, so disabled the Chesapeake in her rigging, that her quarter fell on the Shannon's anchor. This accident may be considered as deciding the contest; an opportunity was given the enemy to rake the Chesapeake, and, toward the close of the action, to board her. Capt. Lawrence, though severely wounded, still kept the deck. In the act of summoning the boarders, a musket ball entered his body, and brought him down. As he was carried below, he issued a last heroick order, “Don’t give up the ship;” but it was too late to retrieve what was lost; the British boarders leaped into the vessel, and after a short, but bloody struggle, hoisted the British flag. In this sanguinary conflict, twenty-three of the enemy were killed, and fifty wounded; on board the Chesapeake about seventy were killed, and eighty-three wounded. Section XXIX. The tide of fortune seemed now, for a short time, to turn in favour of Great Britain. On the 14th of August, the Argus, of eighteen guns, another of our national vessels, was captured by the Pelican of twenty guns. The Argus had been employed to carry out Mr. Crawford, as minister, to France. After landing him, she proceeded to cruise in the British channel, and, for two months, greatly annoyed the British shipping. At length that government was induced to send several vessels in pursuit of her. On the 14th of August, the Pelican, a sloop of war, of superior force, discovered her, and bore down to action. At the first broadside Capt. Allen fell severely wounded, but remained on deck for some tim when it was necessary to carry him below. After a hard fought action, the Argus was obliged to surrender, with a loss of six ::::::$33 nteen wounded. On board the Pelican there ed and five wounded. Captain Aller $34 PERIOD x~1809-1817. side of America. On the 5th of September fol- lowing, the British brig Boxer surrendered to the Enterprize, after an engagement of little more than half an hour. The Enterprize sailed from Portsmouth on the 1st, and was on the fifth descried by the Boxer, which immediately gave chase. After the action had continued for fifteen minutes, the Enterprize ranged ahead, and raked her enemy so powerfully, that in twenty minutes the firing ceased, and the cry of quarter was heard The Enterprize had one killed and thirteen wounded; but that one was her lamented commander, Lieu- tenant Burrows. He fell at the commencement of the action, but continued to cheer his crew, averring that the flag should never be struck. When the sword of the enemy was presented to him, he exclaimed “I die contented.” The British loss was more considerable. Among their killed was Captain Blythe. These two commanders, both in the morning of life, were inter- wed beside each other, at Portland, with military honours. s Section XXXI. During these occurrences on ..he sea board, important preparations had been made for decisive measures to the westward, and the general attention was now turned, with great anxiety, towards the movements of the northwestern army, and the fleet under coin- mand of Commodore Perry, on Lake Erie. This anxiety, not long after, was, in a mea. sure, dispelled by a decisive victory of the Ame. rican fleet, over that of the British, on Lake Erie, achieved, after a long and desperate con- flict, on the 10th of September. The American squadron consisted of nine vessels, carry fifty-four guns, that of the British, of six vessels and sixty-three guns. The line of battle was formed at eleven, and at aquarter before twelve, the enemy's flag ship, Queen Charlotte, opened a tremendous fire upon the Lawrence, the flagship of Commo. Perry, which was sustained by the latter, ten minutes be: dore e she could bring her carronades to bear. At length, she bore fore £º the squadron to hasten to her s r … wº d n | m Madison's ADMINISTRATI jual force. By this time, the brig had become unmanageable er crew, excepting four or five, were either killed or wound While thus surrounded with death, and destruction still pouring in upon him, Perry left the brig, now only a wreck, in an open boat, and heroically waving his sword, passed unhurt to the Niagara of twenty guns. The wind now rose. Order- ing every canvass to be spread, he bore down upon the enemy: —passing the enemy's vessels, Detroit, Queen Charlotte, and Cady Prevost, on the one side, and the Chippewa, and Little Belt, on the other, into each of which, he poured a broadside— he at length engaged the Lady Provost, which received so heavy. a fire as to compel her men to retire below. § The remainder of the American squadron, now, one after ano- ther, arrived, and following the example of their intrepid leader, closed in with the enemy, and the battle became general. * Three hours finished the contest, and enabled Perry to an- nounce to Gen. Harrison the capture of the whole squadron, which he did, in this modest, laconick, and emphatick style: “We have met the enemy, and they are ours.” The loss in the contest was great in proportion to the numbers engaged. The Americans had twenty-seven killed and ninety- six wounded. But the British loss was still greater, being about two hundred in killed and wounded.' The prisoners amounted to six hundred, exceeding the whole number of Americans en- gaged in the action. 3. § Section XXXII. The Americans were now masters of Lake Erie, but Detroit and Malden were in possession of the British General Proc- tor. Against these, Gen. Harrison, commander of the north-western army, now resolved to di- rect his forces. º Col. Johnson, with a body of K 3. entuckians, was despatched against Detroit. Gen. Harri. son with his troops repaired on board th the same day reached Malden; is forces. 3. :e º in menced a rapid march, and, on the 5th, reached the place where the enemy had encamped the night before. Col. Johnson, who had joined Gen. Harrison, was sent forward to reconnoitre the enemy, and soon returned with the informa- tion that they had made a stand a few miles distant, and were ready for action. The American troops were now formed in or- der of battle. The armies engaged, and, for a time, the strife raged with fury. Providence, however, gave to the Americans a decisive vic- tory, and Detroit fell into their hands. In this engagement, the loss of the British was nineteen regu. lars killed, fifty wounded, and about six hundred prisoners The Indians left one hundred and twenty on the field. The loss of the Americans did not exceed fifty. ... In this battle were engaged one thousand two hundred or one thousand five hundred Indians, led on by Tecumseh, a savage warriour, than whom the annals of history can scarcely boast a greater. Since the defeat of Harmer he had been in almost eve, ry engagement with the whites. On the opening of the late ar, he visited various tribes, and, by his eloquence and influ- ºnce, rous 'd his countrymen to arms against the United States. Section XXXIII. The fall of Detroit put an end to the Indian war in that quarter, and gave security to the frontiers. Gen. Harrison now dismissed a greater part of his volunteers, and having stationed Gen. Cass at Detroit, with about one thousand men, proceeded, according to his instructions, with the remainder of his forces, to Buffalo, to join the army of the centre. . Section XXXIV. The result of the opera- tions of the north-west, and the victory on Lake ; prepared the way to attempt a more effec- invasion of Canada. Gen. Wilkinson was now commanding the were stationed at Niagara, and four thousand at Plattsburg, under the command of Gen. Hamp- ton.—In addition to these forces, those under Gen. Harrison were expected to arrive in sea- son to furnish important assistance. The outline of the plan which had been adopted, was to descend the St. Lawrence, passing the British forts above, and, after a junction with Gen. Hampton, at some designat- ed point on the river, to proceed to the Island of Montreal. Unexpected difficulties, however, plan, and the American forces retired into win- ter quarters at St. Regis. 's Harbour and Kingston, one hu Montreal, by the way of the river." 25th of October, on board the fle twrence, sanguine in the expectation }n the 11th an engagement took rs, between this detachment o achment of the British under Li ties claimed the victory, sh retiring to their er leir boats. The loss of the it of the Americans, in killed nd thirty-nine. Among the latte kinson despatched orde ion, a council of officers andon the project and to 29 338 PERIOD x. 1809.1817. ingly, Gen. Wilkinson ordered a retreat, and selected French Mills, as the winter quarters of his army. The troops of Gen. Hampton soon followed this example. Thus ended a campaign which gave rise to dissatisfaction, proportioned to the high expec- tations that had been indulged of its success. Publick opinion was much divided as to the causes of its failure, and as to the parties to whom the blame was properly to be attached. Section XXXV. The proposal of the empe- rour of Russia to mediate between the United States and Great Britain, with reference to an amicable adjustment of their differences, and the appointment of Messrs. Gallatin, Adams, ind Bayard, as commissioners under that pro- have been mentioned. This proposal, - r, Great Britain thought expedient to de- cline; but the prince regent offered a direct negotiation, either at London or Gottenburg. le offer was no communicated to our vernment, than accepted, and Messrs. Henry Clay, Jonathan Russel, and Albert Gallatin, were appointed in addition to the commission- ers already in Europe, and soon after sailed for m Adams, were appointed on the part heir meeting was first fixed at Gotten- subsequently was changed to Ghent, "here the commissioners assem. ſon, XXXVI. The spring of 1814 was º, Commodore David Porter, which 2d on the 28th of March, in the bay iso, South America, by a superiour MADISON'S Commodore Porter had been cruising in the Pacifickfor near- ly a year, in the course of which he had captured several tish armed whale ships. Some of these were equipped as Ame- rican cruisers and store ships; and the Atlantick, now called the Essex Junior, of twenty guns and sixty men, was assigned to Lieut. Downes. The prizes which were to be laid up, were convoyed by this officer to Valparaiso. On his return, he brought intelligence to Commodore Porter that a British squad- ron, consisting of one frigate, and two sloops of war, and a store ship of twenty guns, had sailed in quest of the Essex. The commodore took measures, immediately, to repair his vessel, which, having accomplished, on the 12th of December, 1813, he sailed for Valparaiso, in company with the Essex Junior.- “It was not long after the arrival of Commodore Porter at Valparaiso, when Commodore Hillyar appeared there in the Phoebe frigate, accompanied by the Cherub sloop of war.— These vessels had been equipped for the purpose of meeting the Essex, with picked crews, in prime order, and hoisted flags bearing the motto, “God and our country, British sailors' best rights; traitors offend them.” This was in allusion to Porter's celebrated motto, “Free trade and sailors' rights;” he now hoisted at his mizzen, “God, our country, and liberty: tyrants offend them.” On entering the harbour, the British commodore fell foul of the Essex, in such a situation as to be placed com. pletely in the power of the latter; the forbearance of Commo- dore Porter was acknowledged by the English commander, and he passed his word and honour to observe the same regard to the neutrality of the port. “The British vessels soon after stood ou port about six weeks, rigorously blockadi , and cruised off the %:...'….: . . . . .'; . . .º. g the Essex. Th united force amounted to eighty-one guns and abou dred men, about double that of the Essex; but the circumst of this force being divided in two ships, rendered the dispa ill greater; and was by no means counterbalanced by the I sex Junior. Commodore Porter being prevented by thi sparity of force, from engaging, made repeated attem The American # $40 period x.1809.1817. cable, and dragged her larboard anchor to sea. Not a momen: was lost in getting sail on the ship, as it was determined to seize this moment to escape. In endeavouring to pass to the windward of the enemy, a squall struck the American vessel, just as she was doubling the point, which carried away her main-top-mast; both ships immediately gave chase, and being unable to escape in his crippled state, the commodore endea- voured to put back into the harbour; but finding this impractica- ble, he ran into a small bay, and anchored within pistol shot of the shore: where, from a supposition that the enemy would continue to respect the neutrality of the port, he thought himself secure. He soon found, however, by the manner in which they approached, that he was mistaken. With all possible despatch, therefore, he prepared his ship for action, and endeavoured to get a spring on his cable, which he could not accomplish before 3. enemy commenced the attack, at fifty-four minutes past *At first the Phoebe placed herself on his stern, and the Che- rub on his larboard bow; but the latter soon finding herself ex- posed to a hot fire, changed her position, and with her consort, kept up a raking fire under his stern. The American, being unable to bring his broadside to bear on the enemy, his spring cables having been three times shot away, was obliged, there- fore, to rely for defence against this tremendous attack, on three long twelve pounders, which he ran out of the stern ports; which were worked with such bravery and skill, as in half an hour to do so much injury to the enemy, as to compel them to hau} off and repair It was evident that Commodore Hillyar meant to risk nothing from the daring courage of the Americans; all his manoeuvres were deliberate and wary; his antagonist was in his power, and is only concern was to succeed with as little loss to himself as ssible. The situation of the Essex was most vexatious to our e countrymen; many of them were already killed and d, and from the crippled state of their ship, they were to bring her guns to bear upon the enemy—Her gallant *re not disheartened; aroused to desperation, they ex- §§ * to the enemy, and their determination to § aving rep ai red, now placed himself, with both arboard quarter of the Essex, brought to bear; the commodore sa under way; the flying-jib was the is he caused to be hoisted, cut his cº MADison's ADMINISTRATION. 34t my, and the firing was tremendous; the decks of the Essex. were strewed with dead, and her cockpit filled with the wound- ed; she had been several times on fire, and was, in fact, a per- fect wreck. At this moment, a feeble hope arose, that she might still be saved, in consequence of the Cherub being compelled to haul off on account of her crippled state; she, however, kept up her fire at a distance, with her long guns. The Essex was unable, however, to take advantage of the circumstance, as the Phoebe edged off, and also kept up, at a distance, a destructive fire; the former being totally bereſt of her sails, could not bring her to close quarters. . Commodore Porter finding the greater part of his crew dis- abled, at last gave up all hope, and attempted to run his vessel on shore, the wind at that moment favouring his design; but it suddenly changed, drove her close upon the Phoebe, exposing her to a raking fire. The ship was totally unmanageable, but as she drifted with her head to the enemy, Commodore Porter again seized a faint hope of being able to board. At this mo- ment Lieutenant Downes came on board, to receive orders, ex pecting that his commander would soon be a prisoner. His ser- vices could be of no avail in the present deplorable state of the Essex, and finding from the enemy’s putting up his helm, that the last attempt at boarding would not succeed, Downes was directed to repair to his ship, to be prepared for defending and destroying her, in case of attack. The slaughter on board the Essex now became horrible, the enemy continuing to rake her while she was unable to bring a single gun to bear, Still her commander refused to yield while a ray of hope appeared. Every expedient, that a fertile and inventive genius could suggest, was resorted to, in the forlorn hope, that he might be able, by some lucky chance, to escape from the grasp of the foe. A hawser was bent to the sheet an- chor, and the anchor cut from the bows, to bring the ship's around. This succeeded; the broadside of the Essex was again brought to bear; and as the enemy was much crippled, and un- able to hold his own, the commodore thought she might drift out ºf gunshot, before he discovered that the Essex had anchored; but alas ! this last expedient failed; the hawser parted, and with it went the last lingering hope of the Essex. ... At this moment her situation was awful beyond descrip her hatchw quantity of powder exploded he fire was near her magazine. Thus sur º chance of saving his ship, he ti 342 - PERIOD x....1809.1817. . of a mile, he hoped that many of them would save themselves before the ship blew up. His boats being cut up, they could only hope to escape by swimming; by some this was effected, but the greater part of his generous crew resolved to stay by the ship, and share the fate of their commander. w They now laboured to extinguish the flames, and succeeded; after this, they again repaired to their guns, but their strength had become so much exhausted, that this effort was in vain. Commodore Porter summoned a consultation of the officers of the divisions, when to his astonishment only one acting lieute- nant, Stephen Decatur M'Night, appeared. The accounts from every part of the ship were deplorable indeed; she was in im- minent danger of sinking, and so crowded with the wounded, that even her birthdeck could hold no more, and several were killed under the surgeon's hands. In the mean time the enemy, at a secure distance, continued his fire; the water having be. come smooth, he struck the hull of the Essex at every shot. At last, despairing of saving his ship, the commodore was compell- ed, at twenty minutes past six, to give the painful orders to strike the colours. The enemy, probably not seeing that this had ta- ken place, continued to fire for ten minutes after, and Porter was about to give orders that the colours should again be hoisted, under a belief that the enemy intended to give no quarters, when the firing ceased. The loss on board the Essex was fifty-eight killed, thirty-nine wounded severely, twenty-seven slightly, and thirty one missing. The loss on board the British vessels was five killed and ten wounded; but they were both much cut up in their hulls and rigging; the Phoebe could scarcely be kept afloat until she anchored in the port of Valparaiso next morn- º ºCommodore Porter was paroled, and permitted to return to the United States in the Essex Junior, which was converted in- to a cartel for the purpose. On arriving off the port of New- York, the vessel was detained by the Saturn razee, and to the disgrace of the British navy, already dishonoured by the base attack upon this gallant officer, he was compelled to give up his parole, and declare himself a prisoner of war, and, as such, he informed the British officer that he would attempt his escape. In consequence of this threat, the Essex Junior was ordered to remaia under the lee of the Saturn; but the next morning Com- ter put offin his boat, though thirty miles from shore, §§§ * pursuit by those of the Saturn, arrived after an action of forty-two minutes, the British ig Epervier surrendered to the Peacock. Fort Erie was taken from the British, early in July, and during the same month, sanguinary battles were fought at Chippewa and Bridgewater. In the battle of Bridgewater, or Niagara, Generals Brown and Scott commanded the Americans; Generals Drummond and Riall the British. The battle lasted from four o'clock, P. M. till midnight. The British loss was nine hundred in killed, wounded, and prisoners; the loss of the Americans did not ex- ceed one hundred. The former were obliged to retire. - Section XXXVIII. While these events were transpiring in the north, the publick attention was irresistibly drawn to the movements of the enemy on the sea-board. About the middle of August, between fifty and sixty sail of the Bri- tish arrived in the Chesapeake, with troops des- tined for the attack of Washington, the capital of the United States. On the 23d of August, six thousand British troops, commanded by Gen. Ross, forced their way to that place, burnt the capitol, president's house, and executive of fices. Having thus accomplished an object highly disgraceful to the British arms, and wan- tonly burned publick buildings, the ornal and pride of the nation, the destruction of º could not hasten the termination of the war— on the 25th they retired, and, by rapid marches, regained their shipping, having lost, during the expedition, nearly one thousand men. The troops, under Gen. R º landed ::... .:::::::::::::::::::::::::::::::::::::::::::::::::::: the Pau forty-seven miles from Washi 344 PERIOD X....1809....1817. from Washington, some sailers left on board the flotilla for the purpose, should it be necessary, set fire to it, and fled. . . On the arrival of the British army at Bladensburg, six miles from Washington, Gen. Winder, commander of the American forces, chiefly militia collected for the occasion, ordered them to engage the enemy. The principal part of the militia, however, fled, at the opening of the contest. Commodore Barney, with a few eighteen pounders, and about four hundred men, made a gallant resistance; but being overpowered by numbers, and himself wounded, he and a part of his brave band were compell ed to surrender themselves prisoners of war. < From Bladensburg, Gen. Ross urged his march to Washing. ton, where he arrived at about 8 o'clock in the evening. Having stationed his main body at the distance of a mile and a hall from the capitol, he entered the city, at the head of about seven hundred men, soon after which, he issued his orders for the con. flagration of the publick buildings. With the capitol were con. sumed its valuable libraries, and all the furniture, and articles of taste and value in that and in the other buildings. The great bridge across the Potomack was burnt, together with an elegant hotel, and other private buildings. º Section XXXIX. The capture of Washing. ton was followed, September 12th, by an attack on Baltimore, in which the American forces, militia, and inhabitants of Baltimore, made a gallant defence. Being, however, overpowered by a superiour force, they were compelled to retreat; but they fought so valiantly, that the attempt to gain possession of the city was aban- doned by the enemy, who, during the night of Tuesday, 13th, retired to their shipping, having lost among their killed, Gen. Ross, the comman- der in chief of the British troops. The British army, after the .. of Washington, having re-embarked on board the fleet in the Pawtuxent, Admiral Coch rane moved down that river, and proceeded up the Chesapeake On the morning of the 11th of September, he appeared at the atapsco, fourteen miles from Baltimore, with a of war and transports, amounting to fifty sail. . . t day, 12th, land forces, to the number of six thou. at INO **** . Madison's ADMINISTRATION. 848 ed with three thousand two hundred men from Baltimore, to keep the enemy in check. On the 12th, a battle was fought by the two armies. Early in the engagement, a considerable part of Gen. Stricker's troops retreated in confusion, leaving him scarcely one thousand four hundred men, to whom was opposed the whole body of the enemy. An incessant fire was continued from half past two o'clock, till a little before four, when Gen. Stricker, finding the contest unequal, and that the enemy outflanked him, retreated apon his reserve, which was effected in good order. The loss of the Americans, in killed and wounded, amounted to one hundred and sixty three, among whom were some of the most respectable citizens of Baltimore. . % The enemy made his appearance, the next morning, in front on the American entrenchments, at a distance of two miles from the city, showing an intention of renewing the attack. In the meantime, an attack was made on fort M'Henry, from frigates, bombs, and rocket vessels, which continued through the day, and the greater part of the night, doing, however, but little damage. - in the course of the night of Tuesday, Admiral Cochrane held a communication with the commander of the land forces, and the enterprise of taking the city being deemed impractica- ble, the troops were re-embarked, and the next day, the fleet descended the bay, to the great joy of the released inhabitants. Section XL. During these troubles in the south, the enemy were far from being inactive in other parts of the United States. August 14th, Fort Erie was attacked by the British, com- a severe engagement, they were repulsed, with a loss of six hundred, in killed, and wounded, and prisoners. The American loss was two hundred and forty-five. . September 1st. The British took possession had taken Eastport, a town situated on one of the islands of the bay of Passammaquoddy. Ab me, also, the seaports along t s46 PERIOD X.1809.1817. rities of the States bordering on the sound, to repel the expected foe. . . . . . Section, XLI. The joy experienced in all parts of the United States, on account of the brave defence of Baltimore, had scarcely sub- sided, when intelligence was received of the signal success of the Americans at Plattsburg, and on Lake Champlain. The army of Sir George Prevost, amounting to fourteen thou- sand men, was compelled by Gen. Macomb to retire from the former, and the enemy's squa- dron, commanded by Commodore Downie, was captured by Commodore Macdonough on the latter. r Towards the close of the winter of 1814, General Wilkinson, with his army, removed from their winter-quarters at St. Regis, and took station at Plattsburg. Gen. Wilkinson leaving the command of the army, Gen. Macomb succeeded him at this place. By September, the troops at Plattsburg were diminish- ed by detachments, withdrawn to other stations, to one thousand five hundred men. x º - r In this state of the forces, it was announced that Sir George Prevost, governour-general of Canada, with an army of four- teen thousand men, completely equipped, and accompanied by merous train of artillery, was about making a descent on Plattsburg. º. & § Arihitime, both the Americans and British had a respecia ble naval force on lake Champlain; but that of the latter was considerably th N. y the superiour, amounting to ninety-five guns, and and and fifty men, while the American squadron car hty-six guns, and eight hundred and twenty-six men, On the 11th of September, while the American fleet was lying off Plattsburg, the British squadron was observed bearing down yon it in order of battle. ' m. Macdonough, ordering his vessels cleared for action, the enemy. An engagement ensued, which pº .# inced, and one frigate, one brig, and two sloops o f the Americans. Several British gº New is eventful day, Sir George Prevost, with his army, arrived in the vicinity of Plattsburg. In anticipation of his event, Gen. Macomb made every preparation which time and means allowed, and called in to his assistance considerable numbers of the militia. f In the sight of these two armies, the rival squadrons commenc- ed their contest. And, as if their engagement had been a pre- concerted signal; and as if to raise still higher the solemn gran- deur of the scene; Sir George Prevost now led up his forces against the American works, and began throwing upon them, shells, balls, and rockets. - ... At the same time, the Americans opened a severe and de- structive fire from their forts. Before sunset, the temporary bat- teries of Sir George Prevost were all silenced, and every attempt of the enemy to cross from Plattsburg to the American works” ject impracticable, the British general hastily drew off hi tes, diminished by killed, wounded, and deserted, two thou five hundred. At the same time he abandoned vast quantitie of military stores, and left the inhabitants of Plattsburg to take care of the sick and wounded of his army, and the “star-span gled banner” to wave in triumph, over the waters of Cham- ine o'clock, perceiving the attainment of his plain. % * * * , Section XLII. It has been already noticed that the New England representatives in con- ress, as well as a great portion of the people in hat section of the country, were early, an y opposed to the war with Great Britai lued, and became confirmed. Enlistments ops into the army from this quarter were, ore, fewer than under other circumstances g the command of the order of the former, to defe 848 PERIOD x.1809.1817 an apprehension that the affairs of the general government were mis-managed, and, to many, it appeared that, a crisis was forming, which, unless seasonably provided against, might in- volve the country in ruin. Such apprehensions for the political safety extensively prevailing throughout New Eng- Hand, it was deemed important, by those who felt for them, to take measures to remove pub- lick grievances, and to provide against antici. pated evils. Accordingly, on the 8th of October, 1814, at an extra session of the Massachusetts Legisla- ture, a committee, to whom was referred the speech of the governour, (Strong,) in the con- clusion of their report, recommend the appoint- ment of “delegates to meet and confer with delegates from the States of New England, or any of them, upon the subjects of their publick grievances and concerns”—“ and also to take measures, if they shall think proper, for procur. ing a convention of delegates from all the Uni. ted States, in order to revise the constitution thereof, and more effectually to secure the sup: port and attachment of all the people, by plac. ing all upon the basis of fair representation.” This resolution met with a spirited opposition from a respectable minority, both in the senate and house of representatives—but finally pass- ed. Delegates were accordingly chosen. This example was followed by Rhode-Island and Connecticut. Vermont refused, and New- shire neglected to send. On the 15th of December, these delegates together with two elected by counties in New mpshire, and one similarly elected in Wer §: ź. º jº. Death of Wolfe, p. 13s. MADISON'S ADMINISTRATION. 349 mont, met at Hartford. After a session of near three weeks, they published a report, in which, after dwelling . the publick grievances felt by the New England States particularly, and by the country at large, in no small degree, they proceeded to suggest several alterations of the federal constitution, with a view to their adop- tion by the respective states of the Union. These alterations consisted of seven articles—first, that re- presentatives and direct taxes shall be apportioned to the num- ber of free persons;–secondly, that no new State shall be ad- mitted into the union without the concurrence of two thirds of both houses;–thirdly, that congress shall not have power to lay an embargo for more than sixty days;–fourthly, that con- gress shall not interdict commercial intercourse, without the con- currence of two thirds of both houses;–fifthly, that war shall not be declared without the concurrence of a similar majority;-- sixthly, that no person who shall be hereafter naturalized, shall be eligible as a member of the senate or house of representatives, or hold any civil office under the authority of the United States; and seventhly, that no person shall be elected twice to the pre- sidency, nor the president be elected from the same State two terms in succession. > - The report of the convention concluded with a resolution, providing for the calling of another convention, should the United States “refuse their consent to some arrangement whereby the New England States, separately, or in concert, might be empowered to assume upon them- selves the defence of their territory against the enemy,” appropriating a reasonable proportion of the publick taxes for this purpo “should peace not be concluded, and since the commenceme fenc ced, another convention was not called; ssion of the above amendments of the constitu- states, they were rejected. --------- axis No act of the federal party has been so bitterly reprehended by their opponents, as the formation of the Hartford Convention. It is represented by them, as a treasonable combination of am- bitious individuals, who, taking advantage of the embarrassments of the national administration, arising out of the war, sought to sever the union; and were only deterred from an open attempt to accomplish their purpose by the unexpected conclusion of a treaty of peace with Great Britain—which disembarrassed the administration—and swept away all grounds upon which to pro- secute their designs. . . . . In defence of the convention, it is urged, that the individuals who composed it, assembled in obedience to legislative appoint- ment; and be the formation of a convention right or wrong, they, as individuals, were not responsible for it. That the call- ing of the convention was right, is urged on the following grounds: at the period of its formation, the situation of the coun- try was such as gave serious grounds of alarm to reflecting men; —the war operations had been singularly disastrous; tıme recruit- ing service languished; the national treasury was almost pen- miless; the national credit was shaken, and loans were effected at a ruinous discount; the New-England seaboard was left ex- posed to the enemy—and instead of securing the confidence of the people of the eastern states, by filling the military and civil offices under the general government, with men of known ta- lents and character, the administration committed the interests of the nation at a critical period to men contemned by a vast majority of the people in those states. The publick mind in view of this state of things, was excit. ed to a pitch bordering on insurrection; and as their representa tion in congress was unheard, they looked with earnest impor tunity to their state legislatures. What could be done? From the earliest dates of its history, the legislatures of New-England had been accustomed to call conventions, at periods of common uanger, to confer upon the publick welfare. It was natural at this moment to resort to the same course; and instead of favour. ing th tion of treasonable intentions by the character of he men selected to form this convention; the age, gravity established reputation of the greater part of the member a fair refutation of such suspicions, There are no clear proofs > support the charge of treasonable designs on the part vention; on the contrary their doings, which are the t of their motives, and the only just grounds up, |cter, and . are before the wo . va s, instead of rous in S::- p psi ic * tº MADison's ADMINISTRATION. 851 the general government, to soothe the publick apprehens ons, and quiet that restless anxiety which pervaded the country. Section XLIII. As early as the month of September, indications of no dubious character were given, that notwithstanding the negotia- tions pending between the American and British commissioners at Ghent, serious preparations were making for an invasion of Louisiana. About December 5th, certain intelligence was received that a British fleet, consisting of sixty sail, was off the coast to the east of the Missis- sippi. In the course of the month, fifteen thou- sand troops were landed, under the command of Sir Edward Packenham, and, on the 8th of January, they attacked the Americans, amount- ing to about six thousand, chiefly militia, in their intrenchments, before New-Orleans. Af. ter an engagement of more than an hour, the enemy, having lost their commander in chief, and Major-General Gibbs, and having been cut to pieces in an almost unexampled degree, fled in confusion, leaving their dead and wounded on the field of battle. . On the receipt of intelligence that the enemy were off the toast of the Mississippi, Commodore Patterson despatched five gun boats to watch their motions. These boats being unfortu- nately captured, the enemy were left to choose their point of at- tack, entirely unmolested. . . A part of the British forces were landed on the 22d of De- cember, and several engagements took place between .. des the Americans, some miles from New-Orleans, but nothing cisive was effected on either side. . During these preliminary engagements, Gen. Jackson, com- manding at New-Orleans, had been diligently employed in pre- naration nd the place. His front was a straight line of ds, defended by upwards of thr The ditch contained ciously dis 352 PERIOD X....1809.1817. guns of different calibres. On the opposite side of the river was a strong battery of fifteen guns. - - On the morning of the 8th of January, General Packenham brought up his forces, amounting to twelve thousand men, to the attack. The British deliberately advanced in solid columns, over an even plain, in front of the American intrenchments, the men carrying, besides their muskets, fascines, and some of them ladders. ~ º A solemn silence now prevailed through the American lines, until the enemy approached within reach of the batteries, which at that moment opened an incessant and destructive cannonade, The enemy, notwithstanding, continued to advance, closing up their ranks as fast as they were opened by the fire of the Ame. ricans. - *g, & - * At length, they came within reach of the musketry and rifles, The extended American line now unitedly presented one sheet of fire, and poured in upon the British columns, an unceasing tide of death. Hundreds fell at every discharge, and by columns were swept away. - º Being unable to stand the shock, the British became disorder- ed and fled. In an attempt to rally them, Gen. Packenham was ki'ked. Generals Gibbs and Kean succeeded in pushing for. ward their columns a second time, but the second approach was still more fatai, than the first. The fires again rolled from the American batteries, and from thousands of muskets. The ad. vancing columns again broke and fled; a few platoons only reached the edge of the ditch, there to meet a more certain de- struction. In a third but unavailing attempt to lead up their troops, Generals Gibbs and Kean were severely wounded, the former mortally. - * The field of battle now exhibited a scene of extended carnage. Seven hundred brave soldiers were sleeping in death, and one thousand four hundred were wounded. Five hundred were made prisoners—making a loss to the British, on this memorable day, of near three thousand men. The Americans lost in the en- gagement only seven killed, and six wounded. . . . . . . . ; The enemy now sullenly retired, and on the night of the 18th, Evacuated their camp, and, with great secresy, embarked on IV. The news of the victor read with haste through 2s, and soon after was follo Madison's ADMINISTRATION. 85s December, 1814. On the 17th of February, this treaty was ratified by the president and senate. Upon the subjects for which the war had been professedly declared, the treaty, thus concluded, was silent. It provided only for the suspension of hostilities—the exchange of prisoners— the restoration of territories and possessions obtained by the contending powers, during the war—the adjustment of unsettled boundaries—and for a combined effort to effect the entire abo- lition of traffick in slaves. But whatever diversity of opinion had prevailed about the justice or policy of the war—or now prevailed about the merits of the treaty—all parties welcomed the return of peace. The soldier gladly exchanged the toils of the camp for º: rest of his home; the mariner once more spread his canvass to the wind, and, fearless of molestation, joyfully stretched his way on the ocean; and the yeomanry of the land, unaccustomed to the din of arms, gladly returned to their wonted care of the field, and the flock. . .. . Section XLV. The treaty with England was followed, on the 30th of June, 1815, by a treaty with the dey of Algiers, concluded at Algiers at that time, by William Shaler, and Com. Stephen Decatur, agents for the United States. . The war which thus ended by treaty was commenced by the dey himself, as early as the year 1812. At that time the Ame- rican consul, Mr. Lear, was suddenly ordered to depart from Algiers, on account of the arrival of a cargo of naval and mili- tary stores, for the regency of Algiers, in fulfilment of treaty stipulations, which the dey alleged were not such in quantity or quality as he expected. At the same time, depredations were commenced upon our commerce. Several American vessels were captured and condemned, and their crews subjected to slavery. Upon a representation of the case, by the presiden gress, that body formally declared war against th March. Soon after an American squadron sailed for the diterranean, captured an Algerine brig, and a forty-four † t length appeared before Algiers. . . . . . already achieved, epa 354 PERIOD X....1809....1817. was to be restored by the dey—prisoners to be delivered up without ransom, &c. &c. e * - Section XLVI. By the ninth article of the treaty between the United States and Great Britain, it was stipulated by the former, that measures should be immediately taken to esta- blish a peace with the several tribes of Indians, which had been engaged in hostilities against the United States. Such measures were accord- ingly taken, and, in his message, December, 1815, the president communicated to congress, that a renewal of treaties had readily been ac- ceded to by several tribes, and that other more distant tribes would probably follow their exam- ple, upon proper explanations. Section XLVII. The treaty with Great Bri- tain, which ended the war, left the subject of commercial intercourse between the two nations to future negotiation. In the summer following the close of the war, plenipotentiaries, respect- ively appointed by the two countries for that purpose, met at London, and on the third of July, signed “a convention, by which to regu- late the commerce between the territories of the United States, and of his Britanick majesty.” This convention provided for a reciprocal liberty of com- merce between the two countries—for an equalization of duties on importations and exportations from either country to the other—and for the admission of American vessels to the princi. pal settlements of the British dominions in the East Indies, viz. Madras, Calcutta, Bombay, &c. Of this convention the presi dent spoke in terms of approbation, in his message to congress; but by a large portion of the community it was received with coldness, from an apprehension that it would operate unfavour a! America, and would seriously abridge her commerce, MADison's ADMINISTRATION. 355 days from the exchange of ratifications, between twenty-three degrees and fifty degrees of north latitude, should be considered lawful prizes. A longer period was stipulated for more distant latitudes. Within the time limited by this arti- cle, several actions took place, and several ves- sels of various descriptions were captured by each of the belligerents. The frigate President was taken January 15th, 1815, by a British squadron ; the British ships Cyane, Levant, and Penguin, were captured by the Americans. In consequence of the continued blockade of Commodore De- catur’s squadron at New-London, that officer was transferred to the President, then at New-York. Soon after taking command of her, a cruise was contemplated by the commodore, in con- junction with the Peacock, Hornet, and Tom Bowline. Think- ing it more safe to venture out singly, the commodore appoint- ed a place of rendezvous for the vessels, and set sail in the Pre- sident. Through the carelessness of the pilot, his vessel, in passing out, struck upon the bar, where she lay for two hours. tossing about, by which her ballast was deranged, and her trim for sailing lost. Trusting to the excellence of his vessel, how- ever, and not being able to return to port, the commodore put out to sea. > .." At daylight, he fell in with a British squadron, consisting of the Endymion, Tenedos, and Pomone frigates, with the Majes- tick razee. In spite of every exertion, they gained upon him; at length the Endymion came within reach, and opened her fire. Commodore Decatur determined to engage her before the other vessels should come up. This he now did, and in a short time completely silenced her. By this time, the rest of the squadron had arrived; being unwilling to sacrifice his men in a useless, contest, on receiving the fire of the nearest frigate, he surrender- ed. Commodoré Decatur was taken on board the Endymion, and although she was only a wreck, he was required to surren- der his sword to the officer of that vessel. To this the spiri ecatur could not submit, and he indignantly . % $56 PERIOD x.1809.1817. of her capture. On the 23d of January, the Hornet parted company, and directed her course towards Tristan d’Acuna, the place of rendezvous. On the 23d of March, she descried the É.in brig Penguin, of eighteen guns and a twelve pound carronade, to the southward and eastward of the island. Cap- tain Biddle hove to while the Penguin bore down. At forty minutes past one, the British brig opened her fire. After fif- teen minutes the Penguin gradually neared the Hornet with an intention to board, the captain having given orders for that pur- pose. At this time, he was killed by a grape shot. Her lieu- tenant then bore her up, and running her bowsprit between the main and mizzen rigging of the Hornet, gave orders to board. His men, however, perceiving the crew of the Hornet ready to receive them, refused to follow him. . At this moment the heavy swells of the sea lifted the Hornet ahead. The commander of the Penguin called out that he had surrendered, and Captain Biddle ordered his men to cease firing. Immediately after this, an officer of the Hornet called to Cap- tain Biddle, that a man in the enemy's shrouds was taking aim at him. Before he could change his position, a musket ball struck him in the neck, and wounded him severely. Two ma- rines immediately levelled their pieces, and killed the wretch before he had brought his gun from his shoulder. The crew of the Hornet, indignant at this outrage, demanded to give the enemy a fresh broadside, and the vessel had nearly wore round for the purpose, before Captain Biddle could restrain the justly exasperated crew. The loss of the Penguin was fourteen in killed, and twenty-eight wounded. The Hornet had one killed and leven wounded. The former vessel was so seriously in- jured, that Captain Biddle sunk her. : , Section XLIX. The attention of congress, during their session in the year 1815–1816, was called to a bill, which had for its object the incorporation of a National Bank. In the dis- cussion which followed, much diversity of opi- nion was found to prevail, not only as to the constitutional power of congress to establish such an institution, but also as to the principles upon which it should be modelled MADison's ADMINISTRATION. 357 on Wednesday, April 10th, received the signa- ture of the president. Of the stock of the bank, seven millions were to be subscribed by the United States, the remaining twenty-eight by individuals. The affairs of the corporation were to be managed by twenty- five directors, five of whom were to be chosen by the president, with the advice and consent of the senate; the remainder to be elected by the stockholders, at the banking house in Philadel- phia. The charter of the bank is to continue in force until the 3d of March, 1836. § & / sº L. The summer of 1816 passed away with- out being marked by any events of peculiar mo- ment. The country appeared to be gradually recovering from the embarrassments induced by the war, and that asperity of feeling, which had agitated the different political parties in the United States, was visibly wearing away. Con- gress met in December. In the conclusion of his message at the opening of the session, Mr. Madison, anticipating the speedy arrival of the day, when he should retire from the presidency, took occasion to express his attachment for his country, and his wishes for her future peace and prosperity: . 3 “I can indulge the proud reflection,” said he, “that the American people have reached in safety and success, their for- tieth year, as an independent nation; that for nearly an entire generation, they have had experience of their present constitu- tion, the offspring of their undisturbed deliberations and of their free choice; that they have found it to bear the trials of adverse as well as prosperous circumstances, to contain in its combina- tion of the federate and elective principles, a reconcilement of publick strength with individual liberty, of national power, for the defence of national rights, with a security against wars of injustice, of ambition, or of vain glory, in the fundamental pro- Vision which subjects all questions of war to the will of the na- sº x. 358 . PERIOD X....1809.1817. and expansion of the community, for whose benefit it was esſa blished.” & . • Section LI. In December 1816, INDIANA be came an independent state, and was received into the union. . . Detached places in Indiana were settled by the French, up- wards of a century ago. The exact period, at which the first settlement was made, is uncertain. . In 1763, the territory was ceded by France to England. By the treaty of Greenville in 1795, the United States obtained ol the Indians several small grants of land within this territory; and, in subsequent years, still more extensive tracts. During the war with England, which broke out in 1812, Indiana was the scene of many Indian depredations, and of many unusually severe battles, between the hostile tribes, and the troops of the United States. Until 1801, Indiana formed a part of the great north-western territory, but, at that date, it was erected into a territorial government, with the usual powers and privileges. In December 1815, the inhabitants amounting to sixty thousand, the legislature petitioned congress for admission into the union, and the privilege of forming a state constitution. A bill for this purpose passed congress, in April 1816; a convention of dele- gates met in conformity to it, by which a constitution was adopt- ed, and Indiana became an independent state, and a member of the union in December following, • – - Section LII. 1817. On Wednesday, Febru- ary 12th, the votes for Mr. Madison's successor were counted in the presence of both houses of congress, when it appeared that James Monroe was elected president, and Daniel D. Tompkins vice-president of the United States, for the four years from and after the 4th of the ensuing March. Notts. ºanners. The only nº MADison's ADMINISTRATION. 359 vaded the country during the war. Money was borrowed with facility, and fortunes were often made in a day. Extravagance and profligacy were, to some extent, the consequence. The return of peace, and the extensive misfortunes which fell upon every part of the community, counteracted these vices, and restored more so- ber and industrious habits. Section LIV. it citgiftſ. During this peri- ed, extensive revivals of religion prevailed, and liberal and expanded plans were devised and commenced for the promotion of christianity. Several theological institutions were founded, missionary and bible societies were established, and a great call for ministers of the gospel was heard. . Section LW. Craºſe àitºſ (£0.11(iittºrtº. During this period, trade and commerce were crippled by foreign restrictions, our own acts of non-intercourse, and, at length, by the war with England. During this war our carrying trade was destroyed, nor was it restored by the peace of 1815. … . . . . .'; ... 3. On the return of peace, immense importations were made from England, the country being des- titute of English merchandise. The market was soon glutted, prices fell, and extensive bank- ruptcies were the consequence. . . . . Section LVI. 31ſtituiture. Agriculture, during this period, cannot be said to have made great advances. .. An excessive disposition in the people, for trade and specula- tion, drew off the attention of the more intelligent and active part of the community, and directed much of the capital of th * try to other objects. Upon the return of peace, however, when mercantile distresses overspread the land, agriculture was ag Resorted to, as one of the surest means of obtaining a liv Men of capital, too, turned their attention to farming; 360 period x.1809.1817. tural societies were established, in all parts of the country: more enlightened methods of culture were introduced, and agriculture became not only one of the most profitable, but one of the most popular objects of pursuit. * . Section LVII. 3rts and ſºlatittfat= tures. During the war which occurred in this period, the intercourse with England and other places, being stopped, the country was soon des- titute of those articles which had been supplied by English manufactories. Accordingly, the people began to manufacture for themselves. Extensive manufacturing establishments were started for almost every sort of merchandise.— Such was their success at the outset, that an im- mense capital was soon invested in them, and the country began to be supplied with almost every species of manufacture from our own es- tablishments. After the peace, the country be- ing inundated with British goods, these esta- blishments suffered the severest embarrass- ments, and many of them were entirely broken down. A considerable portion of them, how- ever, were maintained, and continued to flou rish. Section LVIII. 3.}optilation. At the expi- ration of Mr. Madison's term of office, in 1817, the number of inhabitants in the United States was about nine millions, five hundred thousand. Section LIX. 335tttation. The pecuniary arrassments experienced throughout the ountry, during the latter part of this period, ensibly affected some institutions devoted to nce and benevolence, especially those which ce and - º means of support. In several of the high minaries, the number of students was, Battle of Bunker Hill, p. 16s. MADison's ADMINISTRATION 361 time, diminished. Nevertheless, parochial schools, academies, and colleges, upon the whole, continued to increase, and to qualify many for the common and higher professions of A theological institution was established at Princeton, New- Jersey, in 1812, by the General Assembly of the Preslayterian Church. In 1821, the theological seminary of the Associate Reformed Church, in New-York, was united to that of Prince- ton, and its library, consisting of four thousand volumes, which cost seventeen thousand dollars, was transferred to the latter place. This seminary has three professors, and in 1821, had seventy-three students. x- During the same year, Hamilton College was incorporated at Clinton, New-York; it has been liberally patronised by the legislature, and by individuals. 31 D STATEs. - perion XX. distinguished for Monroe's ADMINISTRAtion, Extending from the inauguration of President Monroe, 1817, to the close of the year 1822. ºf , ºf Section I. On the 4th of March, 1817, Mr. Monroe took the oath prescribed by the consti- tution, and entered upon the duties of president of the United States. The condition of the country, on the accession of Mr. Mon- roe to the presidency, was in several respects more prosperous and happy, than on the accession of his predecessor. Not only had war ceased, and the political asperity, excited by it, given place to better feelings, but efforts were made in every section of the union, to revive those plans of business, which the war had nearly annihilated.—The country had suffered too much, however, to regain, immediately, its former prosperity. , Com- merce was far from being flourishing; a considerable part of the legitimate trade was in the hands of foreigners; many ships were lying unemployed, and the ship building in many ports had nearly, ceased. The manufacturing establishments, which had not been entirely broken down, were sustaining a precarious existence. Foreign merchandise was inundating the country; and the specie, borrowed in Europe for the national bank, at an excessive premium, as well as that which was previously in the country, was rapidly leaving it to pay the balance of trade against us.” In his inaugural address, however, the president. § . k of the United States commenced the importation of specie º #): in 1817, and introduced into the country seven millions, three hundred and eleven thousand, seven hundred and fifty dollars, at an expense o more than half a million of dollars. As fast as this specie arrived it was re-shipped to Europe, to pay the balance of trade against the United º or sent tº india or China to purchase merchandise, with this MADison's ADMINISTRATION. 86s spoke in animating terms of the happy star of the country, and of its prospects of regaining, at no distant period, that measur of prosperity, which in former years it had enjoyed. . . . . Section II. In the summer and autumn, fol- lowing his inauguration, the president made a tour through the northern and eastern states of the union. - is . . . . . . . . . . . . . . The objects of this tour were connected with the national in- erests. Congress had appropriated large sums of money for the fortification of the sea coast, and inland frontlers, for the es- tablishment of naval docks, and for increasing the navy. The superintendence of these works belonged to the president. So- licitous to discharge his duty in reference to them with judgment, fidelity, and economy, he was induced to visit the most import- ant points along the sea coast, and in the interior, from a con- viction of being better able to direct in reference to them, with the knowledge derived from personal observation, ‘han by means of information communicated to him by others. He left Wash- ington on the 1st of June, accompanied by Gen. Joseph C. Swift, chief engineer of the United States, and his private secre. tary, Mr. Mason. Passing through Baltimore, Philadelphia, New York, New-Haven, Hartford, New-London, and Provi- dence, he arrived in Boston, in which place and its vicinity, he spent several days. w & 3 & ... & § On leaving Boston, he continued eastward to Portland, through Salem, Newburyport, and Portsmouth; and thence directed his course westward to Plattsburg, in the state of New-York. In his route thither, he passed through Dover, Concord, and Hano- ver, in New-Hampshire, and through Windsor, and Burlington, in Vermont. The important post of Plattsburg occupied his close attention for several days. From this latter place he con- tinued westward, to Ogdensburg, Sackett's Harbour, and De- troit. Having now effected the leading objects of his tour, he commenced his return to the seat of government through the in- terior of Ohio. At the close of the day, Sept. 17th, he entered Washington, after having been absent more than thi 3, and having travelled three thousand miles. In the course of his tour, the president examined the various fortifications on the sea board, and in the interior, visited publick buildings and institu- tions, devoted to the purposes of literature, the arts, and general benevolence.—Although undesirous of attracting publick atten- tion on a tour, whose object was the good of his country, he was met by a respectable deputation from the various places, through which it was understood he would pass, and in lively and patri- otick addresses was welcomed to their hospitality. Section III. Congress met on the 1st of De- ź cember. In his message at the opening of the session, the president stated that the national credit was attaining a high elevation; that pre- parations for the defence of the country were progressing, under a well digested system; that arrangements had been made with Great Britain to reduce the naval force of the two countries on the western lakes, and that it was agreed that each country should keep possession of the isl- ands which belonged to it before the war; and that the foreign relations of the country conti- nued to be pacifick. The message concluded with recommending the surviving officers and soldiers of the revolutionary army to the special notice of congress, and the repeal of the inter- mal duties, on the ground that the state of the treasury rendered their longer continuance un- necessary. Section IV. On the 11th, the state of Missis- sippi was acknowledged by congress as sove- reign and independent, and was admitted to the union. - The first European, who visited the present state of Missis- sippi, appears to have been Ferdinand de Soto, a native of Ba- | o landed on the coast of Florida. 5th ree years in the countr º name of Louisiana t MONRoe's ADMINISTRATION. French claimed to have jurisdiction overit. In 1716, they formed a settlement at the Natchez, and built a fort, which they nam- ed Rosalie. Other settlements were effected in subsequent years. The French settlements were, however, seriously disturbed by, the Indians, particularly by the Natchez, once the most power- ful of all the southern tribes. . . . . The French retained an acknowledged title to the country, on the east side of the Mississippi, until the treaty of 1763, when they ceded their possessions, east of that river, to the English. By the treaty of 1783, Great Britain relinquished the Floridas to Spain, without specifick boundaries; and at the same time, ceded to the United States all the country north of the thirty-first degree of latitude. The Spaniards retained pos- session of the Natchez and the ports north of the thirty-first de- gree, until 1798, when they finally abandoned them to the Unit- ed States. . . In the year 1800, the territory between the Mississippi and the western boundary of Georgia was erected into a distinct territorial government. By treaty in 1801, at fort Adams, the Choctaw Indians relinquished to the United States a large body of land, and other cessions have since been made. On the 1st of March, 1817, congress authorised the people of the western part of Mississippi territory to form a constitution and state go- vernment. A convention met in July, 1817, by which a consti- tution was formed, and in December following, Mississippi was admitted into the union as a separate state . - Section V. In the course of the same month, an expedition which had been set on foot by a number of adventurers, from different countries, against East and West Florida, was terminated by the troops of the United States. These ad- venturers claimed to be acting under the autho- rity of some of the South American colonies, and had formed an establishment at Amelia Island, a Spanish province, then the subject of negotia- tion between the United States and Spain and of course an io PERIODxI.1817.1822. A similar establishment had previously been formed at Gal. yezton, a small island on the coast of the Texas, claimed by the United States. From both of these places privateers were fitted out, which greatly annoyed our regular commerce. Prizes were sent in, and by a pretended court of admiralty, condemned and sold. Slaves, in great numbers, were shipped through these Islands to the United States, and through the same channel ex- tensive clandestine importations of goods were made. Justly apprehending the results of these establishments, if suffered to proceed unmolested, the executive took early measures to sup- press them. Accordingly, a naval force, with the necessary troops, was despatched under command of Captains Henly and Bankhead, to whom Amelia Island was surrendered, on the 24th of December, without the effusion of blood. The sup- pression of Galvezton followed soon after. Section VI. Several bills of importance pass- ed congress, during their session, in the winter of 1817, 1818; a bill allowing to the members of the senate, and house of representatives, the sum of eight dollars per day, during their attend- ance; a second, in compliance with the recom- mendation of the president, abolishing the in- ternal duties; and a third, providing, upon the same recommendation, for the indigent officers and soldiers of the revolutionary army. The compensation bill, as it was called, excited much sensa- tion throughout the nation, on the ground that the sum was un- necessarily enhanced, and gave occasion to long and animated debates on the floor of the house of representatives. By a por- tion of the .*.*. strenuous efforts were made to fix the per diem allowance at six dollars, while others attempted to raise it to nine or ten. After a protracted discussion of the Against the repeal of the internal duties, few objections were MONRoE’s ADMINISTRATION. 367 achievement of our independence, said he, have paid the debt of nature. Among the survivors there are some, who are reduced to indigence, and even to real distress. These men have a claim on the gratitude of their country, and it will do honour to their country to provide for them. The lapse of a few more years, and the opportunity will be lost forever, as they will all have gone to the grave. In compliance with this recommendation, a bill was introduced into congress, which, after some amend- ments, passed, granting to indigent officers of the revolutionary army the sum of twenty dollars, per month, during life, and of eight dollars, per month, during life, to indigent non-commis- sioned officers and privates. . . Section VII. In April 1818, ILLINois adopted a state constitution, and in December following, was admitted as a member of the union. Illinois derives its name from its principal river, which, in the language of the Indians, signifies the river of men. The first settlements, like those of Indiana, were made by the French, and were the consequence of the adventurous enterpri- ses of M. de la Salle, in search of the Mississippi.-The first settlements were the villages of Kaskaskia and Cahokia. In the beginning of the eighteenth century, the settlements of Illi- nois were represented to have been in a flour.shing condition. But subsequently they in a great measure declined. . From the beginning to the middle of the eighteenth century, little was heard of the settlements of the French, on the banks of the Illinois. About 1749, the French began to fortify the Wabash and Illinois, in order to resist the British. In 1762, all the country to the east of the Mississippi was ceded to the latter power, and consequently Illinois passed under the British do- minion. At the peace of 1783, Great Britain renounced its claims of sovereignty over this country, as well as over the United States. Virginia, however, and some other states, claimed the whole country, north and west of the Ohio; but at the instance of congress, a cession of these claims was made to the general government. Illinois remained a part of Indiana until 1809, when a distinct territorial government was establish- ed for it. In 1 818, the people formed a consti now one of the United States. . . . • on of 11 t 368 - º: º, PERIod º XI.1817.1822. lying on its extensive shores. to survey the Chesapeake bay, and the country "In the month of May, he left Washington, accompanied by the secretary of war, and the secretary of the navy, with other gentlemen of distinction. On his arrival at Annapolis, the pre- sident and his suite minutely examined the waters contiguous, in reference to their fitness for a naval depot. Embarking at this place on board a vessel, he further examined the coast, and thence proceeded to Norfolk. Having at length accomplished the principal object of his tour, in the examination of the Che sapeake bay, he returned to Washington, June 17th, through the interior of Virginia. The respectful, and affectionate de monstrations of attachment, paid to him during his northern tour, were renewed in this. º Section IX. On the 27th of May, 1818, a trea- ty, concluded with Sweden. at Stockholm, on the 4th of September, 1816, by Mr. Russel, minis- ter plenipotentiary to that court, was ratified by the president and senate, on the part of the United States. The same was ratified by the king of Sweden on the 24th of the following This treaty provided for maintaining peace and friendship between the two countries—reciprocal liberty of commerce— equalization of duties, &c. &c. The treaty was to continue in force for eight years from the exchange of ratifications. Section X. During the year 1818, a war was carried on between the Seminole Indians, and the United States, which terminated in the com plete discomfiture of the former. The history of this war is rendered the more interesting by the conspicuous part which the hero of New-Orleans bore in it, ld the decisive, though novel measures which he adopted in § dians, denominated Seminole Indians, inhabited a tract partly within the limits of the United States, but a MONROE'S ADMINISTRATION. 360 the Seminoles, carrying with them feelings of hostility against the United States. These feelings seem to have been much strengthened by foreign emissaries, who had taken up their re. sidence among them for the purposes of trade, among whom, as the most conspicuous, were two Englishmen, Alexander Ar buthnot and Robert C. Ambrister. Many outrages were per- petrated from time to time, by the Indians, upon the border in- habitants, and several murders, under aggravated circumstances, were committed. Moreover, with a demand by General Gaines, the United States’ officer, in that quarter, to deliver up the of fenders, the Indians refused to comply, alleging that the first and greatest aggressions had proceeded from the whites. In consequence of this refusal, Gen. Gaines was instructed, by the secretary of war, to remove, at his discretion, such lndians as were still on the lands ceded to the United States by the Creeks in 1814. . . . . . . . Pursuant to this discretionary authority, Gen. Gaines detached a party of near three hundred men, under command of Major Twiggs, to take an Indian village called Fowl Town, about four- teen miles from fort Scott, and near the Florida line. In execut- ing this order, one man and one woman were killed, and two women made prisoners. A few days after, as a second detach- ment were on a visit to the Town, to obtain property, they were fired upon, and a skirmish ensued, in which several on both sides were killed and wounded. Shortly after this event, Lieu- tenant Scott, with a detachment of forty men, seven women, and some children, ascending the Appalachicola, with supplies for the garrison at Fort Scott, were attacked, and the whole party killed, excepting six men, who made their escape, and a woman who was taken prisoner. a From this time, the war became serious. The Indians, in considerable numbers, were embodied, and an open attack was made on Fort Scott, to which General Gaines with about six hun- dred regular soldiers was for a time confined. Information of this state of things being communicated to the department of war, General Jackson was ordered, Dec. 26, to take the field, and directed, if he should deem the force with General Gaines, amounting to one thousand and eight hundred men, insufficient, to cope w le enemy, “to call on the executives of º adja- in additional militia force as he might deem receipt of this order, General J. bre- lstead of calling 370 PERIOD XI....1817.1822. the patriots of West Tennessee, inviting one thousand of then to join his standard.” º ºx tº º At the same time he wrote to the governour of Tennessee M*Minn, informing him of the appeal he had made to the men whom he had led to victory on the plains of Talledega, Emuck- fau, and Tohopeko, and added, “should the appeal prove ineffi cacious, I will embrace the earliest opportunity of making the requisition on you for a like number of drafted militia.” The call of General Jackson was promptly obeyed, and the thousand volunteers, officered by the general, or by the volunteers them. selves, were ordered to Fort Scott. ºf ºl * Before taking up his march, he wrote, Jan. 12th, to the secre- tary of war, apprising him of the appeal he had made to the Ten- messeeans, assigning as his reason for such a step, that he deemed the force with general Gaines, one thousand eight hundred, in- sufficient, and “that the greater portion of this number were drafted militia from Georgia, who might apply for their discharge at the expiration of three months from the time they were mus. tered,” about the time he should probably reach Fort Scott. To this communication the secretary replied—“I have the honour to acquaint you of the entire approbation of the president, of all the measures which you have adopted to terminate the rupture with the Indians.” § º, . º tº With these troops, and a number of friendly Creeks, under Gen M*Intosh, raised by General Gaines, Jackson entered upon the Seminole war. ... in As a considerable number of these Indians dwelt in Florida, it became necessary to pursue the enemy thither. Anticipating the necessity of this measure, the secretary of war issued an or der to General Gaines, while he was in command, to pursue them into Florida if necessary, “and to attack them within its limits, * The apology offered by General Jackson for not calling upon the #9. r of Tennessee was, that at the time the order was issued, for him the field, the governour was either at Knoxville, or in the Cherº. n; and that to have waited the result of the usual process ol would have produced the two evils of much loss of valuable time, & & of a force reluctant in disposition, and inefficient in chº to ta. keena It is true,"bowever, says his defence. (see : hé appealed tº the officers unless they should shelter themselves under a Spanish fort, this last event you will immediately notify this department.” Deeming it necessary for the subjugation of the Seminoles, to enter Florida, General Jackson marched upon St. Marks, a feeble Spanish garrison, in which some Indians had taken refuge. Of this garrison, General Jackson quietly took possession, and oc- cupied it as an American post.” At St. Marks was found Alex- ander Arbuthnot, who was taken prisoner, and put in confine- ment. At the same time were taken two Indian chiefs, one of whom pretended to possess the spirit of prophecy; they were hung without trial.; St. Marks being garrisoned by American troops, the army marched to Suwaney river, on which they found a large Indian village, which was consumed, after which the army returned to St. Marks, bringing with them Robert C. Am- brister, who had been taken prisoner on their march to Suwaney. During the halt of the army for a few days at St. Marks, a gene- ral court martial was called, upon whose result, General Jack- son issued the following general order. “At a special court martial, commenced on the 26th instant at St. Marks, and con- tinued until the night of the 28th, of which brevet Major-Gene- ral E. P. Gaines was president, was tried A. Arbuthnot, on the Iollowing charges and specifications, viz: Charge 1st, Exciting and stirring up the Creek Indians to war against the United States and her citizens, he, A. Arbuth- aot, being a subject of Great Britain, with whom the United States are at peace. ... 3 . . . . . . . . º.º. . ; Acting as a spy; aiding, abetting, and comfort- ing the enemy, and supplying them with the means of war. Charge 36, Exciting the Indians to murder and destroy Wil- liam Hambly and Edmund Doyle, confiscate their property, Charge 2d, ź | * This disobedience of the orders which had been given to General Haines, not to attack a Spanish fort, but to notify the secretary of war, & any Indians take shelter under one, was defended by General Jack- the ground, that orders issued to one officer could not be const sto his successor without a special reference to the fi egeneral and discretionary:-and that the circumst fe orders to General Gaines never existed. The In under the guns of a Spanish fort, but sheltered withi. ice of General Jackson, already aluded Shet, had long been a dire and dangerø had a brigadier's commission from ( nce instigated º and causing their arrest, with a view to their condemnation t death, and the seizure of their property, they being citizens Spain, on account of their active and zealous exertions to main- taia peace between Spain, the United States, and the Indians. To which charges the prisoner pleaded not guilty. . . . The court, after mature deliberation on the evidence adduced, find the prisoner, A. Arbuthnot, guilty of the first charge, and guilty of the second charge, leaving out the words “acting as a spy;” and after mature reflection, sentence him, A. Arbuthnot, to be suspended by the neck, until he is dead. ... " . . * * , Was also tried, Robert C. Ambrister, on the following charges, VIZ, : ; : Charge 1st, Aiding, abetting, and conforting the enemy, and supplying them with the means of war, he being a subject of Great Britain, who are at peace with the United States, and late an officer in the British colonial marines. ... Charge 2d, Leading and commanding the lower Creek In- dians in carrying on a war against the United States. . To which charges the prisoner pleaded as follows: to the first jarge not guilty, to the second charge guilty, and justifica- tion. % . º żº “The court, on examination of evidence, and on mature de- liberation, find the prisoner, Robert C. Ambrister, guilty of the first and second charges, and do therefore sentence him to suffer death by being shot. The members requesting a reconsidera- tion of the vote on this sentence, and it being had, they sentence the prisoner to receive fifty stripes on his bare back, and be con- fined with a ball and chain, to hard labour for twelve calendar months. The commanding general approves the finding and sentence of the court, in the case of A. Arbuthnot, and approves the finding and first sentence of the court, in the case of Robert C. Ambrister, and disapproves the reconsideration of the sen- tence of th’, honourable court in this case. “ It appears from the evidence and pleading of the prisoner, that he did lead and command within the territory of Spain, (being a subject of Great Britain,) the Indians in war against the United States, those nations being at peace. It is an established principle of the laws of nations, that any individual of a nation, making war against the citizens of any other nation, they being , forfeits his allegiance, and becomes an outlaw and pi- is the case of Robert C. Ambrister, clearly shown % anding general orders that brevet Major A.C. he corps of artillery, will have between the hoſiſ: o'clock, A. M. A. Arbuthnot suspended tes presence in that country could be no longer necessary ; and that he should soon leave St. Marks for Fort Gadsden, where, after making all ne- cessary arrangements to scour the country, he should retire. In- formaticn, however, was given him, some days after, that the governour of Pensacola was favouring the Indians. On learn- ing this, General Jackson, with his forces, took up his march for the capital of that province, before which, after a march of twenty days, he appeared. This place was taken with scarce the show of resistance.--The governour had escaped to Baran- cas, a fort six miles distant, to which place the army soon marched. The fortress was invested on the 25th of May, and a demand being made for its surrender, and refused, an attack upon it was made, both by sea and land, and, after a hombard- ment and cannonading of the place, for two days, the garrison surrendered, as prisoners of war, and the officers of the govern- ment, civil and military, were transported, agreeably to the terms of capitulation, to Havana. A new government was established for the province, the powers of which were wested partly in military officers, and partly in citizens of the province. General Jackson now announced to the secretary that the Semi- uole war was closed, and returned to his residence at Nashville. Some time after, the American executive, deeming the longer possession of the Spanish forts unnecessary to the peace of the country, and inconsistent with good faith to Spain, directed them to be restored, and accompanied the restoration with the reasons which had led to their occupation. The measures adopted by General Jackson in the prosecu- tion of this war—particularly his appeal to the people of West Tennessee—his conduct in relation to the trial and execution of Arbuthnot and Ambrister—and his occupation of St. Marks and Pensacola—excited strong sensations in the bosoms of a ne. | Ja kSo ivourable to Gener isol e senate, but no vot Sur and no discussion of its merits 32 § 3. n between Great Britain and the Uni States, concluded at London. October 20th, 8, and ratified by the Prince Regent on th f November following, was ratified by the wn t of the United States. By the first article of this convention, the citizens of the Unit- ed States have liberty, in common with the subjects of Great Britain, to take fish on the southern, western, and northern coast of Newfoundland, &c. The second article establishes the north- ern boundaries of the United States from the Lake of the Woods, to the Stoney Mountains. By the fourth article, the commer cial convention between the two countries, concluded at Lon don, in 1815, is extended for the term of ten years longer, &c Section XII. On the 22d of February, follow ng, a treaty was concluded at Washington, by John Quincy Adams, and Luis de Onis, by which East and West Florida, with all the Isl- ands adjacent, &c. were ceded by Spain to the By this treaty the western boundary between the United States and Spain was settled. A sum not exceeding five mil- lions of dollars is to be paid by the United States out of the pro- !eeds of sales of lands in Florida, or in stock, or money, to citi. zens of the United States, on account of Spanish spoliations and injuries. To liquidate the claims, a board was to be constituted by the government of the United States, of American citizens, to consist of three commissioners, who should repo hº three years. . . * * * Such were the essential provisions of the above treaty, whic as ratified by the president and senate on the 24th. Under confidence that it would, within six months, the time stipu- ed by his Catholick Majesty. His majesty, how- ined the ratification, on the ground that the American lent had attempted to alter one of the princi ti ty by a declaration, which the minister of the in ordered to present, on the exchange. ated or protected an exp not be proper for the United States to carry the treaty "Would n 23:33 into effect on her part, in the same manner as if it had been sa- tified by Spain, claiming on their part all its advantage, and yielding to Spain those secured by her. A bill, authorizing the president to take possession of Florida, was introduced into the house, but the subject was postponed to the consideration of the next congress. In October, 1820, the king of Spain gave the treaty his signature. On the 19th of February following, 1821, the president, with the advice of the senate, finally ratifi- ed the treaty. Formal possession of the territory was given to General Jackson, as the commissioner of the United States, in the month of July following. $ 3. § Section XIII. On the 2d of March, 1819, the government of the ARKANSAs Territory was organized by act of congress. sº The earliest settlement, within the limits of the territory of Arkansas, was made by the Chevalier de Tonte, in 1685, at time Indian village of Arkansas, situated on the river of that name. Emigrants from Canada afterwards arrived, but the progress of settlement was slow. Upon the cession of Louisiana to the Unit- ed States, the ceded territory was divided into two parts, the territory of Orleans, lying south of latitude thirty degrees and the district of Louisiana, comprehending all the tract of coun- try between the Mississippi and the Pacifick Ocean. In March, 1805, the latter country was denominated the Territory of Lou- isiana. In 1812, this territory was constituted a territorial go- verument, by the name of the Territory of Missouri. In March, 1819, the inhabitants of the northern parts were formed into a distinct district, by the name of Missouri, and soon after the southern was formed into a territorial government by the name of Arkansas. In December, 1819, an election for a delegate to congress was held for the first time. > Section XIV. During the following summer, 1819, the president visited the southern section of the country, having in view the same great national interests, which had prompted him in his previous tour to the north. In this tour the president visited Charleston, Savanna Augusta; from this latter place he proceeded to through he Cherokee nation, and thence to Louisvi ington. whence he returned to the sea 376 PERIOD An...1817.1828. .. l ing, a resolution passed congress admitting ALABAMA into the union, on an equal footing with the original states. Alabama, though recently settled, appears to have been visit- ed by Ferdinand de Soto, in 1539. Some scattered settlements were made within the present state of Mississippi before the American revolution, but Alabama continued the hunting ground of savages, until a much later period. After the peace of 1783, Georgia laid claim to this territory, and exercised jurisdiction over it, until the beginning of the pre- sent century. In 1795, an act passed the legislature of Georgia, by which twenty-five millions of acres, of its western territory, were sold to companies for five hundred thousand dollars, and the purchase money was paid into their treasury. The purchas- ers of these lands soon after sold then at advanced prices. The sale of the territory excited a warm opposition in Georgia, and at a subsequent meeting of the legislature, the transaction was im- peached, on the ground of bribery, corruption, and unconstitu. tionality. The records respecting the sale were ordered to be urnt, and he five hundred thousand dollars to be refunded to the purchasers. Those who had acquired titles of the original purchasers instituted suits in the federal courts. % In 1802, however, Georgia ceded to the United States all her western territory, for one million, two hundred and fifty thousand dollars. On this event, the purchasers of the Yazoo land peti- tioned congress for redress and compensation. After consider- able opposition, an act passed for reimbursing them with funded stock, called the Mississippi stock. In 1800, the territory which now forms the states of Mississippi and Alabama, was erected into a territorial government. In 1817, Mississippi territory was divided and the western portion of it was authorized to form a state constitution. The eastern portion w is then formed into a territorial government and received the name of Alabama. In Fuly, 1819, a convention of delegates met at Huntsville, and adopt- ed a state constitution, which being approved by congress in De. cember following, the state was declared to be henceforth one of the United States. : ion XVI. In the ensuing year, March 3d une became an independant state, and # aber of the federal union. sparation of the District of Maine from Massachusetts, :tion into an independent state, had been fr w Monroe's ADMINISTRATI succeeding year, the question was submitted to the people of Maine, to be decided in town meetings, when it was found that a majority of freemen were against the measure. The subject was renewed in 1802, when a majority appeared averse to a separation. In 1819, an act passed the general court of Mas- sachusetts, for ascertaining the wishes of the people; in conform- ity to which, a vote was taken in all the towns. A large ma- jority were found in favour of a separation. A convention was called, and a constitution adopted, which being approved, Mas- sachusetts and Maine amicably separated, the latter taking her proper rank, as one of the United States. Section XVII. On the 3d of March, 1821, the 16th congress closed its second session. Few subjects of importance were discussed, and but little done for the advancement of publick inter- est, or the promotion of private prosperity. Acts were passed to admit Missouri into the uni- on conditionally; to reduce the military peace establishment to four regiments of artillery, and seven regiments of infantry, with their proper officers; and to carry into further execution the provisions of treaties with Spain and Great Bri- tain. - Section XVIII. On the 5th, Mr. Monroe, who had been re-elected to the presidency, took the usual oath of office. The re-election of Monroe was nearly unanimous. Mr. Tompkins was again elected vice-president. "Section XIX. August 10th, 1821, the presi- dent, by his proclamation, declared Missouri to be an independent state, and that it was admit- ted into the federal union. The first permanent settlements, in Missouri, appear to have been made at St. Genevieve and New-Bourbon, which were founded soon after the peace of 1663. In the succeeding year, St. Louis, the capital of the state, was commenced. In 1762, Louisiana, and Missouri of course, were secretly ceded by France ession of to Spain; but he latter did not attempt to take p issess the country until some years after. . . . . . . Missouri remained in possession of Spain, thro igh the war of --- 32°, - - - - *PERIOD XI.1817.1842. the revolution, until the cession of Louisiana to France, in 1801, by which latter power it was ceded to the United Sta e rº in I 803, 3% § * * * * . * Upon the cession of Louisiana to the United States, the dis. trict, which now forms the state of Louisiana, was separated from the territory, and made a distinct government, by the name of the territory of Orleans. In 1811, the territory of Orleans became a state, by the name of Louisiana. The remaining part of the original province of Louisiana, extending to the Pa- cifick, was erected into a territorial government, and called Mis- souri. In 1818-19, application was made to congress by the people of this territory, to form a state constitution. A bill was accordingly introduced, for the purpose, a provision, of which forbade slavery or involuntary servitude. The bill with this provision passed the house of representatives, but was rejected in the senate, and, in consequence of this disagreement, the mea- sure, for the time, failed. In the session of 1819-20, the bill was revived; and, after long and animated debates, a compro- mise was effected, by which slavery was to be tolerated in Mis- souri, and forbidden in all that part of Louisiana, as ceded by France, lying north of 36° 30′ north latitude, except so much as was included within the limits of the state. In the mean time the people of Missouri had formed a state constitution. When this constitution was presented to congress, in 1820-21, a pro- vision in it, which required the legislature to pass laws “to pre- vent free negroes and mullattoes from ceming to, and settling in the state,” was strenuously opposed, on the ground that it violat. ed the rights of such persons of that description, as were citizens of any of the United States. The contest occupied a great part of the session, and it was finally determined, by a small majority, that Missouri should be admitted, upon the fundamental condi. tion, that the contested clause should not be construed to autho- rize the passage of any laws, excluding citizens of other states from enjoying the privileges to which they are entitled, by the constitution of the United States. It was also provided, that if the legislature of Missouri should, by a solemn publick act, pre- viously to the 4th Monday of November, 1821, declare the as- sent of the state to this fundamental condition, the president should issue his proclamation, declaring the admission complete. the 24th of June, 1821, the legislature of Missouri assented fundamental condition; and, on the 10th of August fol. le president's proclamation was issued, declaring the § MINISTRATION. Section XX. The first session of the seven- teenth congress commenced on the 3d of De cember. The affairs of the nation were generally prosperous, and there seemed to be no obstacle in the way of wise and prudent measures. A spirit of jealously, however, obtruded itself upon their deliberations, by which some beneficial measures were defeated, and the business of the session was unnecessarily delayed and neglected. Several acts of importance, however, were pass- ed, concerning navigation and commerce ;- relieving still further the indigent veterans of the revolution;–and fixing the ratio, between popu- lation and representation, at one representative for every forty thousand inhabitants. The constitution has not limited the number, but has only provided that no more than one shall be sent for thirty thousand inhabitants. Publick opinion seems generally to have decided that a numerous representation is an evil, by which not only the business of the nation is neglected, in the conflicts of individual opinions, but the people are subjected to an unnecessary ex- pense. The congress that signed the Declaration of Indepen- dence consisted but of fifty-six members; and no diliberative assembly excelled them, in industry and publick virtue. The congress that formed the confederation consisted of forty-eight; that which formed the constitution consisted of only thirty-nine, and the first congress under that constitution, of but sixty-five. After the first census, the appointment being one for every thirty-three thousand inhabitants, the house con- sisted of one hundred and five representatives. The same ap- portionment being continued under the second census, there were one hundred and forty-one representatives—The appor- tionment, under the third census, allowed one for thirty-five thousand; and the house consisted of one hundred and eighty- seven members. The ratio fixed upon, by the present congr is one for forty thousand; and the number of representati 380 PERIOD XI.1817.1822, gion of country, discovered by Cabot, in 1497. The first visit- ant to the actual territory of Florida was Ponce de Leon, who landed on Easter day, 1512. Navigators, from several coun- tries, visited it, and various European sovereigns attempted toº appropriate the country to themselves. Spain, however, held possession of it until 1763, when it was ceded to Great Britain. In May, 1781, Don Galvez captured Pensacola, and, soon afterwards, completed the conquest of the whole of West Florida, which remained in possession of Spain, until 1783, when Great Britain relinquished both provinces of Florida to Spain. ź. By the treaty of France, in 1803, which ceded Louisiana to the United States, it was declared to be ceded, with the same, extent that it had in the hands of Spain, when ceded to France. By virtue of this declaration, the United States claimed the country west of the Perdido river, and, in 1811, took possession of it, except the town and fort of Mobile, which were surrender- ed the following year. In 1814, a British expedition having been fitted out against the United States, from Pensacola, Gene. ral Jackson took possession of the town; but, having no au- thority to hold it, returned to Mobile. The Seminole Indians, with whom the United States were at war, residing partly within the limits of Florida, and making their incursions thence with- out restraint from the Spaniards, it became necessary to cross the territorial line, to chastise them. Subsequently, General Jackson took possession of Fort St. Marks and Pensacola, which the American troops held till November, 1818, when they were restored to Spain. In 1819, a transfer of the whole province was made, by treaty, to the United States, and, after many vexatious delays, the treaty was ratified, by Spain, in October 1820, and, finally, by the United States, in the month of February, 1821. Possession was delivered to General Jack- son, as commissioner of the United States, in July, 1821. Section XXII. The second session of the seventeenth congress commenced at Washing- ton, on the 2d of December. In his message, at the opening of the session, the president in- fo ‘med congress that, in J une, a convention of navigation and commerce, resting essentially on wo countries, had been concluded between hich had been imposed on the commerce, Monroe's ADMINISTRATION. 881 between the United States and the British colo- nies, in the West Indies and on this continent, had been removed, and that the ports of those colonies had been opened to the vessels of the United States, by an act of the British parlia- In a second message, a few days subsequent- ly, the president introduced to the notice of con- gress the interesting subject of the “multiplied outrages and depredations, recently committed % N. # * * on our seamen and commerce, by Pirates, in the West Indies and Gulf of Mexico,” and recom- mended the immediate organization of an effi- cient force to suppress them. A bill was ac- cordingly introduced, authorizing the president to provide such a force, and to despatch it im- mediately to the protection of our persecuted Seti III e Il. The preside had mentioned the subject of piracy, in his first message; out he was prompted early after to make it the subject of a special communication, in consequence of intelli- gence that captain Allen, of the Alligator, a brave and merito- rious officer, had fallen in the neighbourhood of Matanzas, by the hands of these ruthless barbarians, while attempting, in dis- charge of his duty, to rescue an unprotected merchant ship, which had fallen into their power. Immediately after the passage of the above bill, Commodore Porter was appointed to this service, a soon after, hoisting his broad pendant on board the Pea- cock, stretched his way, with a respectable force, to chastise these miscreants, that regard no law, and that feel no mercy. Section XXIII. The second session of the seventeenth Congress closed on the 3d of March, 1823. Little business of national import ansacted. th. Congress com his message, at the opening of President spoke in animated irst session. In 382 PERIod xi.1817.1822. terms of the prosperous condition of the and of the amicable state of our relations with foreign countries. . The message represented the public finances to be even more prosperous than had been anticipated; that the state of the army, in its organization and discipline, had been grad- ually improving for several years, and had attained a high degree of perfection; that the proposed fortifications of the country were rapidly progressing to a state of completion, and that the military academy at West Point had already at- tained a high degree of perfection, both in its discipline and instruction. In relation to the efforts of the executive to stop the depredations of pirates on the national commerce, the President stated, that, in the West Indies, and the Gulf of Mexico, the naval force had been augmented, according to the provisions of Congress. “This armament,” said he, “has been eminently successful in the accomplishment of its object. The piracies, by which our commerce in the neigh- bourhood of the island of Cuba had been afflicted, have Jeen repressed, and the confidence of the merchants in a great measure restored.” 3. 3: 3 In the present struggle of the Greeks for liberty, the Americans have felt a lively interest. In allusion to this interesting subject, the message contained the following lan- guage—language to which every American would cordially subscribe:–“A strong hope has been long entertained, found- ed on the heroic struggle of the Greeks, that they would succeed in their contest, and resume their equal station among the nations of the earth. It is believed that the whole civilized world takes a deep interest in their welfare. Al- though no power has declared in their favour, yet none, according to our information, has taken part against them. Their cause and their name have protected them from dan- gers, which might, ere this, have overwhelmed any other ji. The ordinary calculations of interest, and of acqui- sition, with a view to aggrandizement, which mingle so much in the transactions of nations, seem to have had no effect in regard to them. From the facts which have come to our knowledge, there is good cause to believe that their enemy t, forever, all dominion over them—that Greece will become an independent nation. T º, is the object of our most ardent evious session of Congress, the That she may obtain resident had communicated the important fact, in relation to Spain and Portugal, that a great effort was making in those countr mprove the condition of the people, and that it appeared to econducted with unusual moderation. The result, how- be ever, was widely different from what had been anticipated. Instead of an emancipation from their oppressions, their bondage, through the interference of foreign powers, had become doubly severe, and strong indications were perceived of an intention, on the part of the “Holy Alliance,” to ex- tend their “political system” to Mexico and South Amer- ica.-But on this topick the executive observed, “the citizens of the United States cherish sentiments the most friendly in favour of the liberty and happiness of their fellow men on that side of the Atlantic. In the wars of the European pow- ers, in matters relating to themselves, we have never taken any part, nor does it comport with our policy so to do. It is only when our rights are invaded, or seriously menaced, that we resent injuries, or make preparation for our defence.— With the movements in this hemisphere, we are, of necessi- ty, more immediately connected, and by causes which must be obvious to all enlightened and impartial observers. The political system of the allied powers is essentially different, in this respect, from that of America. This difference pro- ceeds from that which exists in their respective governments. And to the defence of our own, which has been achieved by the loss of so much blood and treasure, and matured by the wisdom of their most enlightened citizens, and under which we have enjoyed unexampled felicity, this whole nation is devoted. We owe it, therefore, to candour, and to the ami cable relations existing between the United States and thos. powers, to declare, that we should consider any attempt, on their part, to extend their system to any portion of this hem- isphere, as dangerous to our peace and safety. With existing colonies or dependencies of any European power, we have not interfered, and shall not interfere. But with the gov- ernments who have declared their independence and main- tained it, and whose independence"we have, on great con- sideration and on just principles, acknowledged, w not view any interposition for the purpose of oppressi g, in any other manner, their destin) n any other light than as the mº PERIOD XI.1817.1832. hereº, and shall continue to adhere, pro- to this we have adherez, and shall co vided no fe shall occur, which, in the judgme •ompetent authority of this government, shall make a cor ing change on the part of the United States indispensa ble to their security. . “The late events in Spain and Portugal shew that Europe is still unsettled. Of this important fact no stronger proof can be adduced than that the allied powers should have thought it proper, on any principles satisfactory to themselves, to have interposed, by force, in the internal concerns of Spain. To what extent such ºnterposition may be carried, on the same principle, is a question in which all independent powers, whose governments differ from theirs, are interested; even those most remote, and surely none more so than the United States. Our policy, in regard to Europe, which was adopted at an early stage of the wars which have so long agitated that quarter of the globe, nevertheless, remains the same; which is, not to interfere in the internal concerns of any of its powers; to consider the government de facto as the le- gitimate government for us; to cultivate friendly relations with it, and to preserve those relations by a frank, firm, and manly policy, meeting in all instances the just claims of every power, submitting to injuries from none. But, in regard to these continents, circumstances are eminently and conspicu- ously different. It is impossible that the allied powers should extend their political system to any portion of either conti- ment without endangering our peace and happiness; nor can any one believe that our southern brethren, if left to them- selves, would adopt it of their own accord. It is equally im- possible, therefore, that we should behold such interposition, in any form, with indifference. If we look to the compara- tive strength and resources of Spain and those new govern- ments, and their distance from each other, it must be obvious that she can never subdue them. It is still the true policy of the United States to leave the parties to themselves, in the at other powers will pursue the same course.” . This language, so just, so patriotic, so independent, it needs be added, received the approbation of the :an people, and called forth the warmest eulogi s of rational liberty in E †. hus far, ss those MONRoe's, ADMINISTRATION. 385 On the present state of the country, the President held the following strong and eloquent language: “If we compare the present condition of our union with its actual state at the close of our revolution, the history of the world furnishes no example of a progress in improvement, in all the important circumstances which constitute the happiness of a nation, which bears any resemblance to it. At the first epoch, our population did not exceed three millions. By the last census, it amounted to about ten millions, and, what is more extra- ordinary, it is almost altogether native; for the emigration from other countries has been inconsiderable. At the first epoch, half the territory within our acknowledged limits was uninhabited and a wilderness. Since then new territory has been acquired, of vast extent, comprising within it many riv ers, particularly the Mississippi, the navigation of which to the ocean was of the highest importance to the original states. Over this territory our population has expanded in every di- rection, and new states have been established, almost equal, in number, to those which formed the first bond of our union. This expansion of our population and accession of new states to our union, have had the happiest effect on all its higher interests. That it has eminently augmented our resources, and added to our strength and respectability, as a power, is admitted by all. But it is not in these important circumstan- ces only, that this happy effect is felt. It is manifest, that, by enlarging the basis of our system, and increasing the number of states, the system itself has been greatly strengthened in both its branches. Consolidation and disunion have there- by been rendered equally impracticable. Each government, confiding in its own strength, has less to apprehend from the other; and, in consequence, each enjoying a greater freedom of action, is rendered more efficient for all the purposes for which it was instituted.” Section XXV. In his message to Congress, at the opening of the session, the President, having uded ggle of the Greeks for li dº hav SS ad, as the organ of public, ass PERIOD XI.1817.1825. or Commissioner to Greece, whenever the Pres- ident should deem such appointment expedient. Although Congress did not deem it expedient to adopt the resolution, it being indefinitely post- poned, it served to call forth the warmest expres- sions of regard, on the floor of Congress, for that oppressed people, and to elicit the attachment of the country to the principles of rational liberty. “In offering the resolution, Mr. Webster stated, it was far from being his wish, in any manner, to commit the House, in this or any of the political contests of Europe; but the Pres- ident of the United States having, in his message to Congress, not only expressed a belief that the Greek nation, in its present struggle with its opposers, had the good wishes of the whole civilized world, but also advanced the opinion that the Turk- ish dominion over that country was lost forever; he thought that, if such were the fact, it was important that Congress should act upon the subject. The main object in view was to obtain from this House an expression responsive to the sentiment of the message, in reference to the sacrifices and sufferings of that heroic people—sacrifices and sufferings, which ought to excite the sympathy of every liberal minded man in Europe as well as in this country. But, whatever might be the case with other nations, we certainly ought not to be restrained from expressing, with freedom, what are our views in relation to the Greek cause, so far as may be done without committing ourselves in the contest. And he really did hope that we should shew to the world, that there is, at least, one government which does entertain a proper view of that barbarous despotism, which, under the eyes of Europe, has been permit.ed, by a system of the foulest atrocity, to attempt to crush an interesting christian nation. “In most of our large towns and Literary Institutions, meetings were held in reference to this subject, and resolutions adopted, expressive of sentiments alike honourable to our cit- izens as members of a free community, and as friends of humanity. They spoke a language worthy of the cause which called them forth, and such as the circumstances of the age require. They are a proof, too, of the existence and the N. iple in the American people, which re- --- - - - ---------...----- "... that principle in .” . moves them farther from the supporters of legitimacy than § MONROE's ADMINISTRATION. 387 the breadth of the Atlantic, and is a safer bulwark than its billows.” . - . . . . . :------- To this it may be added that, at a subsequent period, large contributions were made throughout the country, and forward- ed to the constituted authorities of Greece, to aid them in achieving the liberties of that interesting people. . Section XXVI. On the 27th of May, 1824, the eighteenth Congress closed its first session. Among the most important bills which were pass- ed was one for abolishing imprisonment for debt; and a second establishing a tariff of duties on imports into the country. Each of these bills caused much debate in the national legislature, and excited no small solicitude among those clas- ses of citizens, whose interests were likely to be most affect- ed by them. The bill for abolishing imprisonment for debt was necessarily qualified and guarded, giving no immunity to fraud, and containing the requisite checks to shield its benefits from abuse. The bill for a revision of the Tariff occupied the House of Representatives for ten weeks, and was at length passed only by a majority of five. On the oc- casion of its final decision, only two members, out of two hundred and thirteen, were absent. Section XXVII. In the course of the summer an event occurred, which caused the highest sensations of joy throughout the union; this was the arrival of the Marquis de La Fayette, the friend and ally of the Americans during the former war with Great Britain, and who em. inently contributed, by his fortune, influence, skill, and bravery, to achieve the glorious objects of their revolutionary struggle. X. : Sometime previously to his arrival, the Marquis had expres- sed his intention of again visiting the United States—This being known, Jan. 7th, 1824, Congress authorized the Pres- ident “to offer him a public ship for his accommodation, and to assure him, in the name of the people of this grea blic, that they cherished for him a grateful and affe 388 PERIOD xi.1817.1825. Massachusetts authorized the governor of that Commonwealth to make such arrangements for the honourable reception of the Marquis as comported with the dignity of the State. In other parts of the country, early measures were adopted to receive with honour the man who had acted so disinterested a part towards the United States, and whose life had been devoted to the cause of rational liberty. - The delicacy of the Marquis prevented his accepting the invitation of Government to take passage in a public ship; but he soon after embarked on board a private vessel. The time of his embarkation being known, the prayers of millions were offered for his safety from the dangers of the ocean. At length intelligence of his arrival was announced, and was received by every proper demonstration of joy. He landed at New York, on the 16th of August, accompa- nied by his son and M. L. Vasseur, his secretary, and was welcomed by thousands to the land where, more than forty years before, he had displayed a disinterestedness, a benevo- lence, a heroism, nearly unparalleled in the annals of time. “From New York, La Fayette passed through the country to Boston, constantly receiving the most enthusiastic congrat- ulations of the people. Not only at every place where he stopped, but as he passed along the road, thousands came to catch a glimpse of him, and bid “Welcome, La Fayette.” Having visited most of the principal towns in Massachusetts, New Hampshire, Rhode Island, and Connecticut, he return- ed again to New York. During this tour, it is impossible to convey in general terms an adequate idea of the excitement into which the country was thrown. Committees were con- stantly arriving from distant towns at the places where he stopped, to solicit the honour of receiving him, and to know on what day and at what hour his arrival might be expected. In some instances, gentlemen, residing at a distance from his route, directed the news of his approach to be sent them by expresses. Meantime the General was so obliging as to allow himself to be transported with the utmost rapidity from place to place, often travelling most of the night, so as not to disap- W. the anxious expectations of the people. From New York the General went to Philadelphia, Baltimore, Wash- ington, &c., constantly receiving from the people the same ial wel some, and witnessing the same demonstrations of wherever he went. . t the feelings of the nation demanded that º: ºne for general La Fayette than could t means of depriving him. of a or : 2. ; l &: §§ ort On ne. When, during our revolution, the country fortune. When, - ~ * ... -- hausted as to be unable to clothe or feed her little arm. exh Fayette Lot only gave all his pay to government, but a ced money which never was refunded; so that, in addition to the debt of gratitude, the nation owed him for advancements made during her neeessities. It was the exercise of the same leading principle, (the love of liberty,) which occasioned the confiscation of his estates in France, when the jacobin faction controlled the kingdom. ºr s Under every consideration, the nation was bound to shew LaFayette, and the world, that, in the prosperity of his adop- ted country, his former services were remembered with too much gratitude to be passed over without some permanent mark of national beneficence. ſº The President of the United States, therefore, in his mes- sage to Congress, at the opening of the last session, recom mended, in appropriate terms, the consideration of General La Fayette's eminent services to the country, and requested that the legislative body of the nation would devise some means of making him at least a partial remuneration.— Agreeably to this recommendation, Congress appointed a committee to deliberate on the subject, and, on . 20th of December, “Mr. Hayne, from the committee appointed on so much of the President's message as relates to making pro- vision for the services of General La Fayette, reported the following bill:— º “Be it enacted by the Senate and Ho of the United States in Congress assembled, That the sum use of Representatives two hundred thousand dollars be, and the same is granted to Major General La Fayette, in compens. Š his important services and expenditures during the American Revolution; and that for this purpose a stock to that amount be issued in his favour, dated the 4th of July, 1824, bearing an annual interest of six per cent., payable quarter yearly, and redeemable on the 31st of December, 1834. ºt . 2. And be it further enacted, that one éor º ! the same is hereby granted 390. PERIOD XI.1817.1825. On the 21st this bill was made the order of the day in the Senate, and the following debate on it, extracted from the journals of Congress, will tend to shew with how much rea- son the bill was passed: . * . . . . . . . . . * ...:” Senate, Tuesday, December 21. . “The Senate proceeded, as in committee of the whole, to the consideration of the bill making provision for the ser- vices and expenditures of General La Fayette. . Mr. Hayne, (of S. C.) in reply to Messrs. Macon and Brown, who objected to the bill, remarked, that the obser- vations made by the honourable gentlemen rendered it his duty, though it was done with regret, as he had hoped the bill would pass without opposition, as chairman of the com- mittee, to submit the principles on which the committee had proceeded in presenting the present bill. He trusted that he should be able to satisfy the scruples of the Hon. gentle- men, and that there would be no necessity of recommitting the bill. § gº . With regard to the objections made by his friend on his right, (Mr. Macon,) they affected the making any compen- sation, under any circumstances whatever, to individuals, either for services rendered, or sacrifices made. He under- stood he had said, it was immaterial whether an individual should have spent his substance in the service of his coun- try—should have put his hand in his purse and paid the ex- penses of the war, still that for such services no compensa- tion could be made. . He could show that this was the fact—that it was precise- ly the case with regard to General La Fayette. He had expended his fortune in our service, and he should contend it was right, it was necessary—they were called on, by duty themselves, at least to refund the expenses to which he had been subjected. Mr. Hayne proceeded to say, that he held documents in his hand which it became his duty to submit to the Senate—documents derived from the highest authority. The paper he held in his hand contained ac- counts from the proper officers, shewing the expenses of La Fayette, and pointing out the manner in which his estate had been dissipated in the service of liberty. In the year 1777, he had an annual income of 146,000 francs, equal to 28,700 dollars. This had been almost entirely expended in the services which he had rendered to liberty, in this and the other hemisphere. During a period of six years, from Monroe's ADMINISTRATION. 391. the year 1777 to 1783, he had expended, in the American service, 700,000 francs, equal to 140,000 dollars. This doc- ument, said Mr. Hayne, is derived from the most authentic sources in France, and has come into my hands from a respectable member of this House, without the knowledge or consent of the General and his friends. . % The fact to which he called their attention was, that, dur- ing the six years the General had been engaged in the ser- vice, he had expended 140,000 dollars of his fortune; he was in a state of prosperity, and in the enjoyment of a plen- tiful fortune in his own country, when he resolved to come to this. He purchased a ship, raised, equipped, armed and clothed a regiment at his own expense, and, when he landed on these coasts, he came freighted with the munitions of war, which he distributed gratuitously to our army. It is on record that he clothed and put shoes on the feet of the naked, suffering soldiers of America, and that, during six years, he sacrificed 140,000 dollars. He asked for no com- | "...". made out no account—he received no pay— e spent his fortune for this country, and not only gave his services, but hazarded his life in its defence, shed his blood in its service, and returned home broken in his fortune. What did Government do After the war, in 1794, they gave him the full pay of a Major General, to which he was entitled twelve or fourteen years before. If any American citizen had done as much, and had brought in an account stating he had expended 140,000 dollars, and made applica- tion for compensation, would it not have been granted 2. Indeed, if we were to make out an account current of the expenses and sacrifices of the General, it would far exceed the sum now proposed. . But he never rendered a claim: he would have starved ere he would have done it. I have other documents, said Mr. Hayne, to which I shall briefly refer. There is one fact which shews how alive he was to every honourable sentiment. He has made sacrifices that can never be repaid. Congress, in their gratitude, made him a donation of 11,000 acres of land, which, at the value of lands at this time, was not worth more than 11,000 dol- lars; and by an act in 1804, they authorized him to locate this land on any spot in the United States, that might be va- cant: and his agent accordingly located it in the neighbour- hood of New Orleans. In 1807, Congress passed an act, confirming the title to the city council of New Orleans of all lands within six hundred yards of its limits. Part of the land belonging to General La Fayette was in- cluded in this grant, and on the fact being communicated him in France by his agent, accompanied by legal advice of the validity of his title, he replied, that it was not for him to inquire into the circumstances, but that he, receiving bounty from the government of the United States, could only receive it as they chose to give it; and directed his agent to enter a relinquishment of the land in question. This land, accord- ing to the estimate of gentlemen from Louisiana, is now worth 500,000 dollars. But there is another circumstance to be stated: having located the land, he made a contract with an Irish Baronet for the sale of a portion of it, and he afterwards made it his business to find him out—he relinquished his own right, and, at his own expense, induced him to relinquish every legal claim that he could have upon the United States. This relinquishment was on file in the land office, and Mr. Hayne submitted the documents to the examination of the These claims appear certainly in a very strong, and he might say, irresistible-shape before the Senate. His honour- able friend, on the right, had said that we treat this gentle- man better than we do our native sons; but it appeared that they barely did him justice. Did the gentleman doubt that this government were in the habit of making remuneration for sacrifices and services—he would refer to an act passed in 1790, granting compensation to Frederick William Baron Steuben, for sacrifices and services. . z. Mr. Hayne proceeded to refer to many instances where he government had not only granted pecuniary assistance, but had granted a whole township of land for sacrifices and services. He was not one of those who were afraid of mak- ing precedents—a good precedent can never do evil; and when nations, as well as individuals, gave way to the no- blest feelings of our nature, they best promoted the glory of the country and the welfare of the people; but the case of La Fayette could form no precedent—it stood alone, Could this country be born again—could it assume a second childhood, and be placed in circumstances similar to those in ch it had formerly been 2 If this were possible, if it could again to equal distress, be struggling for existence, t to perish, without funds, arms, clothing, or ammuni- , and looking around for help-if, under such circum- stances, a foreign nobleman should step forth and devote his life and fortune to her service, sacrificing every thing, and shedding his blood in her behalf, and, while the scale was depressed, throwing himself into the balance, and deciding its fate—surely, such a man would be entitled to the warm- est gratitude of the country.” After some further debate, the bill was passed, and a com- mittee appointed to wait on La Fayette with a copy of the act. To an address to the committee on the occasion of pre- senting the act, the Marquis returned the following answer Gentlemen of the Committee of both Houses of Congress: The immense and unexpected gift, which, in addition to former and considerable bounties, it has pleased Congress to confer upon me, calls for the warmest acknowledgments of an old American Soldier, an adopted son of the United. States, two titles dearer to my heart than all the treasures in the world. . However proud I am of every sort of obligation received from the people of the United States, and their Representa- tives in Congress, the large extent of this benefaction might have created in my mind feelings of hesitation, not inconsist- ent, I hope, with those of the most grateful reverence. But the so very kind resolutions of both Houses, delivered * you, gentlemen, in terms of equal kindness, preclude all other sentiments except those of the lively and profound gratitude of which, in respectfully accepting the munificent favour, I have the honour to beg you will be the organs. , Permit me also, gentlemen, to join a tender of my affec- tionate personal thanks to the expression of the highest re- spect, with which I have the honour to be your obedient servant, . . LA FAYETTE. The visit of Fayette to the United States occupied about a year; during which he visited each of the 24 states, and was every where hailed as a father. When the time arrived which he had fixed as the termination of his visit, it was thought most fitting that his departure from the country should take place from the capital. A frigate was prep at that place, and named, in compliment to him, the wine, to transport him to his native country. T weeks spent upon the invitation of the President, of the nation, in the national palace, were appr 394 PERIOD XI.1817.1825. to taking leave of those venerable men who had shared with him both in establishing the independence of the country and in receiving all the appropriate honours which the peo- ple could bestow. He had previously visited and taken leave of the venerable Adams; he now, in succession, took leave of the other Ex-Presidents; the illustrious author of the declaration of independence; the able supporter and advo- cate of the federal constitution ; and the soldier of the revo- lution who had shed his blood in the same cause with La Fayette. - These preliminary visits being paid, he now prepared for his departure. The 7th of September, which was the day appointed for that purpose, the civil authorities of the district of Columbia assembled at the President’s house to take leave of him. About noon he entered the great hall, where he was addressed, by the President, in terms manly, patriotic, and affectionate. In a similar manner Fayette replied, concluding as follows: “God bless you, sir, and all who surround us. God bless the American people, each of their states, and the federal government. Accept this patriotic farewell of an overflowing heart; such will be its last throb when it ceases to beat.” - Then, taking an affectionate leave of each individual pres- ent, the general left the hospitable mansion of the President. He was attended to the vessel by the whole population of the district. All business was suspended, and the vast multitude, which lined the shores, witnessed his embarkation with a deep silence, highly indicative of the feelings that the Ame- rican people cherished towards La Fayette. In passing Mount Vernon, he landed to pay a farewell visit to the tomb of Washington, whence, re-embarking, a prosperous voyage soon safely landed him on his own paternal soil.” º, Section XXVIII. The second session of the eighteenth Congress began on the 6th of Decem- ber, 1824; on which occasion, the President represented the country to be highly prosperous and happy, both in respect to its internal condi- tion and foreign relations. * sº Annual Register. MONROE'S ADMINISTRATION. 395 “Our relations,” said he, “with foreign powers are of a friendly character, although certain interesting differences remain unsettled. Our revenue, under the mild system of impost and tonnage, continues to be adequate to all the pur- poses of government. Our agriculture, commerce, manu- factures and navigation flourish. Our fortifications are ad- vancing, in the degree authorized by existing appropria- tions, to maturity, and due progress is made in the augment- ation of the navy to the limit prescribed by law.” The President also stated that the convention of naviga- tion and commerce concluded between the United States and France in 1822 still continued;—that our commercial intercourse with the British dominions in Europe and the East Indies, resting on the basis of reciprocity, which had been arranged by a convention in 1815, was confirmed and continued for ten years, by treaty in 1818; but that the trade with the British colonies in the West Indies had not as yet been settled to the satisfaction of the executive ;-that our commerce with Sweden had been placed on a footing of per- fect reciprocity, by treaty, and with Russia, the Nether- lands, Prussia, and the free Hanseatic cities, the dukedom of Oldenburg and Sardinia, by internal regulations on each side, founded on mutual agreement between the respective gov- ernments; and that the great and extraordinary changes which had happened in Spain and Portugal, within the last two years, had not seriously affected the friendly relations subsisting between them and the United States; although they had presented obstacles to the adjustment of the particu- lar subjects of discussion which have arisen with each. With the remaining powers of Europe, with those on the coast of Barbary, and with all the new South American States, ours relations were moreover stated to be of a friendly character. The country has ministers plenipotentiary residing with the republics of Colombia and Chili, and have received ministers of the same rank from Colombia, Guatimala, Buenos Ayres and Mexico, and a charge d'affaires from the independent government of Brazil. . . . . . *:::::... ? In relation to the state of the maritime force of the try, the message represented the squadron in the Met ranean to have been maintained, and to have afforded cor the necessary protection in that sea; that force in the Gulf of Mexico, and the neighbouring for the suppression of piracy, had also been continued; bu that such were the atrocities of the pirates in that quarter, i PERIOD X I....1817....1825. was important to increase, rather than to diminish, our force. On the Pacific our commerce has much increased, and on that coast, as well as on that sea, the United States have many important stations, which require attention and pro- tection. º - - “From the view above presented,” the President contin- ued, “it is manifest that the situation of the United States is, in the highest degree, prosperous and happy. There is no object which, as a people, we can desire, which we do not possess, or which is not within our reach. Blessed with governments the happiest which the world ever knew, with no distinct orders in society, or divided interests in any por- tion of the vast territory over which their dominion extends, we have every motive to cling together, which can animate a virtuous and enlightened people. The great object is to preserve these blessings, and to hand them down to our latest posterity. Our experience ought to satisfy us that our pro- gress, under the most correct and provident policy, will not be exempt from danger. Our institutions form an important epoch in the history of the civilized world. On their preser- vation, and in their utmost purity, every thing will depend. - Extending as our interests do to every part of the inhabited globe, and to every sea, to which our citizens are carried by their industry and enterprise, to which they are invited by the wants of others, and have a right to go, we must either “protect them in the enjoyment of their rights, or abandon them, in certain events, to waste and desolation. Our atti- tude is highly interesting, as relates to other powers, and particularly to our southern neighbours. We have duties to perform, with respect to all, to which we must be faithful. To every kind of danger we should pay the most vigilant and unceasing attention; remove the cause where it may be practicable, and be prepared to meet it when inevitable.” Section XXIX. The second session of the eighteenth Congress closed on the 3d of March, 1825, being limited by the constitution to that period.—Among the most interesting subjects which occupied its attention during the session, were the occupation Oregon on the Nort est coast, and the suppression of Piracy. The respecting the former, however, was lost in while that resp. cting Piracy passed; which, how ever, does little more than to authorize t ing of ten additional ships of war. The bill authorizing the occupation of the Oregon was assed by the House of Representatives, but had previously een so amended as to provide only for a military occupation of the mouth of the river. This amendment was adopted, for the purpose of avoiding a violation of the treaty with Great Britain, which provides that the boundary line on that * § frontier shall remain unsettled ten years. . . . On the subject of Piracy, the President, in a message to the Senate, suggested three expedients; one, by the pursuit of the offenders to the settled, as well as unsettled, parts of the island from whence they issue; another, by reprisal on the inhabitants; and a third by a blockade of the ports of those islands. These suggestions gave rise to a bill in the Senate, which embraced the several expedients proposed in the message, and which, for some weeks, was a prominent .*.*.*.*.*.*.*.*. introduces a lºw principle into the rights of nations, and that a resort to the measure proposed by it would be in effect a declaration of war with Spain. This objection was an- ticipated by the President, and obviated by him, on the ground that the Spanish authorities are utterly incapable of suppressing the practice in question. The discussion of the subject has led to a disclosure of facts, which, in respect to its atrocities and the numbers concerned in it, exceed even conjecture, and which have forced conviction upon all, that something, and something efficient, must speedily be done. Section XXX. The administration of Mr Monroe closed on the 3d of March. During his presidency the country has enjoyed a uniform nour and happiness of millions, and has sº . § § sº º 398 PERIOD xi.1817.1825. º appreciate the blessings of having a wise ruler. - … § . Section XXXI. The electors of a successor to Mr. Monroe having failed to make a choice, the election devolved on the House of Representa- tives. On the 9th of February, 1825, that body proceeded to the discharge of this duty, when John Quincy Adams, of Massachusetts, was elected, President of the United States, for the four years from and after the 4th of the ensuing March. John C. Calhoun, of South Carolina, had been chosen Vice-President, by the electoral colleges. The subject of a successor to Mr. Monroe was very early after his entering upon his second term of office introduced to the notice of the public, since which time until the late determination of the question on the floor of Congress, the ...” and public journals of the country have been dis- gracefully loud and clamorous. Besides Mr. Adams, Mr. Crawford, Secretary of the Treasury, Mr. Clay, Speaker of the House of Representatives, and Gen. Jackson, a Senator, were candidates for the office; each of whom had their re- spective friends in the country, and among the Legislatures of the States, nearly all of which by a public vote declared in favour of some one of the candidates. On counting the votes of the electors, it appeared that 84 were in favour of Mr. Adams, 99 for Gen. Jackson, 41 for Mr. Crawford, and 37 for Mr. Clay. Notwithstanding Gen. Jackson had the greatest number of votes from the electoral colleges, the House of Representatives, voting by States, elected Mr. Ad- ams. The result of the balloting was, for Mr. Adams, 13 States; for Mr. Jackson, 7 States; for Mr. Crawford, 4 States. By the constitution only the three highest on the list could be candidates for the office in the House of Representatives. Mr. Clay therefore was not voted for; but is supposed by his influence to have determined the question in favour of Mr. Adams, in opposition to Mr. Crawford, who had been nom- inated by a caucus at Washington; and to Gen. Jackson, who had received the highest vote by the elector. MONROE's ADMINISTRATION. 399 ºwottº. Section XXXII. ſtatuters. Two centu- ries have elapsed since the first settlements were commenced in the United States by Europeans, yet the people have not acquired that uniform character, which belongs to ancient nations, upon whom time and the stability of institutions have imprinted a particular and individual char- acter. Although partial changes have occurred, which have been noticed in the progress of this work, yet, so far down as the present time, the essential variations, which have taken place, are few. The general physiognomy is nearly as va- ried as the origin of the population is different. A marked distinction undoubtedly exists between the inhab- itants of the commercial and maritime towns and the villages of the country. The former, in a more considerable degree, as to luxury and vice, resemble the great towns of Europe. Those of the country, who lead an agricultural life, preserve much of the simplicity, with something of the roughness, of former days; but they enjoy all that happiness which proceeds from the ex- ercise of the social virtues in their primitive purity. Their af- fections are constant; felicity crowns the conjugal union; pa- rental authority is sacred; infidelity on the part of the wife is almost unknown; crime is rare, mendicity and theft uncommon. . The people generally are enterprising, industrious, persever- ing, and submissive to government. They are also intelligent, brave, active, and benevolent, and possess a strength and agil- ity of body, which are seldom united in so great a degree. With somewhat of the appearance of apathy, and under a sober exterior, strong feelings, and a capacity for the most lively sallies, are concealed. As the benefits of education are extensively diffused, the ingenuity and intelligence of the people have been displayed to advantage, if not in the higher walks of literature, yet in the useful branches of knowledge, and in the arts which multiply the comforts of life. Frºm the perfect freedom and equality which are possessed, and theinterest takeninpolitical discussions, a tend : solu in our manners is undoubtedly to be perceived; 400 PERIOD XI.1817.1835. but the barrier created by education will, it is hoped, keep in check the unwelcome tide. In the amusements of the people, there are evidently some changes for the better, indicating more correct ideas both of humanity and taste. Upon the whole, the manners of the people of the United States, especially among the more cultivated classes, are, probably, a medium, between an honest bluntness, on the one hand, and a sickly delicacy, on the other, or between a low and the highest degree of refinement. The latter, indeed, is not to be expected in a country where there is no court, and no hereditary nobility, whose leisure and incli- nation might lead them to substitute the affected and burdensome politeness of courtiers, for the present manly ease of freemen. Section XXXIII. it cligiott. The principal religious denominations, at present, in the Unit- ed States, are Presbyterians, and Congregation- alists, Baptists, Friends, Episcopalians, and Methodists. The two first of these, unitedly, have more than twenty-five hundred congrega- tions; the number of Baptist congregations ex- ceeds two thousand; the Friends have five hun- dred, and the Episcopalians about three hun- dred. The Methodists also are numerous. For the effectual employment of those who wish to be en gaged in the christian ministry and in missions, peculiar facili- ties have been devised; and the plans of benevolence, mention- ed under the last period, have been continued and greatly aug- mented. The American Board of Commissioners for foreign Missions, the American Bible Society, the American Education Society, together with a Society for the colonization of free blacks in Africa, have risen in respectability and resources. Missionaries in considerable numbers are sent, not only into vacant and desti- tute parts of our own country, to the South and West, and among the Indians; but also to Southern Asia, to Palestine, and to the Islands of the Pacifick Ocean, % It is not to be disguised that much irreligion and vice, and some opposition to the above named objects prevails, and that a spirit of infidelity exists, though in a form more concealed than formerly, and under more decent names. Nor does it be- co § at in a time of so much religious action and §§ h attention is occupied, there is danger erficial acquaintance with the doctrines of the Bible, mass of º hateven may be the dan- r from this source, §: hat such ex rtions, Monroe's ADMINISTRATION. 401. and the interest taken in political discussions, a tendency to dissoluteness in our manners is undoubtedly to be perceived; since they are altogether congenial with the precepts of the gospel, will in the end produce a vastly counterbalancing good. The exigencies of the church, and of the times, require precisely such a spirit of benevolent enterprise, to be increased, we trust with the growth of the nation. The attention, which is now paid to biblical learning, and to a more systematick instruction in theology, by those who are to be- come Christian teachers, forms an era in the history of religion, in this country. This will be a means, in due time, of counter- acting that tendency to religious dissipation, and to a superficial doctrinal knowledge, among professing christians, which have been mentioned. Indeed, the good consequences of such pre- paratory studies begin to be felt in other respects, at least; and the call for a learned and efficient, as well as a pious ministry is doubly increasing. Morality, which is a component part of re- ligion, has taken deep root, and the increased means of christian instruction just noticed, and forms a striking contrast to the ef- ſects, which proceed from a dearth of the spirit and of the word of God, in less favoured parts of the country. It is worthy of notice, also, that some vigorous attempts have been made, by means of the association of individuals, in various places, to pre- went the progress of vice, and, of course, to promote the interests of christian virtue. Intemperance, which is the most alarming symptom of the times, has, by this means, received a partial, though, it must be confessed, inadequate restraint. _SectionXXXIV. Crage artu Commerce. The commerce of the United States consists, principally, in the exchange of agricultural pro- duce for the manufactures of other parts of the world, and the productions of the tropical cli- mates. The principal articles of domestic pro- duce, exported, are cotton, wheat flour, biscuit tobacco, lumber, rice, pot and pearl ashes, In- dian corn, and meal, dried and pickled fish, beef, cotton" is the most considerable article, invention of a machi this machine we are he for cleaning upland cotton, fromi indºwed tº white,or New He QA * . . . PERIOD xi.1817.1825. creased, regularly, from one hundred thousand pounds, the amount exported in 1790, to more than eighty-five millions of pounds, exported in 1817. It now constitutes one third of the whole value of our exports, or about twenty millions of dollars. Next to cotton, wheat, flour, and biscuit, are exported in the greatest quantities.—Tobacco and rice are on the decline, the attention of planters being directed to the more profitable culti- vation of cotton. Of these exports, New-England and New-York are the great carriers. To them belong nearly two thirds of all the shipping of the United States. The states south of the Potomac own only one eighth part. Our staple articles are principally the growth of the southern states, and are carried coast wise, from the southern to the middle states, whence they are sent to ſo- reign countries, almost entirely, in ships owned by northern merchants, and navigated by northern seamen. In 1820, there were about seventy thousand persons, in the United States, en- gaged in commerce, of which thirteen thousand, or nearly one sixth, belonged to Massachusetts alone. Nearly half of the Y. number belonged to the New-England States, and New- orks . . § º The exports from the United States are sent to various coun- tries, but the British dominions always receive the largest por- tion of our domestick produce, particularly cotton. The Spa- nish, Portuguese, and French dominions have usually received the most, next to the British. During the period in which the United States enjoyed the carrying trade, that is from 1796 to 1807, when the wars, which succeeded the French revolution, existed, and during which the United States was the principal neutral power, the nations for which she carried embraced near- ly all Europe; but those for which she carried the most were the Dutch, French, and Spaniards. Since the return of peace, in 1815, the nations of Europe have been chiefly their own car- riers. Of course, the foreign produce, exported from this coun- try, has been small, compared with its amount from 1802 to 1812. In the year ending the 30th of September 1822, the to- tal value of exports from the United States was seventy-two mil- t. Before the invention of this machine, it was so difficult to cleanse atthecultivation of it was extremely limited. It is now cultivated, in the states south of Virginia, and Kentucky. The wheat orted are tates; jº. seasºn fly from ised, principally in the middle and wester ſa, nd North Carolina; lumber is chi Monroe's ADMINISTRATION lions, one hundred and sixty thousand, two hundred and eighty- one dollars. Of this sum, but º twenty-two millions were foreign exports, leaving nearly fifty millions for domestick ex- orts. Almost half of the domestick exports were sent to Eng- and, Scotland, and Ireland. During the same year, the total value of imports was eighty-three millions, two hundred and for- ty-one thousand, five hundred and forty-one dollars, of which thirty-two millions were from England alone. 22- - - -------. . . . . . . . The goods received, in return for exports, are, generally, the manufactures of those countries to which the exports are carried. From Great Britain are imported vast quantities of woollen and cotton goods, and manufactures of iron, steel, brass, copper, glass, earthen ware, silk, &c. From China we receive tea and silk; from Russia iron and hemp. Coffee comes from the colonies of the European powers in America, and the East Indies; sugar from the East and West Indies; rum from the British and Danish West Indies. Wines are, principally, from France, Spain, Portugal, Madeira, and the Canary Isles, bran- dy from France, Spain, Italy, &c. Notwithstanding the large amount of cotton, tobacco, lumber, &c. sent to Great Britain, yet the balance with that country is, and always has been against us. It is also against us in respect to China, Russia, Sweden, Denmark, and France, because these countries, from which we **, have occasion for very little of our surplus pro- Rice, - As to the tonnage of the United States, it may be observed, that it annually increased from 1790, at which time it was near- ly half a million, to the year 1810, when it arrived at its maxi- mum, and amounted to more than one million and four hundred thousand tons; an amount far greater than that of any other nation in the world, except Great Britain. In 1819, the ton- nage employed in the coasting trade amounted to nearly hundred thousand tons, having increased in thirty years more than five fold. The tonnage employed in the fisheries has not progressed with the same rapidity. During the revolutionary war, th sheries were destroyed, and, for many years afterward did not regain their original importance. To encour he owners and he bank, or cod. fisheries, and, in 1814, tions, and the they have been a ucket seventy-two vessels, engaged in e to New Bºº. N. 404 PERIOD XI.1817.1835. the whale fishery, whose aggregate tonnage was aboutseventeen thousand tons. This number has since increased. Massachu- setts is the principal state concerned in this fishery. No state south of New-York ever owned a single vessel employed in the whale fishery. wº - Nearly connected with commerce is the revenue of the coun- try. This has almost entirely arisen, ever since the establish- ment of the present government, from duties paid on tonnage, and on foreign goods imported into the United States. Internal duties and direct taxes have, occasionally, been resorted to, as was the case during the administration of Mr. Adams, and du- ring the late war, but upon these, the government ordinarily place no dependence. Several millions of dollars are annually received from the sale of publick lands, and the sum is yearly increasing. In 1815, the revenue was much greater than it had been at any former period, owing to the immense importations of foreign goods into the country. It continued to decrease, however, until 1821, since which time it has been again slowly rising. It may now be estimated in ordinary years, at about twenty millions of dollars. -- It will not be foreign to this article to add as few remark upon the publick debt. This debt was contracted in sup- port of the war of independence. In 1791, it amounted to about seventy-five millions of dollars. From this date to the year 1812, owing to the great prosperity of the country, the debt was gradually diminished to about one half. But, on the recurrence of war, it again increased, and, in 1816, amounted to one hundred and twenty-three millions. It has been since di- minishing, and, on the first of January, 1823, was about ninety millions of dollars. > - Section XXXV. ºritulture. Until within a few years, agriculture, as a science, received but little attention, in the United States. Few. if any, valuable improvements were attempted. Indifference and uncommon apathy seem to have pervaded society. A new era, however, has re- cently commenced, and agriculture, both as a ance and an art, is receiving much, of that ntion which its acknowledged importance demands. It is beginning to be regarded, as it ould be, not only as the basis of subsistence MONRoE’s ADMINISTRATION. 405 and population, but as the parent of individual rd national opulence. . . . Men of enlightened minds, and of distinguish ed wealth, are, in many parts of the country, devoting themselves to the study of the art, and to new and useful experiments. Agricultural societies abound; at the head of which may be seen some of the most scientifick and practical men, combining their powers in favour of agri- culture, for the collection and diffusion of in- formation, and for the excitement of industry and emulation. The exhibitions which annu- ally take place, in almost every county, of cattle, and of the productions of the soil, the learned and often eloquent addresses, which these exhi- bitions call forth, have a strong tendency to awaken the attention of our countrymen to a pursuit more favourable to health, virtue, and peace, than any other. The proportion of the inhabitants of the United States, devot. ed to agricultural pursuits, is large. By the census of 1820, it appears, that this proportion is more than one fifth of the whole population, or two millions. This number includes only those who are thus engaged by actual occupation, children and females generally being excluded. It embraces, therefore, about two thirds of all the males over ten years of age. The slaveholding states are the most agricultural, the proportion being usually from one quarter to one third of the whole population, while in the other states it generally falls below one fifth. ; :::::::::: Of the several states, New-York has the greatest number en- gaged in agriculture; Virginia next; and next to those states, North Carolina, South Carolina, Pennsylvania, Kentu # Tennessee, and Georgia, in order. But the proportion of those d to agriculture, in the respective states, to their popula: 406 PERIOD XI.1817.1825. Section XXXVI, 3rts and ſºlauttfat= titres. The manufacturing establishments in the United States are considerably various and numerous; and though less prosperous than during the late war, are gradually rising from the depression which they experienced immedi: ately after the return of peace, in consequence of the excessive importations of foreign goods, which were then made. z By the friends of these establishments vigorous efforts are making to induce congress to increase the duties on certain ar- ticles, now extensively imported, with reference to their being manufactured at home, and thereby giving more encouragement to those of our citizens who have invested their capital in esta- blishments of this kind. A strong opposition, however, to an increase of the duties on foreign goods has appeared, particular- ly in the south, on the ground that to foster manufacturing esta- blishments, considerably beyond the encouragement given them by the existing tariff, must be at the expense of commerce, reve- nue, and general prosperity. What will be the issue of the above efforts, time only will disclose. : ; The number of persons employed in manufactures in the United States, as appears by the census of 1820, is three hun- dred and forty-nine thousand, two hundred and forty-seven. Rhode-Island has a greater proportion of population engaged in manufactures than any otherstate, and next in order are Massachu- setts and Connecticut. Pennsylvania and New-Jersey, also, rank high as manufacturing states. § . . . . Section XXXVII. ºopulation. The popu- lation of the United States in 1820, was nine millions, six hundred and thirty-seven thousand, nine hundred and ninety-nine; of whom one million, five hundred and thirty-one thousand, four hundred and thirty-six were slaves, and two hundred and thirty-three thousand, three hun- dred and ninety-eight were free blacks. The number of foreigners who arrive in the country is, upon age, about five or six thousand annually. About this number, however is supposed to emigrate to the British provin- ces. The natural increase of the population is estimated at about three hundred thousand. The population of the United Monroe's ADMINISTRATION. 407 States may now, therefore, (close of the year 1822) be consi- dered as exceeding ten millions. The following observations, respecting the population of the country, have been found to be true by a late respectable writer.” 1. That the inhabitants of the United States double in about twenty-five years. 2. That taking the whole United States to- gether, the whites increase faster than the blacks; but that in the states in which the blacks are very numerous, they have al- most uniformly increased faster than the whites, in those states In Maryland, Virginia, North Carolina, South Carolina, Geor gia, Tennessee, and Kentucky, the blacks, for the last thirty years, have increased much faster than the whites. In North Carolina and Tennessee, they have increased more than as fast again, and in South Carolina, during the last ten years, they have increased three times as fast. In the -northern states, on the contrary, the black population is almost stationary, and in Maine, New-Hampshire, and Rhode-Island, it is diminishing. 3. That in all our great cities the females are more numerous than the males, while in the whole United States the reverse is true. The average of all the cities gives nearly one hundred and nine fe- males to one hundred males, whereas, in the whole United States, the average of females is but ninety-seven to one hundred males. . ... . . . . . . . . Section XXXVIII. ºutſtation. The education of youth, which is so essential to the well being of society, and intimately connected with the political prosperity of a republican govern- ment, has received, as has been noticed in the progress of this work, considerable atten- tion in the United States, in every period since their settlement. The present state of our pri- mary and higher schools, of our colleges, univer- sities, and other establishments of education, is more flourishing than at any former period; their number is annually increasing, and a more liberal pirit, in respect to their endowment, is pre- 1 le N England states, excepting Rhode Islan mon ols upported by law. In this latter sta Mors , who has recently published a valuable Geogr phy, tº “s. E. Mor Ygraphy which the author is indebted for many important facts in these notes, P. !. Riod . XI.1817...is º 5. ever, academies are established in all the principal towns, and private schools are extensively maintained, during the winter months. In the new state of Maine, a sum, exceeding one hun- dred thousand dollars, is raised by tax, and appropriated to the support of a school master for every two hundred inhabitants. The number of school houses is estimated at fifteen hundred. In Connecticut the common schools are supported by a fund, arising from the sale of lands in Ohio, which formerly belonged to the state. This fund amounted in May 1821, to one million and seven hundred thousand dollars, the yearly income of which, together with twelve thousand dollars of the publick taxes, is annually devoted to the maintenance of common school masters, in every town in the state. The amount paid to the towns from this fund, in 1818, was more than seventy thousand dollars, a greater sum by twenty-two thousand dollars than the whole state tax amounted to in the year preceding. A common school fund exists, also, in the state of New-York. In 1822, it consisted of more than one million one hundred thousand dollars, and twenty-five thousand acres of land. The sum, which this fund annually yields, is nearly eighty thousand dollars, and it assists to give instruction to nine tenths of the children of that populous state, between the ages of five and fif- teen years. Besides the common schools and colleges, there are nearly fifty incorporated academies. There is also a literary fund of nearly one hundred thousand dollars, the interest of which is annually distributed to the several colleges and acade- In Virginia, a literary fund has recently been created by the legislature, consisting of monies received from the United States, for military services during the late war. It amounted, in De- cember, 1818, to about one million and one hundred thousand dollars, to which is yet to be added a balance, due from the United States. The interest of this sum, with the addition of fines, forfeitures, &c. which have also been appropriated to the same object, will, in the opinion of the Directors, yield an an- nual income of nearly ninety thousand dollars. Of this sum forty-five thousand dollars annually have been appropriated to the support of primary schools, and fifteen thousand dollars to the endowment of a university. Until within a few years, the subject of education has receiv. ed but little attention in North Carolina. Much zeal, however, has recently been displayed in the establishment of academies chools. Previously to 1804, there were but two academies e state; there are now fifty, and the number is still increas- ing. šº § º, º In South Carolina, academies are numerous; the legislature annually appropriates thirty thousand dollars for the support of free schools. In 1817, the state of Georgia gave one hundred thousand dollars for the same object. In the states of Alabama Ohio, and Illinois, provision has been made, by the United States, for the education of youth, one section, or a thirty-sixth part of every township, being granted by the act of congress that admitted these states to the union, for the support of com- mon schools, and in addition one, and in some states, two town- ships for the support of a college. Till recently, education has been much neglected in Louisiana, and many of the inhabitants are unable either to read or write. Lately, the attention of the government has been directed to this subject, and schools and higher seminaries of learning are establishing in various parts of the state. -- - Several universities and colleges have been added to the lite- rary institutions in the United States, within this period. Of universities, two have recently commenced operations in the state of Ohio, one at Athens, on the Hockhocking, by the name of the Ohio University; the other at Oxford, near the south west corner of the state, by the name of the Miami University. The former of these has two townships of land, or forty-six thousand acres, and an annual income of two thousand three hundred dollars; the latter has one township which yields about two thousand dollars. - º Besides these, there is a flourishing college at Cincinnati, which was incorporated in 1819, and which has funds amount- ing to thirty thousand dollars. A medical college is connected with it. Worthington college was incorporated during the same year. In 1818, Transylvania university, in Lexington, Ken- tucky, was re-organized and placed upon a more liberal foun- dation. The number of students now exceeds three hundred. A college was established, in 1819 at Danville, about thirty miles southwest from Lexington. º A university has recently been commenced at Charlottesville, in Albemarle county, Virginia. The plan contemplatesten profes- sorships; and the buildings, consisting of ten pavillions for professors, five hotels for dieting the students, with one hund and four dormitories sufficient for two hundred and eight stude are already finished, in an elegant style of architecture college has recently gone into operation in the D. Distr º lumbia. It is situated three miles from the capital. A º Theological seminary is to be connected with the institution. Besides these institutions, there are several others, viz. a Charity school at Bangor, Maine, whose object is to prepare young men. for the ministry, in a shorter time than is usual at other semina- ries; a Baptist literary and theological seminary at Watervill 419 PERIOD XI.1817.1825. the Kennebeck; and one at New-York, belonging to the Protestant Episcopal Church. A Theological institution has also been es- tablished at Auburn, New-York, by the Presbyterians. Seve- ral others are in contemplation in the country. § The foregoing facts, in relation to the state of our common and higher institutions of learning, no American, in whose bo- som glows the spirit of the patriot, will regard with indifference. Like the light of heaven, science cheers, beautifies, and adorns. Tº its influence are we indebted for much of the civil and reli- gious freedom which we enjoy, and intimately connected with its progress are the future honour and happiness of our country. An intelligent people will select intelligent rulers, and intelli- gent rulers will manage safely the government confided to their trust. “There is scarcely one instance brought” says Bacon, “of a disastrous government, where learned men have been seated at the helm.” " & . . The general diffusion of knowledge tends also to make peace- able citizens. “It causes men,” in the language of a periodical work of our own country, “to have just views of the nature, value, and relations of things, the purposes of life, the tendency of ac- tions, to be guided by purer motives, to form nobler resolutions, and to press forward to more desirable attainments. Know- ledge smooths down the roughness and tames the native ferocity of man.” Our ancestors knew these things; they were aware of the importance of knowledge among the people to the strength of the social and political fabrick, which they were commencing; they, therefore, when they laid the foundations of their dwellings, almost sº multaneously laid the foundations of our common and higher se, inaries of learning. A steady, though too slow an advance has been making in relation to science, through the whole period of our history. The importance of it is more generally admitted, and greater favour is shown towards those institutions which are devoted to its cultivation. Far distant be the day, when the prevalenee of ignorance shall expose us to anarchy, and leave us to become the victims to some ambitious, turbulent, faithless spirit, who may rise to wield the sword of despotism. On the con- trary, may knowledge continue to increase, and with it that love of justice, virtue, and religion, which, under the blessing of heaven, will make our beloved country perpetually the seat of peace and freedom. & . . . : :º 3: . . . . Monroe's ADMINISTRATION. 411 XXXIX. Upon concluding this history of our country, we can scarcely refrain from asking, who of our ancestors anticipated results from their toils, so stupendous as those which we behold P. Who of them predicted, while they were laying up the pines of the forest for a shelter, that they were commencing an empire, which, within two centuries, would extend thousands of miles, and embrace, within its bosom, ten millions of the human race? Who then thought of cities, with their busy population, a thou sand miles from the waters of the Atlantick P-or of fleets, on inland seas, proceeding to, and returning from distant voyages or of navies pouring forth their thunder and their flame? Such results entered not into sober calculation, and were beyond even the dreams of fancy. Yet two centuries have brought them to 108 SS, . :* ~ ~ . The branch which our fathers planted, under the lostering care of heaven, rose, extended, invigorated. It acquired stabili. ty by oppression, and gathered importance from the efforts which were made to crush it. In the progress of our history, we have seen the American people, while sustaining only the character of colonists, and struggling with the discouragements and difficulties of new settlements, maintaining at their own ex- pense, and bringing to prosperous conclusion, wais, which a sel- fish and jealous mother country, by her pride and imprudence, had occasioned. We have seen these colonies, amidst all the oppres- sions which they experienced, through exactions, and calumnies, loss of charters, and one abridgment of liberty after another, still maintaining their loyalty—still indulging the feelings, and adopting the language of affection, until justice and patriotism and religion bid them rise to assert those rights, which the God of nature designed for all his rational offspring. Through a long and trying war, in which inexperience had to contend with discipline, and poverty with wealth, we see them pledging their fortunes, liberties, and lives to one another, and, to the astonishment of the world, accomplishing their e a. d when emancipated, and transformed int º organization of a government, under a constitution a was singular, and whose excellency and competency aniza gular, and wh … . rience of more than thirty years has confirmed.—Simu ly with these events, what extensive conquests have be on the wilderness! Deserts have put on beauty 412 & PERIOD XI .1817....1825. and a way been constantly extending towards the waters of the Pacifick, for the advance of civilization and religion. Had we the spirit of prophecy, in respect to the future condi- tion of America, this would not be the place to indulge it. No nation, however, ever possessed, in a higher degree, the means of national prosperity. Our territory is ample—our soil fertile— our climate propitious—our citizens enterprising, brave, and per- severing. A sea coast of three thousand miles—inland seas, numerous canals, facilitate foreign and domestick trade. Being free and independent of otler nations, we can frame our laws, and fashion our institutions, as experience and an enlightened policy, shall dictate. Our universities and colleges are yearly qualifying numbers for the higher professions éf life, while our academies and schools are diffusing intelligence, to an unparal- leled extent, among our virtuous yeomanry. The Bible and the institutions of Christianity are with us, and are presenting to us all the blessings which religion can impart. Thus circumstanc- ed, what should prevent our country from advancing to that emi- mence of national happiness, beyond which national happiness cannot extend ?—“Manufactures may here rise—busy com- merce, inland and foreign, distribute our surplus produce, aug- ment our capital, give energy to industry, improvement to roads, patronage to arts and sciences, vigour to schools, and universali- ty to the institutions of religion; reconciling civil liberty with efficient government; extended population with concentrated action; and unparalleled wealth with sobriety and morality.” Let but the spirit, the practical wisdom, the religious integri- ty of the first planters of our soil, prevail among rulers and sub- jects—let God be acknowledged, by giving that place to his word and institutions which they claim—and all these blessings are ours... We shall enjoy peace with nations abroad, and tran- quillity at home. As years revolve, the tide of our national prosperity will flow broader and deeper. In the beautiful lan- guage of inspiration—“our sons will be as plants grown up in their youth, and our daughters as corner stones, polished after the similitude of a palace. Our garners will be full, including all manner of stores, our sheep will bring forth by thousands, ind ten thousands; our oxen will be strong to labour, and there je no breaking in, or going out, or complainingin our streets. y is that people that is in such a case, yea, happy is that UNITED STATEs. distinguished for Adams' ADMINISTRATION. Section I. On the 4th of March, Mr. Adams, in the presence of the Senate, House of Repre- sentatives, heads of department, foreign minis- ters, and a numerous assemblage of citizens and strangers, took the oath prescribed by the con- stitution, and entered upon the duties of Presi- dent of the United States. On the occasion of his inauguration, Mr. Adams, in com- pliance with usage, delivered an address, in which he un- folded the principles by which he should be guided in the fulfilment of the duties of his office. Among other things he said, “our political creed is, without a dissenting voice that can be heard, that the will of the people is the source, and the happiness of the people the end, of all legitimate govern- ment upon earth—That the best security for the beneficence, and the best guarantee against the abuse of power, consist in the freedom, the purity, and the frequency of popular elec- tions—That the general government of the union, and the separate governments of these states, are all sovereignties of limited powers; fellow-servants of the same masters, uncon- trolled within their respective spheres, uncontrollable by encroachments upon each other—That the firmest security of peace is the preparation, during peace, of the defences of war—That a rigorous economy, and accountability e. s, should guard against the aggravation possible, the burden o º be kept in s the freedom of 414 PERIOD XII.1825. ... Section II. On the day of Mr. Adams' induc- tion into office, the Senate was convened by & the Executive, for the purpose of confirming nominations to office under the new administra- tion. Henry Clay, of Kentucky, was *. Secretary of State; Richard Rush, of Pennsyl- vania, Secretary of the Treasury; and James Barbour, of Virginia, Secretary of War. A The new administration had scarcely entered upon its op- erations, before it was apparent that it was destined to meet with a systematic and organized opposition. Those who arrayed themselves against the administration, without ref- erence to its measures, urged, as reasons for their hostility, that Mr. Adams' election was the result of a bargain between Mr. Clay and himself; and his election of Mr. Clay, as Secreta- ry of State, was relied upon as conclusive proof of the bargain; that he was elected against the expressed will of the people; and that Congress, by not taking General Jackson, the can- didate having the highest number of votes, had violated the constitution, and disobeyed their constituents. | Those who were friendly to the administration, or disposed to judge of it by its acts, replied to these objections, that Mr. Clay, as a representative, was obliged to decide between three candidates for the presidency, and that his vote was in accordance with all his previous declarations; that Mr. Craw- ford was virtually withdrawn from the list of candidates by his ill health, and that, in respect to the remaining two, Mr. Clay had always expressed himself-decidedly in favour of the character and qualifications of Mr. Adams, which rendered it impossible for him to vote for General Jackson without the most gross inconsistency. Besides, the experience, the learn- ing, the talents, the diplomatic skill of Mr. Adams, decidedly entitled him to the office in preference to any other candidate. As to the election of Mr. Clay to be Secretary of State, this was vindicated on the ground that his situation as Speaker of the House, and his long and intimate acquaintance with our national affairs, made him the most prominent candidate for that station. The refusal of this, appointment by Mr. Clay, it was urged, would have argued an improper distrust of his own character and of public opinion, and would have * a measure confirmed the suspicion of an improper alliance mistration, it is sufficient, 1 this place, to say, that d e y re answered by the same zeal, and, to the minds of the w supporters of the administration, with even more force than that with which they had been offered. It is but justice to add, that the charge of a bargain between Mr. Adams and’ Mr. Clay has not been satisfactorily supported. On the con- trary, it seems now to be generally admitted, that no alliance had been formed between these gentlemen previously to the late presidential election. . Section III. About this time, a controversy arose between the National Government and the Executive of Georgia, in relation to certain lands held by the Creek nation, but which that State claimed as belonging to herself. In the progress of this controversy so much warmth was mani- fested, both by Georgia and some of the neigh- bouring States, that much anxiety was felt by persons in different parts of the Union as to the consequences. The prompt and vigilant meas- ures of the National Executive, however, sanc- tioned as they ultimately were by Congress, set- tled the controversy without disturbing the peace of the Union. % : This controversy grew out of a compact between the General Government and the State of Georgia, in 1802. By that compact, the United States agreed, in consideration of Georgia relinquishing her claim to the Mississippi Terri. tory, to extinguish, at the national expense, the Indian title to the lands occupied by them in Georgia, “whenever it could be peaceably done, upon reasonable terms.” Since making that agreement, the General Government had extin- guished the Indian title to about fifteen millions of acres, and had conveyed the same to the State of Georgia. Th still remained in that State exceeding nine millions of acr ossession of the Indians, of which about five I the Cherokees, and the remainder to the rt had been made to effect 416 Creeks for their portion of the above lands. The Creeks, however, having become more civilized, refused to alienate their territory, and had even passed a law making it a capi- tal offence to sell any more ‘land, No solicitations of the commissioners appointed to purchase their lands could in- duce them to consent, and, the council breaking up, a major- ity of the chiefs took their departure. A few, however, who thought differently, remained, and were induced to make a treaty, by which all the lands of the Creek tribes in Georgia and Alabama were ceded to the United States.— This treaty was made the 12th Feb. 1825, and was transmit- ted to the Senate, and sanctioned by that body, on the 3d of March, the last day of the session, without that examina- tion of the circumstances which it would have had, had it been transmitted at an earlier period of the session. . When the news of the ratification of this treaty arrived among the Creeks, it produced great excitement. M'Intosh, the leader and chief of the party that assented to it, and an- other chief, were killed, and the treaty rejected. In the mean time, the Governor of Georgia, acting upon the assumption that the treaty was valid, made provision to have the lands surveyed, and distributed among the citizens by lottery. To the Creeks the conduct of Gov. Troup was especially obnoxious, and, a war being likely to be the con- sequence of measures pursued, the President directed Gen. Gaines to repair to the country of the Creeks to give them the necessary protection, and directed Gov. Troup to sus- pend his contemplated measures until the meeting of Con- gress. *Fºot, however, continued to be made to settle this difficulty upon amicable terms; and at length, after a long negotiation with a deputation from the Creek nation at Washington, the old treaty was declared to be void, and a new one formed, by which the Creeks were to retain all their lands in Alabama, and to receive $217,000, and a per- petual annuity of $20,000 for their Georgia territory. To the M'Intosh party the United States agreed to pay $ 100,000, rovided the party amounted to 3000; and so in proportion maller number. Moreover, a tract of land beyond the sippi was to be provided for the *. of A as wished to remove, and the expense of rem first year's subsistence to be borne by the Uni aty t ADAMS'. ADMINISTRAT effect the new treaty, the vote in the House of Representa tives stood 167 to 10. To the passage of the bill the Geor gia delegation offered a protest, which was suffered to be entered on the journal of the House by a vote of 82 to 61. The unanimity with which the conduct of the Executive, in the settlement of this intricate and unpleasant controversy, was approved by Congress, was as unexpected as it was sat- isfactory to the people in every part of the country, except in the State of Georgia, where strong and excited feelings powerfully tended to prevent a fair and impartial considera- tion of the question. . . & - - Section IV. During the recess of Congress, an inquiry was instituted into the official conduct of Captains Porter and Stewart, which resulted in the suspension of the former from the service for six months, and the honourable acquittal of the latter. . * Captain Porter had been recalled from his command in the West Indies by Mr. Monroe, shortly before the termina- tion of his administration, on account of his landing at Fox- ardo, a Spanish settlement, and compelling the authorities of that place to apologize for their misconduct towards one of the officers of his squadron. The circumstances attending this affair induced Mr. Monroe not only to recall Capt. Por- ter, but to appoint a coºrt of inquiry. This court met at Washington, W. s. During its session a controversy arose between the accused and the court, which resulted in the withdrawal of Capt. Porter from the court, and a publi- cation by him of its proceedings, with his reasons for with- drawing. The court, however, proceeded in its inquiries, and, reporting its opinion to the President, a court martial was ordered to try Capt. Porter on two charges; the first for violating his instructions, and committing acts of hostility against the subjects of Spain by landing at Foxardo, and the other for insubordinate and unbecoming conduct, growing out of his controversy with the court of inquiry. Of these charges, the court martial, which met in July, found him guilty, and sentenced him to a suspension of six r *… Capt. Porter withdrew from the servi sit st Capt. Stewar ; were such { 418 - PERIOD XII....1825. his fame as an officer and a man of honour; but the court, after a minute and deliberate investigation, acquitted him of any charge, and accompanied the acquittal with a high com- pliment to his conduct while in the Pacific. Section W. The year 1825 was characterized by a spirit of speculation, which manifested it- self not only throughout the United States, but also in Europe, and which ended in the embar- rassment and ruin of thousands both here and in other countries. :* - The principal article of speculation was cotton, which rose in a few weeks from 6d. to 16d. Sterling. This increase of price was partly owing to the small quantity then in the English market, but more to a spirit of commercial gambling, which had infected the whole commercial community. Coffee, spices, and other West India produce, also, rose with great rapidity. Stocks, both public and private, ex- ceeded all former prices. In a short time, however, the fictitious wealth, which the expansions of the bubbles had created, suddenly disappeared, and the ruin of thousands followed. In England, more extensive bankruptcies occur- red than had been known for many years, occasioning an universal alarm and distrust. The public funds fell rapidly. Many of the most eminent banking houses stopped payment, and the ministry were called upon to devise measures for present relief to the intense pecuniary distress. The effects of these failures extended to other countries, and, though not equal in degree, were felt on the continent and in the United States, - - Section VI. On the 5th of December, in con- formity with the provisions of the constitution, the two Houses of Congress assembled in their respective chambers, and commenced the 1st ses- sion of the 19th Congress. - In his message at this time, the President stated that our foreign relations had undergone no material alteration since the adjournment of the preceding Congress, although impor- hanges had taken place in the commercial system of ritain, the effects of which, however, were not yet ADAMs ADMINISTRATION. 419 represented to be flourishing, and its finances even more fa- vourable than had been anticipated by the Secretary of the Treasury. " . w Section VII. Shortly after the opening of the session, propositions were introduced into both Houses to amend that part of the constitution, which provides for the election of the Executive. In the discussion of this subject, a considera- ble portion of the session was occupied; great warmth was manifested by the respective par- ties, but no plan could be devised to which a majority would give its sanction. This subject was brought forward, the first week of the session, in the House, by Mr. M’Duffie, of S. C., in the shape of a resolution to amend the constitution by establishing anº uniform mode of electing the President and Vice-President by districts, and declaring the sense of the House in favour of preventing the election from devolving on Congress.-- Subsequently, this proposition was modified by the mover as follows: That the constitution should be so amended as to prevent the election of President and Vice-President from devolving upon the House of Representatives. 2dly. That an uniform system of voting by districts in each State, equal in number to the Senators and Representatives of that State, ought to be established, and that each district should sendº one. 3dly. That a select committee be appointed to report a joint resolution embracing these objects. . These resolutions were urged with great vehemence by those who were opposed to the election of Mr. Adams. The debate on both sides was animated, and sometimes an- gry and personal. After a discussion of the subject for seven weeks, Mr. Webster, of Massachusetts, moved to dis- charge the committee from any further consideration of the subject. This was acceded to; and the previous question being ordered, to prevent further debate, the decision of the House was taken upon the resolutions. On the first, which k the elec in 420 PERIon XII.1825. the session, reported that they had not been able to agree upon any plan to prevent the election from devolving upon Congress. . In the Senate, early in the session, a resolution was offer- ed, providing for the same subject by a direct vote of the people in districts. This resolution was referred to a com- mittee, which, on the 19th of January, made a report on the subject, accompanied by a long resolution, embracing the amendment proposed. Great ability was displayed in draw- ing up this report : but the subject was not taken up in the Senate, and was finally lost sight of in the other more inter- esting topics which were soon made the object of its atten- tions. º The obvious effect of the above attempt to amend the constitution was to excite the feelings of the members, and to call forth that angry spirit, which had been so improperly manifested at the late election of the Executive. It served to array the respective parties still more against each other, and to consolidate the already organized opposition to the administration. Section VIII. Another subject, which occu- pied much of the attention of Congress, was the acceptance by the President of the invitation to send commissioners to the Congress of Panama, and the nomination of Richard C. Anderson and John Sargeant as ministers on the part of the United States, and William B. Rochester of New York as Secretary. These nominations were at length confirmed by the Senate, and the necessa- ry appropriations made by the House; not, how- ever, without a long and angry debate, in which many reflections were cast upon the Executive on account, as it was deemed, of its hasty ac- ptance of the above invitation. The Congress at Panama had for its object the cementing of the friendly relations of all the Independent States of Amer- ica, and was designed, also, to serve as a common council in the conflicting state of things in South America, and as an umpire in their differences. The plan of such a Congress was first introduced into a treaty between Peru and Colom- r bia in 1822. In the three succeeding years the same sub- ject was had in view in treaties concluded between Colom- bia, Chili, Guatimala, and Mexico; and the Isthmus of Pa nama was designated as the place of the meeting of this great American Congress. To this Congress an invitation was given, by several of the above States, to the United States to send commissioners. Before the meeting of the federal Congress, the invitation had been accepted by the President, and, on the meeting of that body, the above nomination of ministers was made. The message of the President to the Senate, with the documents touching this subject, was refer- red to the Committee on Foreign Relations; where it re- mained till January 16th, when a report was made condemn- ing the mission, and ending with a resolution declaring it to be inexpedient to send ministers to Panama. This resolution was negatived after several attempts to amend it, and the nomination made by the President of the above ministers confirmed. Here it was expected the subject, at least so far as the Senate was concerned, would end. A few days after, however, a resolution was offered, the import of which was, that the President was not constitutionally competent to ac- cept the invitation from the governments of the new repub- lics to send ministers to the Panama Congress. The resc'u- tion, however, was laid upon the table by a vote of 23 to 21. In this debate, Mr. Randolph took occasion, in his desul- tory manner, to stigmatize the Secretary of State, for his vote in the late Presidential election, in such terms as indu that gentleman to demand an explanation of the offensive epithets. Any explanation Mr. Randolph pertinaciously re- fused when called upon by Mr. Clay; and, on the 8th of April, a meeting took place between them, which, after two ineffectual fires, resulted in the reconciliation of the parties. Much regret prevailed throughout the country that Mr. Clay, occupying so high and responsible a station, should have felt himself compelled to resort to a mode of settling a contro- versy so revolting to reason, and so unjustifiable in the view of sound morality—a mode which at all times gives a most un- reasonable advantage to the offender, and, in the present in- stance, put at hazard the life of a man who has talents which ommand respect, and which may be most usefully em- must c ployed for his country. . In the House of Representatives, the Committee of Relations reported in favour of the expediency of se ing ministers, and offered a resolution to make the necessary 36 appropriations." On the 3d of April this resolution was taken into consideration, but it was not until the 21st, and after encountering great opposition, that it passed by a vote of 133 to 61. x ... 3 ... The House having thus assented to the policy of the mis- sion by making the appropriation, measures were taken to carry it into effect; and orders were transmitted to Mr. An- derson, who was then in Colombia, to attend the Congress which was to hold its first meeting in the month of June. In his way to Panama, however, a malignant fever, by which he was attacked, proved fatal to him. After the decision of Congress, it was found too late for Mr. Sargeant to reach Pănama in season to attend the first meeting of the members of the mission, and accordingly the United States were not represented. On the 22d of June, the representatives of Peru, Mexico, Central America, and Colombia, met, and commenced their deliberations. Upper Peru and Chili were not represented. Diplomatic agents from England and the Netherlands, though these governments had not been invited, were present, but were not permitted to attend upon the deliberations of the Congress. ... The body continued in cession until the 15th of July, hav- ing concluded between themselves, as belligerents, a treaty of friendship and perpetual confederation, offensive and de- fensive, to which all other American powers might accede within the year. The next meeting was ordered to be held at Tacubaya, a village near Mexico, in the month of Febru- ary, 1827. * , …? 3 º Section IX. During this session of Congress, a bill was introduced making provision for the surviving officers of the revolution. After an animated discussion of the subject, the bill was virtually lost by being recommitted, by a vote of 90 to 85, for the purpose of ascertaining the number of revolutionary officers who ought to be provided for by law, and the amount neces- sary to make such provision. general wish, no doubt, prevailed in the country to do * heroes of the revolution justice. The visit of La Fay- ld excited a strong feeling in their favour. As he pass- ed through the country, and met the companions of his for- mer toils and glory, a disposition seemed to prevail to recom- pense them for their sufferings and privations; and Congress met under the influence of a general belief that some provis- ion would be made for their declining years, or at least an ample remuneration for the depreciation of the currency in which they had been paid. × - . . Section X. On the 22d of May, 1826, Con- gress closed its session. It was a long one, but, excepting the sanction given to the Panama mission, nothing of great public interest was ac- complished. Section XI. On the 4th of July occurred the 50th anniversary of American Independence, which was celebrated throughout the union with many demonstrations of joy. This day, rendered memorable by the event which it celebrated, was made still more memorable, in the annals of American history, by the death of the two ven- erable Ex-Presidents, ADAMs and JEFFERSoN. JOHN ADAMS was born in Braintree, now Quincy, on the 19th of October, 1735, and was descended from the first English emigrants to Massachusetts. He entered Harvard University in 1751, where he graduated in 1755. Whether he was distin- guished at college, or shared its first honours, is not now certainly known. After he left college, Mr. Adams engaged in a grammar school at Worcester, where he commenced the study of law.— Being admitted to the bar in 1758, he commenced business in his profession at Braintree, his native town. His success was so rapid, and his reputation so great, that in 1766 he removed to Boston, where he continued to attend the neighbouring cir- cuits, and was occasionally called to remote parts of the Pro- vince. In 1770, he undertook the defence of the British officers and soldiers, who were indicted for the massacre on the memo- rable 5th of March, of that year.—The same year he was elected one of the Representatives of the town of Boston, in the I is lature of the Province, which connected him more int with the great leaders of the popular party, and er feelings more ardently in public affairs, which at this t assuming a very serious aspect. The popularity he voc of Captain Preston and the B. he soon regained by his zeal and spirited conducti º the popular cause. And such was his increasing reputation as a 424 latriot and politician, that he was appointed, by the Assembly, one of its Representatives to the Continental %. ress, held in Philadelphia, in 1774. Mr. Adams took an active part in its deliberations, and the important measures it adopted. He was a member of the Committee which prepared the declaration of the rights of the Colonies, and likewise of that which reported the Address to the King. He was a member of the Congress the next year, and made the motion to appoint George Washington the Commander in Chief of the forces to be raised in defence of American liberty. He continued in Congress in 1776, when he was one of the Committee appointed to prepare a Declaration of Independence, and he and Thomas Jefferson were named as a sub-committee to prepare the draft. Mr. Jefferson was the draftsman of the Declaration, but Mr. Adams was its boldest and ablest defender. - ~ In the course of this year, 1776, Mr. Adams, and Dr. Franklin, and Edward Rutledge, were appointed Commissioners to treat with Lord Howe for a pacification. The following year, 1777, he was appointed by Congress a Commissioner to the Court of France, in the place º Silas Dean. In 1779 he returned from Europe; and the next year he was appointed a member of the Convention which framed the Constitution of Massachusetts; and he drafted a considerable part of it. Before the close of the year 1780, he was sent to Europe again, as Commissioner to negotiate a general peace; and remained in Europe until 1788. He was the first minister of the United States at the Court of Great Britain; and whilst residing there, in 1787, he published his Defence of the American Constitutions. On his return to the United States, in 1788, he was chosen the first Vice-President; which situation he held during the eight years of Washington's administration, when he succeeded the father of his country in the Presidential chair. Mr. Adams was succeeded by Mr. Jefferson in 1801, and retired to private life. From this time Mr. Adams lived as became a great and wise man. His correspondence and writings were extensive, and highly interesting; although perhaps some of them are not entirely free from the peculiar bias of his feelings. In 1820, at the advanced age of 85 years, he was once more withdrawn from retirement, being first chosen an elector of President and Vice- President, and then elected a member of the Convention to re- vise the Constitution of Massachusetts. He was unanimously chosen President of the Convention, but declined. Mr. Adams died on the 4th of July, 1826, the fiftieth anniversary, and the national jubilee of his country, and whilst all his fellow-citizens were assembled, commemorating that great and glorious event, with which his name is inseparably and honourably associated. HOMAS, JEFFERSON was born on the 2d of April, O. S. well, in the county of Albemarle, in the State of ºbut a short distance from Monticello. His father, on, was one of the Commissioners for establishing ADAMS ADMINISTRATION. 425 the boundary line between Virginia and North Carolina, and he left his son a large estate. The Jefferson family was among the earliest settlers in Virginia. Thomas Jefferson was educated at the College of William and Mary, and received the highest honours of that Institution. After leaving college, he entered upon the study of the law, under the tuition of George Wythe, the first lawyer and advocate in the State. Soon after he came of age, he was appointed Justice of the Peace, and this was fol- lowed by an election to a seat in the House of Burgesses.—In June, 1775, he was elected a member of the Continental Con- gress, in the place of Peyton Randolph, who had resigned his seat in consequence of ill health. He continued a member, and one of the brightest ornaments of this august body, until 1777. In 1776, he was one of a Committee appointed to prepare the Declaration of Independence. The Committee were appointed by ballot, and consisted of Thomas Jefferson, John Adams, Ben- jamin Franklin, Roger Sherman, and Robert R. Livingston. Mr. Jefferson and Mr. Adams, the two first on the Committee, were named as a sub-committee to prepare the 'raft. It was written by Mr. Jefferson, and first submitted to Mr. Adams, who says that he made no alterations. It was then submitted to the whole Committee, and some alterations were made by Franklin, and others of the Committee. Some parts of it were omitted by Congress after it was reported, and some slight alterations made; but its tone, spirit and arrangement, remained the same as when reported.—In 1777, Mr. Jefferson left Congress, and during that and the following year he was employed, in conjunction with George Wythe and Edmund Pendleton, in revising the laws of Virginia. Mr. Jefferson is entitled to the principal merit of securing the rights of conscience, and establishing religious lib- erty in Virginia. No part of the conduct of Mr. Jefferson made him more enemies, or brought on him more censure, than his exertions in favour of religious freedom; and perhaps in rio other particular were his efforts more extensively useful. In 1779, Mr. Jefferson succeeded Patrick Henry as governor of Virginia, and was in that station when the state was invaded by the British. In 1783, he was again elected a member of the Continental Congress, and took his seat in that body; and in May, 1784, he was commissioned as minister plenipotentiary, with Franklin, John Adams, Jay, and Laurens, to negotiate trea- ties with several European powers. In 1785, he was appointed resident minister at the French court, and remained in France until October, 1789, when, having obtained leave of Congress, he revolution in that country, which agitated all Europe. On his aturn home, when the new government was going int State. Mr. Jefferson's gr . returned home, just at the commencement of the tremendous re < º, º sº.º.º.º.º. . was named, by President Washington, Sec 426 PERIOD XII.1825, situation, and justly procured him the reputation of one of the most distinguished statesmen of the age. He continued in the office of Secretary of State until December, 1793, when he re- signed, and remained in retirement for several years. In 1797, when John Adams was elected President, Mr. Jefferson was chosen Vice-President, and to facilitate the discharge of the duties of president of the Senate, he composed his Manual of parliamentary Practice. In 1801, there having been no choice by the electors, he was chosen President of the United States, by the House of Representatives, after an alarming and memo- rable contest. The most important measure of his administra- tion was the acquisition of the immense territory of Louisiana by purchase, which alone cannot fail of rendering it illustrious to the latest posterity. & Although the opposition to his administration was violent be- yond any example, yet such was the change in public sentiment, that, at the expiration of his first term, he was re-elected with an expression ºf public opinion approaching to unanimity. In 1809, this illustrious patriot retired from political life, carrying with him the respect and affections of a large portion of his fellow-citizens. But in retirement he did not, and indeed could not, abstract himself from public objects, and the interests of his beloved country. His extensive correspondence contributed to diffuse his sentiments, as much perhaps as he was enabled to do at any other period of his life. Mr. Jefferson's talent at episto- ſary composition was peculiarly happy, and perhaps unrivalled. But his correspondence and other literary employments did not occupy his whole attention. At this advanced period of life, his active mind, always intent on promoting the best interests of his race, led him to engage in a work of great and lasting utility. We allude to the establishment of the University of Virginia, of which he was rector and visiter, and which occupied a large share of his attention during the last years of his life. All his useful and great labours on earth being finished, his end seemed to be approaching. He viewed it with calmness and serenity, and seemed to manifest some uneasiness in waiting for his de- parture. He however had one wish which was granted him. This cannot be expressed so well as in the language of one of his eulogists:* “That day was at hand which he had helped to make immortal. One wish, one hope, if it were not presump- tuous, beat in his fainting breast. Could it be so, might it please God, he would desire once more to see the sum—once more to look abroad on the scene around him, on the great day of liberty. Heaven in its mercy fulfilled that prayer. He saw that sun—he enjoyed its sacred light—he thanked God for this mercy, and bowed his aged head to the grave.” He expired at ticello, at one o'clock in the f July, the halfi: anniversary. rst in CHRONOLOGICAL LIST . º or orficers IN THE UNITED STATEs since The Revolution. The following Chronological List of the principal Officers of the United States' Government, under the Constitution, compiled from authentic sources, may be interesting to many as a convenient document for ref. efence. & . . . . . ~~ PRESIDENTS. x- George Washington, of Virginia, appointed, . . . . . . . 1789 John Adams, of Massachusetts, . . . . . . . . . . 1797 Thomas Jefferson, of Virginia, . . . . . 1801 James Madison, of Virginia, . . . . . . 1809 James Monroe, of Virginia, . . . . . . . . . . . . 1817 John Q. Adams, of Massachusetts, . . . . . . . . . . . . 1825 vice PRESIDENTs. - . John Adams, of Massachusetts, . . . . . . . . . . . . 1789 Thomas Jefferson, of Virginia, . . . . . . . . . . 1797 Aaron Burr, of New York, , . . . . . . . . . . . . . 1801 George Clinton, of New York, # # % § § 3. • • § # * % 1805. 2. [Died, April 20, 1812.] .” & . sº Elbridge Gerry, of Massachusetts, . . . . . . . . . . 1812 Died, November 29, 1814.] . 2: ...S. Daniel D. Tompkins, of New York, . . . . . . . . . 1817 John C. Calhoun, of South Carolina, . . . . . . . . . . 1825 secretARIEs of STATE. Thomas Jefferson, of Virginia, . . . . . . . . . . . . 1789 Edmund Randolph, of Virginia, . . . . . . . . . . . 1794 Timothy Pickering, of Massachusetts, . . . . . . . . . . 1795 John Mºi. of Virginia, . . . . . . . . . . . . . 1800 James Madison, of Virginia, . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 1808 Robert Smith, of Maryland, . . . . . . . . . . . . . 1809 James Monroe, of Virginia, . . . . . . . . . . . . 1811 John Q. Adams, of Massachusetts, . . . . . . . . . . 1817 Henry Clay, of Kentucky, § § § % § § # § § § § § secretaries of the treasury. . Alexander Hamilton, of New York, . . . . Oliver Wolcott, of Connecticut, * sº sº sº º is Samuel Dexter, of Massachusetts, • * * * * * * * Albert Gallatin, of Pennsylvania, . . . . . . . . . . George W. Campbell, of Tennessee, . . . . . . . . Alexander J. i. of Pennsylvania, . . . . . . . . . . * in H. Crawford, of eorgia, • * • * * * • . lard Rush, of Pennsylvania, . . . . . . . . . . 428 officers of the United states. SECRETARIES OF WAR. Henry Knox, of Massachusetts, . . . . . . Timothy Pickering, of Massachusetts, . . . . . . James M'Henry, of Maryland, - t Samuel Dexter, of Massachusetts, º Roger Griswold, of Connecticut, Henry Dearborn, of Massachusetts, . . . . . . William Eustis, of Massachusetts, . . . . . . . John Armstrong, of New York, t Isaac Shelby, of Kentucky, [Did not accept.] Fº William H. Crawford, of Georgia, . John C. Calhoun, of South Carolina, . # James Barbour, of Virginia, . . . . . . , . SECRETAR1Es of THE NAVY. * 1789 1795 1801 1809 1813 1815 1816 1817 1825 JNote.—This department was not established until the 30th of April, 1798, being, prior to this date, a branch of the War Department. George Cabot, of Massachusetts, appointed, Benjamin Stoddard, of Maryland, # # Robert Smith, of Maryland, . § # # Jacob Crowninshield, of Massachusetts, . Paul Hamilton, of North Carolina, . . . . . William Jones, of Pennsylvania, . . . . . . Benjamin W. Crowninshield, of Massachusetts, Smith Thompson, of New York, • • * Samuel L. Southard, of New Jersey, . ~ POST MASTERS GENERAL. Samuel Osgood, of Massachusetts, appointed, . Timothy. Pickering, of Massachusetts, , . # & Joseph #. of Georgia, . . . Gideon Granger, of Connecticut, Return J. Meigs, of Ohio, John M'Lean, of Ohio, . cHIEF JUSTICEs of THE UNITED STATEs. - John Jay, of New York, appointed, William Cushing, of Massachusetts, Oliver Ellsworth, of Connecticut, . * * * John Jay, of New York, . . . . . . . . . John Marshall, of Virginia, • * * * * - - ATTORNEYS, GENERAL. Edmund Randolph, of Virginia, appointed, . . . $º William Bradford, of Pennsylvania, . . . Charles Lee, of Virginia, . # # . . . . § * # # Levi Lincoln, of Massachusetts, . . . . . . Robert Smith, of Maryland, . § • * * * * * * John Breckenridge, ºKentucky, . . . . . . . Caesar A. Rodney, of Delaware, . . . . . . . . . - m Pinckney, of Maryland, . . . . . . . . . - Rush, º lvania, • * * * . * • illiam Wirt, of wº. . . . . . . . . . . : 1798 1799 isº . 1805 1809 1812 1814 1816 ... iść 1780 1791 1791 1802 1814 is?? 1786 .º 179; 1796 1800 1801 1789 1794 1795 1801 1805 1806 1807 1811 1814 of Ficeks of THE UNITED STATEs. 429 speakERs or THE HOUSE OF REPRESENTATIVEs. First Congress—1st and 2d Sessions held at New York, the 3d at Philadelphia. Frederick A. Muhlenburgh, of Pennsylvania, 1789 % Second Congress—Held at Philadelphia. z Jonathan Trumbull, of Connecticut, . . . . . . . 1791 Third Congress—Held at Philadelphia. --- Frederick A. Muhlenburgh, of Pennsylvania, . . . . . 1793 Fourth Congress-Held at Philadelphia. Jonathan Dayton, of New Jersey, . . . . . . . . . . . . 1795 Fifth Congress—Held at Philadelphia. Jonathan Dayton, of New Jersey, . . . . . . . . . . . 1797 Sixth Congress—1st Session at Philadelphia, 2d at Washington. Theodore Sedgwick, of Massachusetts, . . . . . . . . 1799 Seventh Congress-Held at Washington. Nathaniel Macon, of North Carolina, * * * * * * * ~ . . Eighth Congress. & wº Nathaniel Macon, of North Carolina, . . . . . . . . . . 1803 JWinth Congress. x . Nathaniel Macon, of North Carolina, . . . . . . . . . . . 1805 . 1801 º, Tenth Congress . 3:... 3.3 Joseph B. Varnum, of Massachusetts, . . . . . . . . . . 1807 . * * * Eleventh Congress. Joseph B. Varnum, of Massachusetts, . . . . . . . . . . 1806 º Twelfth Congress. Henry Clay, of Kentucky, & # & § Thirteenth Congress. Henry Clay, of Kentucky, . . . . § (until January 27th, 1814.) . *...* * * Langdon Cheeves, of South Carolina, for the residue of the Congress. * . . . . . . . 1811 ... 1813 Fourteenth Congress. Henry Clay, of Kentucky, . . . . . . . . . . 1811 Fifteenth Congress. Henry Clay, of Kentucky, . . . . . . . . . . . . . 1817 Sirteenth Congress. Henry % of Kentucky, during the first session. John W. Taylor, of New York, during the second session. Seventeenth Congress. Philip P. Barbour, of Virginia, . . . . . . . . . . . 182 Eighteenth Congress. Henry Clay, of Kentucky, . . . . . . . . . Nineteenth Congress. W. Taylor, of New York, • * * * ** * 3. INDEX. This figures DENotE THE PAGE & $. & cºmbus, voyage and discoveries of 10- º London and Plymouti, account cºm.au Governour of Płymouth, Charlestown, settled, 35; burned, 165. . ) Connecticut, settled, 36; first constitution of, 41; incorporated, 46. Carolina, settled, 46; dissensions in, 76; sufferings of in Queen Anne's war, 98; taken under royal protection, 100. §. Point, expedition against, 134. Canada, surrender of, to the British, 143: invasion of, by the Americans, 336. Confederation, articles of, between the states, 180. * *. Credit, bills of, depreciation of 207. Congress, Continental, convened, 159; pro- ceedings of 160; meeting of 165. º Provincial, of Mass, proceedings Champe, sergeant, story of 223–228. Clinton, Sir Henry, successful expedition gººsanº Charleston, 208; superseded, Cornwallis, defeat of 237. Convention of delegates to revise the fed- eral system, 252; Hartford, 348. - Constitution, Federal, presented to Con- gress, 253; epitome of 283–286; ratifi cation of 256; amendment of 263. Clair, St. defeat of 270. . Caramelli, Hamet, account of 301. w cº, George, elected Vice-President, cºigate, attack upon, 306; cap- . -tur is ºs Discoveries, early, by whom made, 10; of San Salvador, 10; of Newfoundland, St. Cod, Nantucket, &c. 13. % Delaware, Maord, appointed Governour of Jamestown, 28. Delaware settled, 45. " Dustan, Mrs. story of 90. $. Dunmore, Lord, censurable conduct of 169. Danbury burnt, 182. - . . gº', baroness of, adventures of, De º: count, arrival of, with a French ºt, . Albany, settled, 29. Andross, Sir Edmund, arbitrary government of 53, 61 Aberigines, see Indians. -- . &: Agriculture, 68, 111, 145,246,258,285,296, 312, 359. - Arts and Manufactures, 68, 112, 145, 246, 258,285,296, 312,359. Allen, Ethan, takes Ticonderoga, 163. Army, American, disbanded, 241. … Arnold, Col. difficult enterprise of 167; obtains commaud of West Point, 220; treachery of 222; escape of, 222; an attempt to take him, 223–328; depre- dations in Virginia, 229; invasion of Connecticut, &c. 239. ; Aºi. Lady Harriet, adventures of, 196– I * Maj. capture of, trial and death of, ; * § . Argus captured, 332. ~. Adams, John, elected Vice-President, 256; President, #83. § Adams, John Quincy, elected President,398. Amelia Island, notice of 365. % Arkansas Territory, organized,375. Alabama, erected into a state, 376. Boston settled, 35; Port Bill, 158. Bacon, rebellion of 55. Braddock, defeat of 123. Barre, Col. speech of 150. Battle of Lexington, 162; 164, of Long Island, 178; of Brandywine, 183; of Germantown, 184; of Bennington, 187; of Saratega, 188; of Monmouth,200; of Camden, 217; of Whe Cowpens, 230; of Guilford Court-House, 231; of Camden, 331; of Ninety-six, 232; of the Eutaw Springs, 233; of Yorktown, 237; near Chilicothe, 268; of Miama, 270, 280; of of Bunker Hill, Tippecanoe, 319; of Queenstown, 325; of Johns, Continent of America, 13; of Cape River Raisin, 329; of York, 331; of Plattsburg, 346; of New Orleans, 351. Bank, *. Establishment of 267; re- feredit, depreciation of 207. goyne, Gen. appointed to command the tish in the North, 185; takes Ticon- roga, 186; defeat, 188. . . .3 iron, º;" Vice-President, 295; y of, 303. § # * % º, attacks the President frigate, attack upon,844. spensation, 363. - . º J. States, at the close of the war, Decatur, heroic conduct of at Tripoli,300. INDEX. 4& Decree, Berlin, 305; Milan, 309; Rambouil-Laws, alien and sedition, notice of let,316; repeal of 317. metroit, fort, surrender of 324; retaken, *::::: Capt. death of,333. Education, 71,113, 145,247,259,286,995, 313, 360 ,294. Louisiana, erected into a state, 313. º [assachusetts Bay, settlement of,35. Maryland, settlement of 36. ----- Manners of the colonists, 63,108, 144, 24%, 257,333,295,3ii. 355,381.365. * : *. Montéaim, death of 13%. :- Massacre of citizens of Boston, 157. Montgomery, Gen. death of 168. Morgan, Gen. bravery of, at the battle o' the Cowpens, 230. º Michigan, territorial government for,302. Madison, James, elected President, 311; re elected, 330; retires, 357. Monroe, James, elected President,358; tour of, 363; second tour of 397; third, 375; re-elected, 377. * * Mississippi erected into a state, 364. Maine erected into a state, 376. New York, settlement of 29; tal the Dutch, 44; commotions in,72. New England receives its name, 29; settle- ment of,29; Union of the Colonies of 33. New Hampshire, settlement of 24; separa- tion of, from Massachusetts, 58. New Haven, settlement of, 40; Colony of, united to Connecticut, 43. New Jersey, settlement of 44; division of 56; re-union of 57. : Nova Scotia, capture of 121. Niagara, capture of 13. Norfolk, burning of 169. . . Ochterlony, Capt. story of 138. Ohio, settlement of 299. - Orders in council, British, 305,308. - Officers and soldiers, revolutionary, provi- sion for, 366. - - ------ - Powhatan, account of 27. :-º: Pocahontas, her story, 27. º:::::::::::::::: Puritans, account of, 39. settlement, 29. taken from % Eaton, Gen. enterprise of 301. 3. *:::: laid, 309; repealed, 315; renew- € & # ɺ England, war with, 321. Essex frigate, captured, 338. Fort Washington, capture of 179. . France, revolution in, noticed, 274; pros- pect of war with, 291. Florida, East and West, cession ... gº." formed for, 379. Gorges, Sir Ferdinando, grant to him, 31. Georgia settled, 102; charter of surrender- ed., 104; falls into the power of the Brit- ish, 201. Gates takes the army under Burgoyne, 188; appointed to the southern command, 217; defeated at Camden, 217; superseded, Greene, Gen. appointment of, to the southern department, 229. - Government, seat of 265; removed, 233. Genet, M., censurable conduct of, 276. History, uses of 5,6; division of into pe- riods, 7, 8,9. .# ~ udson river, discovery of 29. Hartford, settlement of 37. - Hooker, Rev. Mr., bold address of 38. Hamilton, Col., appointed Secretary of the Treasury, 262; report of, on public credit, 263; resignation of 281 ; death of 300. Hartford Convention, 348. " * Harmar, defeat of, 938. Hull, surrender of Detroit by,324. Hull, naval achievement of 324. Jamestown, settlement of 22. James II., abdication of, 62. Indians, account of 15–19. Jasper, sergeant, anecdote of 171. Iºnes, declaration of 175; signers , or, º - - * Insurrection, Shays',252; Pennsylvania,280. ** John, appointment of, as Chief Justice, 2; treaty of 279. • Jefferson, Thomas, appointment of, as Sec- retary, 262; resignation of 277; Vice- President, 283; President, 295; re-elec- tion of,300; resignation of 301. Jackson, Gen. defence of New Qrleans by, 351; conduct of in the Seminole war, 368–373. Indiana, erected into a state, 359. * Illinois, erected into a state, 367. fixed at Washington, Kniphausen, Gen. infamous conduct of,918.] Knox, Gen. appointment of, as Secretary of War, 262. Kentucky, settlement of 271. of, 374;| H |Providence, settlement of 37. |Pequots, war with, 38. s |Prevost, Sir Geo, defeat of 347. Lenox, duke of grant to, 30. Leisler, Jacob, usurpation of 75. , ed., 108 ºn by the English, 130. I.ee, Richard Henry, address of 174. Lincoln, Gen. defeat of 209; ‘superseded, Religion, 64, 109 äij" * * * * * “ - * - |Quebec, success expedition against, 104; restor- , , Rhode Island, settlement ºf, Montreal, capture of 142. ' Fort William Henry, brave defence of 129. Philip, king, war with,48. - §§ Province of Maine, settlement of, 41; dis- ute respecting, terminated,77; erected into a state, 37 ğ of 59. Pennsylvania º *:::::::::::::s 45.347,259,286,996, Phipps, Sir Wm. life of, Population, 70, 112, 1 Patnam, Gen. adventure of 204. . . Pitt, his friendship to America, 153; con- ciliatory bill of 161. - * ';º:’.3%.º.º.º.: ... Peyton, Ensign, story of 138. . . . Patrick Henry, resolutions of 151. . rºlºnia. occupation of, hy the British, President, frigate, attack upon, 317; ture of 355. # Pike, Gen. death of 331. . . Pirates, º against,381. Quesne, Fort du, capture of . ec, successful expedition a unsuccessful expedition unde 9, 145,245, 259, 2 Revolution, causes of 147. . . . . . . Randolph, Peyton, President of Continental Congress, 159. , . . . . . . Rochambeau, Count de arrival of 220. Representatives in Congress, ratio of fixed, Ross, Gen. death of 344. % Smith, Capt. John, life of 22–29. Settlement of Jamestown, * 3. 22; of New Eng- land, 29; of New York, 20; of New Hampshire, 33; of Massachusetts Bay, 35; of Maryland, 36; of Connecticut,35; of New Haven, 40; of Rhode Island, 37; of Province of Maine, 41; of New Jersey, 44; of Delaware, 45; of Carolina, 46; of Pennsylvania, 59; of Georgia, 102; of Vermont, 265; of Kentucky, 271; of Ten- messee, 233 303; of Louisiana, 319; of Mississippi, 364; of Illinois, 367; of Arkansas, 375; of Alabama, 376; of Missouri, 377; of Florida, 379. Stamp Act, account of 150 resistance to, Stark, Gen. success of at Bennington, 187. Savannah, capture of by the British,201. toney Point, capture of 205. . . . Sumpter, Gen. spirited conduct of 210. Shays, insurrection of 252. Slave trade, account of 278. Seminole war, 368. Treaty of the Plymouth colony with Mas- sassoit, 31; of Utrecht, 99; of Aix la Chapelle, 108; of Paris, 143; between Great Britain and the U. States, 241, 279; with the Wabash Indians, 274; with the Miamis, 281; with Algiers, 381; with Spain, 281; with G. Britain, 353; with Algiers, 353; with Sweden, 398; with Great Britain, 374; with Spain, 374. *:::: and Commerce, 67, 110, 145,246,257, Tico ideroga, unsuccessful attack upon, 131; #!". 134; secured º Ethan Allen, 163; retaken by the British, 180. & Tea, fate of a quantity sent to America, s ; of Ohio, 286; of Michigan, ompson, Charles al Congress, 159. n, G 203 , Secretary to Continen- Ov. expedition of, into Connecti- Tennessee, settlement of 282. . . . Tompkins, D.D. elected vice President,358, re-elected, 377. tº º . gº . Union of New England Colonies, 42; pro posed by the British ministry, i20. . . Virginia, rebellion in, 55; spirited cºnduct of during the revolution, 151. º Vermont, settlement of 265. . . . Victory, naval, of the Constitution, 324, of the Wasp, 327; of the U. States, 327; of the Constitution, 328; Hornet, 330; Enterprise, 334; Perry's fleet, 334; Pea- cock, 343; Macdonough's fleet, 346; Con- stitution, 338; Hornet, 339. ..:- War, Pequot, 38; Philip's war, 48; King William's, 81; Queen Anne's, 92; George II. 104; French and Indian, 116; Revo- lutionary, 147; Indian, 268; Tripolitan, 300; with G. Britain, 321; Seminole, 368. William, Prince of Orange, accession of, Witchcraft, account of 77. Williams, Rev. Mr. story of 93. Wºº,$ºl. John, extraordinary enterprise or, 2U2. Wolfe, Gen. death of 137. Whigs and tories, explanation of 159. Wooster, Gen. death of 183. Wadsworth, Gen. story of 210. Washington, George, expedition of, against the French, 118; appointed commander in chief, 165; organizes the army, 166; fortifies Dorchester Heights, 170; enters Boston, 170; removes his head quarters to New York, 177; evacuates New York, and retires to White Plains, 178; retreat to Newark, &c. and into Pennsylvania, 179; recrosses into New Jersey, and takes 1000 Hessians at Trenton, 182; distress- ing situation of 219, attempt of, to take Arnold, 223; plan of, to attack New York, 235; goes towards Yorktown, 236; defeats Cornwallis, 237; farewell address of, to his army,241; to his officers, 242; resigns his commission, 242; retires to Mount Vernon, 243; elected president of convention, 958; elected President of U. States, 259; tour of into New England, 263; into the Southern States, 269; re- tires from º life, 283; appointed to command the American army under Ad. .ams, 291; death of 292 . Tenay, M. de, arrival of, with a French fleet, 220. Washington city, capture of,343.